summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-25 11:57:08 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-25 11:57:08 -0800
commit8eac21f003bcb314f72068ae39dea9556d13d4ae (patch)
tree0b2747b24ac4cfd654b0f4a1d54a08e47f55594f
parentbe9d1e320989a8c425e0bca89b07e4a85749a1d4 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/69935-0.txt8523
-rw-r--r--old/69935-0.zipbin149162 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69935-h.zipbin1194337 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69935-h/69935-h.htm11920
-rw-r--r--old/69935-h/images/cover.jpgbin547644 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69935-h/images/i001.jpgbin102640 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69935-h/images/i003.jpgbin7067 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69935-h/images/i038.jpgbin90101 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69935-h/images/i160.jpgbin94307 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69935-h/images/i222.jpgbin106066 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69935-h/images/i290.jpgbin88470 -> 0 bytes
14 files changed, 17 insertions, 20443 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d76d77a
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #69935 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/69935)
diff --git a/old/69935-0.txt b/old/69935-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 763cffa..0000000
--- a/old/69935-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,8523 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Safety First Club, by W. T.
-Nichols
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: The Safety First Club
-
-Author: W. T. Nichols
-
-Illustrator: F. A. Anderson
-
-Release Date: February 2, 2023 [eBook #69935]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: Demian Katz, Craig Kirkwood, and the Online Distributed
- Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (Images courtesy
- of the Digital Library@Villanova University.)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE SAFETY FIRST CLUB ***
-
-
-Transcriber’s Notes:
-
-Text enclosed by underscores is in italics (_italics_).
-
-Additional Transcriber’s Notes are at the end.
-
- * * * * *
-
-[Illustration: HE DESCENDED THE SLOPE]
-
-
-
-
-THE SAFETY FIRST CLUB
-
-
- BY
- W. T. NICHOLS
-
- Illustrated by
- F. A. ANDERSON
-
- THE PENN PUBLISHING
- COMPANY PHILADELPHIA
- 1916
-
- * * * * *
-
-COPYRIGHT 1916 BY THE PENN PUBLISHING COMPANY
-
-[Illustration]
-
-The Safety First Club
-
- * * * * *
-
- _To
- M. H. M._
-
- _A youthful critic with the precious art of
- combining frankness and friendliness,
- this book is appreciatively dedicated_
-
-
-
-
-Introduction
-
-
-The Safety First idea, along with some other sound rules of conduct
-which have been hammered out by hard experience of the race, is often
-easier to put into words than into practice. Like other brakes on
-machines or men it sometimes seems to cause too much friction, with
-resulting protest, especially from youngsters impatient of warnings of
-dangers possible rather than presently pressing.
-
-The fact is, however, that these objectors fail to recognize the true
-spirit of the rule. Nobody expects active boys and girls to be wrapped
-in cotton wool and stored away out of all harm’s reach. They have
-their work to do in the world, and in doing it must take certain risks
-as the rest of us do. But there are unnecessary risks, just as there
-are other risks which are not to be avoided; and it is in shunning
-these unnecessary risks, in learning that reasonable caution is not
-cowardice, that recklessness is no proof of bravery, and that the way
-to redeem a mistake is not to repeat it, that the rule is to be truly
-honored.
-
-In “The Safety First Club” and the volumes which are to follow it are
-set forth certain adventures of boys who have to deal with problems
-such as confront healthy young Americans, boys well intentioned but not
-wise beyond their years, fond of the open, restive under restraint. It
-is the author’s hope that in their haps and mishaps they may be found
-likably human.
-
-
-
-
-Contents
-
-
- I. “HEDGEHOG DAY” 11
-
- II. SAM TAKES CHANCES 23
-
- III. THE LUCK OF A LONG SHOT 34
-
- IV. THE CLUB GETS A NEW NAME 43
-
- V. SAM FACES THE MUSIC 61
-
- VI. DEALING WITH THE OGRE 72
-
- VII. THE RECKONING 87
-
- VIII. BEGINNING THE TEST 96
-
- IX. POKE AND STEP PUT THEIR HEADS TOGETHER 111
-
- X. QUEER TROUBLES 124
-
- XI. THE CLUB GETS A CLUE 135
-
- XII. PUNISHMENT POSTPONED 146
-
- XIII. NOT ON THE PROGRAM 159
-
- XIV. SENT TO COVENTRY 173
-
- XV. THE CLUB ENDORSES ITSELF 182
-
- XVI. SAM HAS A RUDE AWAKENING 194
-
- XVII. MORE SURPRISES 202
-
- XVIII. LON DISCUSSES CROOKED THINKING 211
-
- XIX. OF DUELS AND CONSCIENCE 222
-
- XX. SAM MAKES A SPEECH 230
-
- XXI. LON PLAYS DETECTIVE 239
-
- XXII. TOM ORKNEY CHANGES HIS INTENTION 252
-
- XXIII. LON GATES ENTERTAINS 266
-
- XXIV. PETER GROCHE SCORES AGAIN 281
-
- XXV. THE BLIZZARD 294
-
- XXVI. OLD FRIENDS MEET 307
-
- XXVII. PETER’S GRUDGE 319
-
- XXVIII. SAM MAKES CHOICE 334
-
- XXIX. SQUARING THE ACCOUNT 343
-
- XXX. IN FULL SETTLEMENT 355
-
-
-
-
-Illustrations
-
-
- PAGE
-
- HE DESCENDED THE SLOPE _Frontispiece_
-
- HIS FINGER TREMBLED ON THE TRIGGER 37
-
- “YOU’RE LOOKING FOR TROUBLE” 156
-
- “HOLD HARD, THERE!” 216
-
- “HE’S COMING ’ROUND ALL RIGHT” 283
-
-The Safety First Club
-
- * * * * *
-
-The Safety First Club
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I “HEDGEHOG DAY”
-
-
-Sam Parker stepped out upon the side porch of his father’s house,
-closing the door behind him with a slam. There was a frown on his face,
-which by no means became it; and the corners of his mouth drooped
-sulkily. He was, as a matter of fact, in a fit of temper, which did
-not lessen as he surveyed the dull, gray sky, and saw its promise of a
-dismal day.
-
-“’Nother spoiled Saturday!” he grumbled. “Nowhere to go and nothing to
-do--oh, thunderation!”
-
-Now, to tell the truth, it may be that the weather had much to do with
-Sam’s pessimism, just as it often influences persons a great deal older
-and wiser than this boy of sixteen. Sam, commonly, was good-natured
-enough. This day, though, things had seemed to go wrong from the very
-start. He had overslept; one of his shoes had contrived to hide itself
-under the bureau; his necktie stubbornly had declined to slip into a
-smooth and even knot; he was late at breakfast, and the oatmeal was
-cold, and the eggs were as hard as the Fate which he was beginning to
-suspect was pursuing him. He had attempted criticism, and his father
-had checked him rather sharply with the reminder that the breakfast
-hour was 7:30 and not 7:50. His mother had not hastened to his defense;
-and even Maggie, the cook, frequently his ally and dispenser of
-consoling doughnuts and cookies, had failed him when he sought sympathy
-in the kitchen.
-
-“You got up wrong foot foremost,” she told him. “Get along with you
-now! This is bakin’ day, and I can’t be bothered.”
-
-Sam, thus repulsed, had clumped out of the kitchen; stormed into the
-hall; snatched up his cap and reefer; stamped across the dining-room,
-and flung himself out of the house, without visible improvement in
-his spirits or his condition. If it was dark within, it was gloomy
-without. He looked up the street and down; nobody was in sight. He
-buttoned his coat to the neck, and thrust his hands into his pockets:
-the world, he perceived, was chilly as well as lonely. Then, of a
-sudden, he grinned, fleetingly and reluctantly, at vagrant memory of
-the old story of the child that threatened to go out and eat two smooth
-worms and three fuzzy fellows because nobody loved it. The baby’s
-troubles were ridiculously like his own, and for a trying second he
-realized the resemblance. Then he was frowning harder than ever, with
-mouth drooping still more sulkily.
-
-In sunnier moods Sam Parker was a good-looking boy. Nobody would have
-called him pretty; he wasn’t of the “pretty” type, being, indeed,
-rather wholesome and hearty, with plenty of color in his cheeks--and
-not a few freckles. For a youth who was rapidly adding to his inches,
-in the process known as getting his growth, he carried himself well;
-though, as everybody knows, this period in a boy’s life is not that
-at which grace of figure or movement is most marked. In other words,
-there were times when Sam did not know what to do with his hands or
-his feet, and impressed the painful fact upon all beholders, especially
-because of a certain impulsiveness, which led him now and then into
-embarrassing ventures.
-
-Standing on the porch and glowering at all he beheld, Sam was not
-attractive. Hannibal, his bull terrier, trotting from the barn,
-noted the storm signals his master was flying, and halting at a safe
-distance, made great pretense of scratching for a flea which did not
-exist. Sam whistled, and Hannibal grew busier than ever. The boy took
-an impatient step, and the dog stopped scratching and bolted for the
-barn.
-
-Sam, striding after him, pulled up abruptly. A thick-set man in cap,
-and overalls, and boots, and with a carriage rug in one hand and a
-brush in the other, appeared in the big doorway.
-
-“H’lo, Sam!” was his greeting. “Good day, ain’t it?”
-
-“Good for nothing!” snapped the boy. “Rotten weather!”
-
-The man’s eyes twinkled. They were pleasant eyes, with little fans of
-fine wrinkles at the corners, and they lighted up his smooth-shaven,
-weather-beaten face amazingly.
-
-“Huh! Guess you ain’t looked at the calendar lately. This ain’t June;
-it’s the fust day of December. And I’m tellin’ you this is pretty good
-weather for December. What if there ain’t no snow? The wheelin’s all
-right--your daddy took the car out this mornin’.”
-
-Sam nodded. “I know--he went over to Epworth.”
-
-“Why didn’t you go along?”
-
-“What’d be the use?”
-
-Now, this was not strictly ingenuous. Possibly because of his sulks,
-Sam had not been invited to accompany his father.
-
-“Sure enough! What’d ’a’ been the use?” said the man with an odd grin.
-
-Sam reddened. “Look here! Bet you I could have gone if I’d wanted to,
-Lon!”
-
-Lon, otherwise Alonzo Gates, hired man and general factotum, made no
-response to the challenge, but fell to dusting the rug vigorously. Sam,
-gloomy browed, drew nearer.
-
-“Tell you, Lon, I could have gone. No fun, though--ride’s too cold.
-That’s the trouble with this weather--no coasting, no skating, no
-football, nothing!”
-
-“So?” said the man non-committally.
-
-Hobe, the barn cat, sauntered out of the door. Sam kicked at the
-animal, which took refuge behind a wooden bucket standing just inside
-the sill, and from this cover snarled defiance. Whereupon Sam kicked
-again. This time his foot struck something--the bucket. Over it went,
-and out shot a gallon or two of soapy water. Hobe darted back into the
-barn. Lon moved aside nimbly, but not nimbly enough. Splash! went the
-water upon his boots.
-
-“Wal, now, but you have gone and done it!” he ejaculated. “Nice mess to
-clean up, ain’t it?”
-
-In Sam’s perverse mood the one thing he cared for was to hide the
-regret he felt.
-
-“Huh! Oughtn’t to have stuff standing round like that. Why didn’t you
-tell me?”
-
-Lon paused in his labors. “My! but this world’s awful crowded this
-mornin’, ain’t it?” he remarked. “First there wasn’t room for you ’n’
-Hobe; then you jest couldn’t stand for that bucket treadin’ on your
-toes. Wal, wal!”
-
-Sam snorted wrathfully. What wouldn’t he have given for speech so
-cuttingly sarcastic that Lon must throw up his hands and beg mercy!
-But, effective words failing him, he could do no better than offer
-sounds which were disagreeable rather than intelligible.
-
-Lon chuckled; then grew serious. “See here, Sam!” said he. “I kind o’
-guess this is hedgehog day for you, ain’t it?”
-
-“Huh?”
-
-“When you come to think it over,” Lon went on, “a hedgehog’s about
-the one critter you can’t think of as ever snugglin’ up nice and cozy
-to anything or anybody. Now, I knew a feller once that had a tame
-woodchuck that liked to be patted; and I’ve seen the tigers and big
-cats in circuses purrin’ round their trainers; but I never heard tell
-of a hedgehog actin’ real sociable and wantin’ to sit in anybody’s
-lap. And, so far’s I can rec’lect, I never run across a hedgehog that
-you’d call all-around popular with the neighbors. Whenever one gets
-close to anybody, he sticks his spines into him. And when a human
-gets to actin’ like a hedgehog--why that’s when he’s havin’ a hedgehog
-day--see?”
-
-“Huh!” said Sam again.
-
-Lon gave the rug another flick with the brush.
-
-“By and large, son,” he remarked, “it ain’t good business to have
-hedgehog days. I know, I know! When you’re feelin’ that way, that’s the
-way you feel, as the fox said to the bear in the trap. But you ain’t
-doin’ yourself no good, and you ain’t any perticular help to the rest
-of the community.”
-
-“Hang the community!”
-
-“Jest what the hedgehog says,” quoth Lon tranquilly. He carried his rug
-into the barn; brought out another; brushed skilfully for a minute.
-
-“Hunt up some of the boys, Sam,” he advised. “Try lowerin’ your spines,
-and see if they won’t keep down after a while.”
-
-“Don’t want to.”
-
-“Bad as that, eh?”
-
-Sam disdained to make reply. Lon pursed his lips.
-
-“Sonny, this won’t do. It’s bad medicine. Say, where’ll you be at if
-you behave like this when you go to St. Mark’s?”
-
-“I’ll get along all right.”
-
-Lon brushed furiously for a little. “I--I dunno’s there’s but--but one
-way--for some folks to learn things,” he said jerkily. “When you’re
-there--jest one among two-three hundred boys--it’ll be different, now I
-tell you! We put up with you; they won’t.”
-
-“Huh! Who’s afraid?”
-
-“I’d be--if I was you.”
-
-“Bah!”
-
-Lon shook his head. “Sam,” he said, “if I thought this was a real
-in-growin’ attack, I’d be worried a heap wuss than I am. But I’m
-worried enough as it is. Now, I’ll give you a good tip. If you don’t
-want to see the other boys, go for a good, long tramp. Walk it off!
-That’s jest what the real hedgehog can’t do--his legs ain’t long
-enough.”
-
-“No fun walking--day like this.”
-
-Lon was a patient soul. “Wal, why don’t you go huntin’, then?”
-
-“What for? Rabbits?”
-
-“If you can’t get anything bigger. But you might land a shot at a deer.
-’Member what day this is? First of December! Law on deer goes off, and
-stays off till the fifteenth.”
-
-“Oh!” said Sam. In the new interest he almost forgot, for an instant,
-that he had a grievance against the universe. But it was only for an
-instant. “But I wouldn’t have the luck to get a shot at a buck, or a
-doe, either. The crowd will have started out early, and scared every
-deer within ten miles of town,” he concluded pessimistically.
-
-“Don’t be too sure of that.”
-
-“’Tis sure!” Sam insisted. “Then what’ll I do for a gun?”
-
-“Got your own, haven’t you?”
-
-“What! Try for a deer with a ‘twenty-two’?”
-
-“Why not? It’s big enough, if it gets to the right spot.”
-
-Sam fell back to his second line of defense. “Well, there’ll be no deer
-anywhere near town.”
-
-“Who says so?”
-
-“I do!” snapped the boy.
-
-Lon bent toward him, and lowered his voice. “Sam, a feller was tellin’
-me last night about a herd that’s been feedin’ in close--right back of
-old Bill Marlow’s barn--big buck and three-four more. Old orchard in
-there, you know. And that’s so nigh to town most folks won’t look for
-’em there. But there they be--or there they were as late as yesterday,
-anyhow. And, by gum! if I was you, I’d scout out that way on the
-chance--that is, if your mother says it’s all right,” he added hastily.
-
-In spite of himself, Sam’s ambition was fired. A shot at a deer! That
-would be worth while.
-
-“You--you’re certain they were there yesterday?” he asked.
-
-“Bill Marlow told me himself. And you can be sure of one thing--he
-didn’t tell many other folks. Bill ain’t no gossip.”
-
-Sam nodded. He knew something of Mr. Marlow’s habit of taciturnity.
-Doubter though he might be, the prospect was brightening. He had heard
-old hunters tell stories of cases in which deer had been killed almost
-in the outskirts of the village, while sportsmen ranging farther afield
-had been rewarded with sight of neither buck nor doe.
-
-“Well, I suppose I might as well have a look,” he said not too
-graciously.
-
-“Of course you might!”
-
-Sam took a step toward the house. “Of course, with my luck----”
-
-“Oh, you never can tell,” Lon reminded him.
-
-“Still, I might as well be wasting time that way as any other,” said
-Sam sourly, and quickened his pace.
-
-“Don’t forget to tell your mother!” Lon called after him.
-
-Sam waved a hand in reply, and went on to the house.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II SAM TAKES CHANCES
-
-
-In simple fairness it should be said that Sam Parker meditated no
-breach of parental authority. Indeed, as he was permitted to own a
-little rifle, and to hunt for small game, it was possible that no
-serious objection would have been raised to his quest for deer, though
-there might have been scant faith in his success. But Sam, as it was
-fated, was not to secure permission for his expedition.
-
-Mrs. Parker was not in the dining-room. Sam saw that the room was
-unoccupied, and went on to the library. It, too, failed to reward him
-for his search. So did the living-room. He strode into the hall, and
-took station by the foot of the stairs.
-
-“Mother! Oh, Mother!” he called. “Say, Mother! Mother!”
-
-There was no reply from above stairs or below.
-
-“But I say, Mother!” His voice rose shrilly in his impatience. “Where
-are you? Oh, Ma, Ma, Ma!”
-
-A door at the back of the hall opened, but the head which appeared was
-that of Maggie.
-
-“Don’t make such a racket, Sam!” she cautioned. “What do you want,
-anyway?”
-
-“Where’s Mother? I’ve got to see her--right off!”
-
-“Well, she ain’t here.”
-
-“Why not?” demanded the boy hotly.
-
-Maggie tossed her head. “Because she can’t very well be in two places
-at once. And she’s run over to see Mis’ Lake for a minute.”
-
-Sam stamped his foot. “Minute--nothing! I know what that means. She’ll
-stay half an hour.”
-
-“Well, why shouldn’t she, if she wants to?” said Maggie coolly. And
-then, being busy, she closed the door and went back to her work.
-
-Sam scowled; hesitated briefly; reached resolution; marched into the
-library. His little rifle stood in its appointed place against the
-wall, beside his father’s double-barreled gun. “The armory corner” of
-the library was a family joke; for though Sam’s rifle was frequently
-in use, the shotgun had not been taken out of the room in years. It was
-a fine weapon, of a noted make, and highly prized by its owner, who,
-however, had not hunted for many seasons; though regularly he planned
-expeditions in the woods, and bought a fresh stock of ammunition.
-
-Sam laid eager hold upon his rifle; then, of a sudden, seemed to be
-seized by scorn of it. After all, it was never meant for big game. Why,
-with its short cartridges and light charges of powder, it was hardly
-more than a toy! Really, it was intended for target practice.
-
-“Yet, for all that, it’s a rifle,” said the boy to himself. It was odd
-how, once his prejudice was aroused, arguments presented themselves to
-strengthen his objections. “And the law says you can’t hunt deer with
-rifles.”
-
-Here he was speaking by the book. The statute, which provided an open
-season from December 1st to December 15th, also forbade the use of
-rifles by sportsmen. Possibly a very lenient judge might have held that
-Sam’s “pop-gun” hardly classed with the high-power, long-range weapons
-against which the law was aimed, and might have deemed it annoying
-rather than dangerous to two-footed or four-footed creatures; but Sam,
-at the moment, was not disposed to be liberal in his interpretation. He
-restored the piece to its place. He picked up the shotgun.
-
-Temptation was strong upon him. Wasn’t it true that if he had not
-been told that he could use the gun he also had not been expressly
-forbidden to lay hands upon it? Nothing had been said about it either
-way. And didn’t his father wish him to have some knowledge of firearms?
-Of course he did! Oh, but it was a wonderfully persuasive voice,
-which seemed to be whispering in his ear! It was so seductive that it
-frightened him--a very, very little.
-
-Sam hastily put down the gun. Yet he lingered in its neighborhood. Half
-absently he opened a drawer in his father’s desk. There, in a corner,
-was a paper box, labeled “3-1/4 drams, smokeless; shot 00.” Cartridges
-for deer shooting! Surely here was Fate’s own finger pointing the way.
-
-The boy drew a long breath. He lifted the cover of the box; took out
-half a dozen of the cartridges; thrust them into a pocket. Then he
-caught up the shotgun, and strode out of the library.
-
-There was nobody to halt him or question him. Maggie was fully occupied
-in the kitchen, and his mother had not returned. Leaving the house by
-the front door, he avoided chance of observation by Lon Gates, who
-still was at work in the barn. Not that Lon would have stopped him;
-for the hired man would have supposed him to be sallying forth with
-his mother’s permission. Nevertheless, Sam preferred to have his going
-unnoted. He turned the corner of the house--the corner away from the
-barn; stole back through the yard; climbed a fence, and found himself
-in a narrow lane. It led to a side street, which, in turn, brought him
-to a road running into the country.
-
-His gun tucked under his arm, Sam walked briskly; and as the Parker
-house happened to be on an edge of the town, it was but a very few
-minutes before he had open fields on either hand. Ahead of him was
-the low hill on which the Marlow farmhouse stood; and farther on were
-loftier wooded summits. In summer the scenery of the region was
-pleasantly picturesque, but on an overcast December day a stranger
-might have found the prospect somewhat dreary. Sam, cheered by the
-spirit of adventure, and the better for the exercise, began to shake
-off his sulkiness; and he was whistling almost blithely when, at a
-bend in the road, he saw two boys approaching. Physically, they were
-in marked contrast. One was tall and thin, with a peculiarly angular
-effect at elbows and knees; the other was short and plump, with a
-round, good-humored face. Both hailed Sam eagerly.
-
-“Hi there! Where are you going? What you doing with that artillery?”
-sang out the tall lad.
-
-“Don’t fire! I’ll surrender,” chuckled his companion.
-
-Sam halted. He brought his gun to parade rest. An onlooker might have
-suspected that he was not seeking secrecy regarding errand or armament
-in the case of these two friends.
-
-“Hullo, Step!” said he. “Same to you, Poke! And what am I doing? Oh,
-just looking around on the chance of bagging something.”
-
-The tall youth was carrying a package, wrapped in a newspaper. He laid
-it on the ground, and took the gun from Sam’s hands, balancing the
-weapon lovingly and finally raising it to his shoulder.
-
-“Gee, but what a daisy!” he exclaimed. “Whose is it? Yours?”
-
-“Oh, it isn’t exactly mine, Step, but I’m using it,” said Sam.
-
-Any boy could have told how Clarence Jones came by his nickname. “Step”
-was an abbreviation of “Step-ladder”; and undeniably Master Jones
-did bear a resemblance to that valuable, if not graceful, article of
-household equipment.
-
-“Here, let me take the shooting-iron!” the plump youth urged. His name
-was Arthur Green, but he was called “Poke,” because one so easily could
-dig a finger into his fat sides. Having placed the basket he had been
-carrying beside Step’s bundle, his hands were free to lay hold upon the
-gun. There was a little tussle, and Poke captured the prize.
-
-“My eyes! but this is a crackerjack!” was his comment. “Jiminy, but
-you’re the lucky chap, Sam! What are you after?”
-
-Sam did his best to appear blasé. “Oh, thought maybe I might get a shot
-at a buck.”
-
-The reception of the remark was not flattering. “You!” jeered Step;
-Poke laughed.
-
-“Why not?” Sam demanded, indignantly.
-
-“That’s ri-right; why not?” Poke was quivering with amusement. “All
-you’ve got to do is to hold the gun and pull the trigger; and if only a
-deer happens to walk in the way, the gun’ll do the rest.”
-
-Sam snatched the weapon from the jester. “Oh, cut the comedy!” he
-snapped. “There’s nothing funny about it. I’ll bet you fifty men and
-boys are out for deer to-day, and I’ve just as good a chance as any
-of them can have of running into a herd. And if I want to take a
-chance----Come, now! what’s ridiculous in that?”
-
-Step was disposed to side with Sam. “There’s sense, Poke. Stop your
-kidding. I want to ask Sam something.”
-
-“Well, what is it?” queried Master Parker guardedly.
-
-“It’s about St. Mark’s. Are you sure you’re going there?”
-
-“Why--why----” Sam hesitated. “Why, I’m practically sure, I guess.
-Father and I were talking it over last week; and I gathered that if I
-passed the mid-year examinations here he’d let me transfer.”
-
-Step was rubbing his chin. “Well, that’s what I wanted to know. I’ve
-been campaigning to get my folks to send me, but they’re hanging off
-till they learn what your father will do with you.”
-
-Sam’s petulance had vanished. “Great Scott, Step, but it would be
-cracking if we could go together!” he cried. “Say, Poke, get after your
-family! We three have been pals ever since we can remember. It’d be
-bully to take the gang to St. Mark’s.”
-
-Poke shook his head. “Too bad, but there’s no hope for me. Little old
-High School has got to be good enough for Yours Truly.”
-
-“Oh, the school’s all right,” said Sam. “Only--as my father puts
-it--it’s case of general versus special. We can fit for college here,
-but the preparatory course is but one of several, while at St. Mark’s
-it’s the whole thing. That ought to mean a better ‘fit.’ And you know
-the fun the fellows have there, and the athletics, and all the rest of
-it.”
-
-Poke’s expression was uncommonly serious. “You’ve set your heart on
-going, Sam, haven’t you?”
-
-“It’ll be broken if I don’t go.”
-
-Poke gave a funny little sigh. “Oh, well, they’ll need some of us to
-stay home and run the errands, I reckon. And I guess I’m unanimously
-elected. Here’s one, for instance.” And he picked up his basket.
-
-“What have you got there?” Sam asked.
-
-“Eggs! Two dozen--all Mrs. Trask could spare. And fifty-five cents a
-dozen! Say, when I’m carrying this basket, I feel like a walking cash
-register!”
-
-Step had resumed possession of his package. “And here’s one of Mrs.
-Trask’s roosters--five and a half pounds, dressed. I’m some plutocrat
-myself.”
-
-Sam shouldered his gun. “We’re all pretty richly loaded to-day,” said
-he. “I suppose if I kill an eight-point buck you won’t care to have me
-send a haunch to either of you?”
-
-“Oh, well, I’ll take it--as a favor to you,” quoth Step.
-
-“Same here!” chimed in Poke. Then he was seized by an idea. “Look here,
-Sam! If you shoot anything--short of a heifer calf--bring it down to
-the club this afternoon, and we’ll have a feed. Both of us are going to
-be there.”
-
-“But come, anyway,” urged Step. “If you don’t hit bird or beast, you’ll
-have a story to tell of the big ones that got away.”
-
-Sam nodded. “All right; I’ll be there,” he promised readily.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III THE LUCK OF A LONG SHOT
-
-
-At the base of the hill crowned by the Marlow house the woods came
-close to the road. Years before the pines had been cut off, and in
-their place had come in a second growth of hard wood, scrubby, tangled
-and dense. On many of the trees, especially the oaks, dead leaves still
-were thick, affording cover for game and adding considerably to the
-difficulties of hunting novices.
-
-Sam climbed the fence, and plunged into the thickets to the right.
-It was his intention to work around the base of the hill, and thus
-reach the old orchard, of which Lon Gates had spoken; but he quickly
-discovered that the plan was more easily made than carried out. There
-was a good deal of underbrush, and the ground was rough, stony in
-places and swampy in the tiny valleys. Moreover, as he tried to advance
-as silently as possible, and to keep a keen, if limited, lookout,
-his progress was slow as well as wearisome. With all his vigilance,
-however, he saw nothing and heard nothing to indicate the presence of
-anything which would serve as target for his aim. No rabbit scurried
-away, and there was no whir of wings among the branches. As for
-deer--why, there was nothing to hint that buck or doe was to be found
-thereabouts.
-
-He had slipped a couple of cartridges into his gun, and felt prepared
-for any emergency; but an emergency declined to present itself. Even
-when he reached the little brook, which skirted the hill, the silence
-of the woods was unbroken, except by the subdued murmur of the stream.
-He paused for a moment, listening intently but vainly; then moved on,
-following the course of the brook. The going was now a trifle easier,
-though clumps of trees and bushes still narrowed the view.
-
-For perhaps a quarter of an hour his progress was absolutely
-uneventful, and unrelieved by even a false alarm. A turn in the brook
-warned him that he had passed the farmhouse, and was nearing the old
-orchard. More cautiously than ever he changed his course, and began to
-climb the slope on his right, the first, as he knew, of a series of low
-ridges. He reached its top without mishap, and halted to reconnoiter.
-
-From somewhere, afar off, the wind brought a sound to his ears, which
-set his pulse bounding and made him tighten his hold on his gun. It was
-a sound he could not mistake, faint though it was. Some other hunter
-had found something to fire at; perhaps the lucky fellow had sent a
-charge of buckshot into a deer!
-
-Just in front of Sam, and on the verge of the farther slope, was a mass
-of tangled bushes. He dropped to his knees, and slowly tunneled a way
-through the barrier. From its shelter he could look down into a ravine,
-beyond which rose the second ridge.
-
-For several minutes he lay motionless in his burrow, peering into the
-gully and straining his ears for the rustle of branches or the crack of
-dried twig. Once he thought he heard both from the lower ground to his
-left; but he could not be sure, and the disturbance was not repeated.
-
-[Illustration: HIS FINGER TREMBLED ON THE TRIGGER]
-
-Suddenly, from another direction--straight across the ravine and near
-the top of the ridge--came sounds of movements in the undergrowth.
-Instinctively, Sam brought the gun to his shoulder; its muzzle barely
-protruded from the branches. His finger trembled on the trigger. And
-then his eager eye had a glimpse of a darker patch amidst the dried
-leaves, a patch which seemed to be moving very, very slowly.
-
-Sam had heard tales of “buck fever,” and had laughed at the plight
-of its victims; but now he could sympathize with them. His heart was
-pumping furiously; he was trembling from head to foot; every muscle
-seemed to be relaxed and helpless. And, as if to mock him, that dark
-spot across the ravine grew clearer and more distinct. It was too high
-from the ground to suggest the presence of any of the smaller animals
-likely to be found in the woods.
-
-“That--that’s a deer over there!” Sam told himself desperately. “It--it
-can’t be anything else!”
-
-With an effort he summoned all his will. The swaying barrels along
-which he glanced steadied. His finger pressed the trigger. There was a
-roar which seemed to him as loud as thunder. His right shoulder ached
-under what was like a smart blow from the butt of the gun. A thin wisp
-of smoke blew away from the muzzle, and was lost in the branches.
-
-On the other side of the gully was violent commotion. The dark spot
-vanished. In its stead appeared the bare head of a man!
-
-Sam uttered a queer, faint, choking cry of horror. The gun dropped from
-his hands. His head sank to the ground, and he lay, face downward, for
-the moment utterly overcome. Through his recklessness and folly he
-had shot a fellow being. Terrible certainty was his that he had not
-missed his aim, and that he had wounded, perhaps fatally, the victim
-of his criminal carelessness. There flashed upon him all the possible
-consequences of his act--arrest, imprisonment, disgrace; sorrow and
-suffering for his parents; pain and anguish for the stranger, even if
-he survived his wounds.
-
-For a little Sam closed his eyes, but he could not keep from his
-ears the ominous sounds from the other ridge. The man had not cried
-out; but there was a wild crashing of brush, as if he were writhing
-convulsively in the thicket. Presently the sounds grew less distinct.
-The man must be weakening from loss of blood! Sam’s imagination
-pictured him lying in a crimson pool, and the boy shuddered at the
-thought. Yet it nerved him to the duty which he knew was his to do.
-
-Sam had faults enough, but lack of courage to face the music, as the
-saying goes, was not among them. Plainly, the way for retreat was open
-for him, if he chose to take it; there was nobody to interfere. But
-Sam, once he had recovered somewhat from the shock of his disaster, set
-himself resolutely to the task of making such amends as he might.
-
-He crawled out of the protecting bushes, and got upon his feet. For
-a moment or two he stood, listening intently; but now there was no
-sound from beyond the ravine. Then, with a sort of grim and unhappy
-determination, he began to descend the slope. At the bottom he paused
-again, but heard nothing either to lessen or to increase his anxiety.
-Then he went on, climbing doggedly and steadily to the clump where
-first had appeared the dark spot, and then the head of a man. The
-quiet of the place was unbroken. A new and terrible fear laid hold upon
-him: perhaps the wounded man had already succumbed. It needed all his
-grit and courage at last to part the branches and look in at the spot
-where the man had stood.
-
-Sam looked, and looked again; and felt that he could not believe the
-evidence of his eyes. For three or four feet in each direction the
-brush had been trampled down, but there was nobody there!
-
-A great sense of relief filled the boy. At all events, he had not
-killed anybody! There was even a second in which he cherished wild hope
-that what he had seen had been merely a vision raised by some trick of
-over-taxed nerves. But the hope was doomed to swift dismissal. There
-was blood on the dried leaves on the ground--not much blood, to be
-sure, but enough to make a fresh, dark stain.
-
-Kneeling, Sam examined the sanguinary traces very carefully. As he
-rose, his expression curiously combined satisfaction and bewilderment.
-It was manifest that the stranger’s wound had neither bled copiously
-nor crippled him; and that he had been able to make off. But whither
-had he gone? Why had he not charged across the gully? And why had he
-not raised a warning shout to prevent a second shot?
-
-“Jiminy!” said Sam to himself. “Jiminy! but I don’t believe he got
-sight of me at all! I was covered by the bushes, and there was hardly
-any smoke, and if he were looking another way--why--why----” He broke
-off, frankly unable to weigh and decide the probabilities of the
-strange affair.
-
-There still remained the possibility of finding and following the man’s
-trail; but Sam was not especially skilled in such matters. He fancied
-that for a few yards he could make out evidences of somebody forcing a
-way through the undergrowth, but then he came to a sort of woods path
-along the backbone of the ridge, and there lost the slender clews upon
-which he had depended. Certainly he could discover no more drops of
-blood.
-
-Sam went back to the trampled space, and searched it minutely from end
-to end, and from side to side. He had his trouble for his pains. He
-found nothing to throw light upon the mystery.
-
-“Well, this does beat me!” he confessed, and shook his head in
-perplexity. “I never heard of anything like it. And I don’t want to
-hear of anything like it again--ugh!” He gave a little shiver. “I know
-when I’ve had enough--and too much. I’m going home, and I’m going to
-get there, and put up this gun, as quick as my legs will carry me to
-the house. And you can bet I’m going to keep quiet about this. And--and
-I hope the other fellow will keep quiet, too. Come now, Sam Parker!
-Brace up! Forward march!”
-
-Thus encouraging himself, Master Sam set off at a round pace for the
-highway, but when he reached it his speed lessened. He had a new sense
-of merciful escape from perils when he was out of the dark woods and in
-the open road; and with it came a peculiar weakness and uncertainty in
-his knees. He was glad to sit down on a boulder beside the ditch and
-rest for what seemed to him a long, long time. Finally he rose, and
-trudged toward the town. He went slowly, and his face was thoughtful.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV THE CLUB GETS A NEW NAME
-
-
-It was well after noon when Sam came up the narrow lane behind the
-Parker place, and scaled the back fence. Hasty observation from its top
-showed him that the coast was clear. He stole through the yard, kept
-the house between himself and the barn, and let himself in at the front
-door.
-
-The house was as quiet as well ordered homes generally are at that
-hour, when dinner has been disposed of, and supper is still afar off.
-Sam tiptoed into the library. With feverish haste he put his father’s
-gun in its place, first removing the cartridges from the breach. Then
-he opened the desk drawer, and restored his stock of cartridges to
-their box. He hesitated a moment over the empty shell, being, indeed,
-tempted to slip it in with the rest. At a casual glance the box would
-then seem to be full. But Sam, with all his imperfections, was not
-given to tricks and deceits.
-
-“I won’t do it!” he said, with decision, and slipped the shell into his
-pocket.
-
-As he stepped into the hall, Maggie hailed him from the top of the
-stairs.
-
-“Is that you, Sam?” she called. “I thought I heard the front door open,
-and I wondered who ’twas.”
-
-So she hadn’t seen him enter the house; therefore she could not
-know that he had been carrying the gun. Thus was another danger of
-investigation avoided.
-
-“Yes; I came in that way,” he said. “Father home yet?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Where’s Mother?”
-
-“Lon’s drivin’ her over to see old Mis’ Hardee at Webster Mills.”
-
-There are times when things do seem to have been arranged most
-fortunately. Sam could have thrown up his cap and cheered. But Maggie
-was beginning to descend the stairs.
-
-“Look here, Sam Parker! Why didn’t you come home to dinner?” she
-demanded.
-
-“Oh, I’m all right. I don’t want anything to eat.”
-
-Maggie continued to descend the stairs. “Don’t, eh? Where’d you get
-dinner? Did the Joneses invite you?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“The Greens, then?”
-
-“Why--why--no; they didn’t.”
-
-Maggie had reached the foot of the flight. “So you come traipsin’ home
-after everything’s cleaned up and put away, and expect me to muss up
-my kitchen for you? I like that! Well, you can just guess again, Sam
-Parker!”
-
-“But I don’t want anything, Maggie!” Sam said pacifically. “Honest, I
-don’t. I’m not hungry.”
-
-“That’s lucky--seein’s there ain’t anything,” said Maggie drily.
-However, she was moving toward the kitchen. “Come along with you,
-though!” she flung over her shoulder.
-
-Sam followed her meekly. “You don’t need to bother,” he insisted.
-
-Maggie paid not the slightest heed to his protests. “Don’t see how
-folks can expect to keep a house decent, with all the overgrown boys in
-town runnin’ in for snacks between meals,” she grumbled. “Well, now
-you’re here, you might as well sit down.” She pointed to a table, bare
-but spotlessly clean. “S’pose I’ll have to give you some dry bread or a
-cracker, maybe. And the water from the faucet’s cold enough to drink at
-this time of year.”
-
-Sam sat down. “Oh, anything’ll do,” he said humbly.
-
-“Umph!” said Maggie, and opened the door of the oven. “Well, I do
-declare! How’d that happen?” And from the oven she took a plate, on
-which was a generous slice of steak, also a big potato. “Goodness
-gracious! but I must be gettin’ flighty! I’d ’a’ said for sure I put
-those things in the ice chest. Don’t it beat all how things happen!
-Course, the meat’s cooked hard as a rock, but you might as well have it
-as Hannibal.” She set the plate on the table with a bang. “Well, now
-the stuff’s before you, what are you goin’ to do with it?”
-
-Sam showed her. In spite of the morning’s adventures he had an
-excellent appetite. Maggie, observing, brought a glass of milk and a
-large piece of pie from the pantry. Then, standing before him, she
-studied the youth closely.
-
-“Sam, what you been doin’? What mischief you been up to?”
-
-“Noth--nothing,” mumbled Sam.
-
-Maggie shook her head. “Don’t you try to tell me, Sam Parker! I ain’t
-known you years and years for nothing. Where you been?”
-
-Sam took thought. Maggie was his sworn ally and help in time of
-trouble, but he feared she couldn’t be brought to look kindly upon the
-incidents of his morning.
-
-“Oh! I--I went for a--for a walk--out in the woods,” he stammered.
-
-“Then what?”
-
-“Then I came home,” said Sam.
-
-“So I see!” quoth Maggie drily. “But go on! As you were sayin’----?”
-
-Sam wriggled. “This--this is bully pie, Maggie,” said he, in an effort
-to change the topic.
-
-Her severity of expression deepened. “Mebbe it is, Sam. But you can’t
-have another piece ’less you ’fess up.”
-
-“But I--I can’t confess.”
-
-“Bosh!” said Maggie tartly.
-
-Sam, in his turn, regarded her gravely. He had no intention of
-confiding in his old friend, but plainly it was a point of interest
-to learn if he struck people as one who was burdened with a terrible
-secret.
-
-“Well, I got awfully tired, for one thing,” said he. “And it was chilly
-and--er--er--and lonesome. And so I show it, do I?”
-
-“You show something fast enough--I ain’t sure what.”
-
-“Oh!” said Sam, and pushed back his chair. He got upon his feet, and
-crossed to the door. His hand on the knob, he looked at Maggie, whose
-brow was furrowed.
-
-“Say, it was mighty clever of you to save my dinner. Thank you a lot!”
-he cried. Then he opened the door, and went out hurriedly.
-
-The talk in the kitchen had given him warning. If he would not rouse
-suspicion, he must increase the gaiety of his air and manner. As he
-strolled down the street, he was whistling shrilly; and he shifted to a
-merrier tune when he turned in at the gate of the Joneses’ place, and
-walking up to the door of a small and very trim outbuilding, knocked
-thrice.
-
-A few months earlier Mr. Jones, disposing of a pony, whose legs had
-become a good deal shorter than Step’s, had turned the pony’s quarters
-over to his son, with the understanding that the little house was to
-be used for a club, which the boys were forming. Step and his chums at
-once took possession. They worked like beavers, cleaning, sweeping,
-painting and furnishing the building, and succeeded in making for
-themselves a very attractive meeting place. The club--it was called
-the Adelphi--had flourished mightily, and membership in it was highly
-prized.
-
-Sam’s triple knock brought no response, being, indeed, somewhat of an
-empty form and ceremony; and after waiting for a moment--this, too, was
-part of the accepted program--he opened the door and walked in. Step
-and Poke were in the lounging room, recently the space given to the
-pony cart. Its walls were gay with college pennants, photographs, and
-pictures cut from magazines and newspapers; in one corner was a lounge,
-worn but still useful; the chairs represented contributions from the
-attics of several families; there was a serviceable table, on which
-stood a shaded lamp; and an oil heater effectually dispelled the chill
-of the afternoon air.
-
-“Hi there, fellows!” Sam sang out. “What are you doing to kill time?”
-
-It had been his desire to impress them with his ease of mind, but
-neither betrayed much interest in his mood. Step, huddled in an old
-steamer chair, was a picture of depression and angles, with his knees
-almost on a level with his ears, and his long arms sagging till his
-hands touched the floor. Poke was standing before a blackboard, which
-hung on the wall. As he turned to regard the newcomer, his round face
-was puckered in a frown.
-
-“Oh, you, Sam?” he said absently.
-
-“Oh, you?” croaked Step like a dismal echo.
-
-Sam glanced from one to the other. “What’s the row?” he inquired. “You
-two look like chickens with the pip.”
-
-“Chickens? Ugh!” Step fairly shuddered.
-
-“Huh!” snorted Poke; and turning to the blackboard, dabbed viciously at
-it with the eraser which he had in his left hand.
-
-“What are you doing?” queried Sam. He moved nearer to Poke, and glanced
-curiously at the board. It had borne, in bold lettering:
-
- _Adelphi Club
- Rules and By-laws._
-
-Now, however, there was only a chalky smear to show where the lines had
-been. “What are you doing?” he repeated. “Say, you’ve spoiled it!”
-
-“Huh! This club needs a new name,” growled Poke. “I’m trying to think
-of one that’ll fit.”
-
-Sam wheeled and addressed the youth in the chair. “Step, what ails him?
-What ails you? What’s the matter, anyway?”
-
-Step clasped his hands about his knees. “What ails us? Guess you
-wouldn’t be asking if you knew!”
-
-“Course I wouldn’t!” Sam agreed rather testily to what might be called
-a fairly self-evident proposition.
-
-“Hang the luck!” groaned the doleful Step.
-
-Poke whipped about. “Confound it, but there’s more than luck!” he
-cried. “You’re letting us off too easy, Step. Oh, I know--I know what
-you’d say! We didn’t mean to have it happen, but it did happen; so
-what’s the use in talking? And it was just like a lot of other things
-that keep happening to us, and will keep on happening till we have more
-sense.”
-
-“Huh!” came from the depths of the chair.
-
-Sam dropped a hand on Poke’s shoulder. “Translate, won’t you? You’re
-worse than old Cæsar when he tells about building his bridge.”
-
-“Darn that dog!” wailed Step.
-
-Sam tightened his grip on Poke’s plump shoulder. “So there was a dog,
-was there?” said he. “That’s a start, anyway. Go on!”
-
-Poke wriggled free. “Yes; there was a dog, and it was that big hound
-of Mr. Mercer’s. And it came along, and smelled Step’s chicken, and
-grabbed for it, and gobbled it, and knocked over my basket of eggs, and
-ran away. And we chased it, but couldn’t catch it. And Step lost his
-chicken, and every one of my eggs was smashed. And ain’t that trouble
-enough for one day?”
-
-“But I don’t quite understand. It--it’s sort of complicated. I don’t
-see how the hound could grab the chicken and upset your basket all at
-once.”
-
-Poke shifted weight from one foot to the other. “Well--well, you see,
-we--we’d sort of stopped to look at a knife Tom Appleton had bought;
-and we’d set the bundle and the basket on a stone wall; and the dog hit
-both when he jumped for one. That was the way of it. And say! did you
-ever hear of anything worse?”
-
-Sam’s smile was bitter. “Anything worse!” he repeated scornfully. What
-was a poor tale of broken eggs and looted chicken to one who, by pure
-mischance, had shot a man?
-
-Poke resented his friend’s tone. “Huh! Much you know about it! Dollar
-and ten cents’ worth of eggs gone--just like that!”
-
-“And a five-and-a-half-pound rooster--five and a half pounds dressed!”
-chimed in Step.
-
-“Oh, well, that was hard luck,” Sam admitted. It had occurred to him
-that it was not wise to withhold sympathy if he would avoid suspicion
-of cherishing some terrible secret of his own.
-
-Poke was one of those ordinarily cheery souls who, on occasion, take
-melancholy consolation in contemplation of misfortunes.
-
-“I’ve been thinking things over,” he declared. “I’ve got an idea.
-It isn’t the thing itself that bothers, but the consequences. Look
-here, now! Mother had promised to make two angel cakes--takes eleven
-eggs for each cake. And she’d promised one for the church supper, and
-Jennie was to have the other for her club. And now Mother has got to
-disappoint the supper committee, and they’d told her they set ’special
-store by her angel cake. And she’s hot! And Jennie--say, Sam, if you
-had a sister, you’d know the fix I’m in. Jennie’s just sizzling. So I’m
-keeping away from the house. Gee, I’d never go home if I could help
-myself!”
-
-Step waved a long and pitiful hand. “Company for dinner to-morrow!” he
-said simply. “I’m lying low myself.”
-
-Sam meditated briefly. Since that terrible moment on the ridge he had
-gone through half a dozen phases of emotion. He had ranged from terror
-to exultation. His plans had varied from full confession to absolute
-silence. Now he was disposed to follow a course of inaction, based on a
-belief that the man had not been badly hurt, and that perhaps nothing
-ever would be heard of the affair. Of course, if report should be made;
-or if it should prove that the wounds were serious; or if the victim
-should turn out to be a poor man unable to pay a doctor’s bill--well,
-he wouldn’t cross bridges till he came to them. And, meanwhile, he
-would try to bear himself as if nothing untoward had happened--and
-thank his lucky stars that he could keep his secret, even for a time.
-
-“Well, that was hard luck!” he said again, and put more heart in the
-speech.
-
-Poke returned to the blackboard. “Might as well learn a lesson when
-there’s a lesson to be learned,” he rumbled. “Struck me, too, we
-ought to post something here to remind us that it pays to keep out of
-trouble. I’d like to give the club a name that’d mean something--see?
-I can think of mottoes enough--‘Look before you leap, and then go
-’round,’ and ‘You never can tell when it’s loaded,’ and a lot of
-others--but I’m stumped for a name. Now, if I----”
-
-There he broke off. Sam, elbowing him out of the way, stood before the
-board. For a second young Parker hesitated. Then he caught up a piece
-of chalk, and scrawled in big letters:
-
- _The Safety First Club_.
-
-Poke clapped his hands. “Jiminy! but that’s just the idea I was groping
-for. Prime, ain’t it, Step?”
-
-Step nodded gloomily. “Fa-fair,” he admitted.
-
-Sam laid down his chalk. He dusted his hands a trifle theatrically.
-
-“Like the name, do you?” said he. “Came to me all of a sudden.”
-
-“It’s a crackerjack!” declared Poke warmly. “Hits the nail right on the
-head. But that makes me think, Sam--where’s that deer you were going to
-hit? Haven’t got that haunch in your pocket, have you?”
-
-“No,” said Sam curtly.
-
-“Bet you didn’t see a deer!”
-
-“I--I didn’t.”
-
-Poke was beginning to recover his spirits. “Huh! Knew you wouldn’t,”
-said he, and chuckled fatly. “This country’s hunted to death. Why, so
-many men with guns were out to-day that one of ’em had to let drive at
-another, just for something to shoot at.”
-
-“What!” gasped Sam. “What’s that? What do you mean?”
-
-“Just what I say.”
-
-Sam pulled out his handkerchief, and wiped drops of cold sweat from his
-forehead. “But--but----” he faltered.
-
-“It isn’t a case of ‘but’ or ‘if.’ Step there knows all about it. He
-saw them bringing him in.”
-
-Sam’s brain was reeling. “Bring-bringing him in?” he quavered.
-“Then--then he was badly hurt, after all! And who--who was he?”
-
-Poke was staring in bewildered fashion at Sam. “What’s upsetting you?
-Why, you’re white as a sheet!”
-
-“Never mind me! Who--who was it?”
-
-“Peter Groche.”
-
-“Pe-Peter Groche? And--and he--he’s wounded--maybe dying?”
-
-Poke laughed explosively. “Not he! Old rascal was never born to be
-shot.”
-
-“But you said they--they were bringing him in?”
-
-“Yes--to the lock-up!”
-
-Sam dropped into the nearest chair. “I don’t--don’t under-understand,”
-he said weakly.
-
-“It’s clear enough. Peter shot somebody else--or tried to.”
-
-Step joined in the conversation. “Well, he did wing him,” was his
-contribution.
-
-“Where?”
-
-“Oh, grazed his head, and plunked him in one hand,” said Step.
-
-Sam dug his finger-nails into his palms. “I don’t mean that--at least,
-that wasn’t what I tried to ask about. Where did the shooting take
-place?”
-
-“Out beyond Marlow hill somewhere. But you steered that way, didn’t
-you?”
-
-“In that general direction.” By a mighty effort Sam controlled his
-voice.
-
-“Then you may have been within a half mile of Peter Groche,” Step went
-on. “Maybe you heard his gun. Well, if you didn’t, he fired it, anyway.
-And he ’most got his man for keeps. But the Major wasn’t hurt badly,
-and he had had a glimpse of Peter a little earlier, and knew about
-where he was. So he beat it through the woods after him, and overtook
-him near the back road. And just then, by luck, along came Sheriff
-Whaley. So the sheriff and the Major asked Mr. Peter a question or
-two; and, getting no satisfaction, loaded him in the Whaley wagon and
-brought him in. And there’s going to be a trial Monday morning. And I
-guess it’s going to go hard with Groche. You see, he’s had a quarrel
-with the Major, and there are witnesses to testify that he made threats
-to get even. Then, too, there was an empty shell in one barrel of his
-gun, and he wouldn’t give any explanation of how it happened to be
-there. So I reckon he’ll get all that’s coming to him. The Major’s a
-bad man to have on your trail--hardest man in town, by thunder!”
-
-“Maj-Major----?” Poor Sam’s tone was that of one whose hopes are
-dwindling fast.
-
-“Yes siree! Hardest man in Plainville is Major Bates!” declared Step.
-“Anybody that harms him’ll be put through the works, I tell you!”
-
-Sam got upon his feet. With trembling limbs he moved to the door.
-
-“Why, what’s the matter?” Step called after him.
-
-“What’s your burning hurry?” asked Poke.
-
-Sam opened the door. “That stove makes it too stuffy in here,” he told
-them. “I--I’ve just got to have fresh air.” And out he went, closing
-the door behind him with a force suggesting that he did not care for
-company in his rambles.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V SAM FACES THE MUSIC
-
-
-Almost every town has the misfortune to include among its residents
-a few persons perhaps best described as “undesirable citizens.” In
-the case of Plainville by far the most undesirable of these was Peter
-Groche, idler, sot, brawler, and petty thief. On several occasions
-vigorous efforts had been made to rid the community of his presence;
-but Peter, unchastened by thrashings or jail sentences for robbing hen
-roosts or clothes-lines, persisted in turning up like the worst of bad
-pennies. There was, therefore, general satisfaction in the town when
-news spread that, at last, he had been caught in an offense so serious
-that Plainville reasonably could hope to be relieved of him for a term
-of several years; especially as the irascible, determined and energetic
-Major Bates was directly interested in his prosecution.
-
-Mr. Parker, returning from his trip to Epworth, heard the news
-down-town, and brought it home with him. Across the supper table he
-discussed the matter with his wife, and found her quite of his opinion
-that a shining example should be made of Peter Groche. The topic,
-in fact, fairly shared their attention with the annoying absence of
-the son of the house. Sam had not been home for dinner, Mrs. Parker
-announced; and now he appeared to have forgotten the supper hour.
-
-“I don’t know what has come over the boy,” she said. “He went out right
-after breakfast, and nobody but Maggie has seen him since. She says
-he came in about two o’clock and had lunch; and then went out again.
-I think you’d better talk to him seriously. He doesn’t understand how
-important it is to a growing boy to have his meals regularly.”
-
-“Very well; I’ll take him in hand,” said the father.
-
-Mrs. Parker gave a little sigh. “Ah! I feel, sometimes, as if Sam were
-growing away from me. He’s getting to be such a big fellow, you know.
-Now and then I can’t but have my doubts that I’m capable of managing
-him.”
-
-“Still, you’ve done very well so far,” her husband assured her. “Sam’s
-a pretty good boy, as boys go. I don’t happen to think of any other
-youngster for whom I’d care to exchange him. But if he’s getting beyond
-you--well, I’ll try my luck. Only”--he hesitated--“only, when I do,
-perhaps you’d better make it a strictly masculine session. I may have
-to lay down some rather rigid rules, and--well, it will be just as well
-not to have an over-merciful court of appeal too conveniently at hand.
-Send him to me when he comes in, and Master Sam and I will reach an
-understanding.”
-
-So they arranged it; and so it came to pass that when Sam walked into
-the library--the clocks were striking eight as he entered--his mother,
-after gently chiding him for his tardiness, slipped out. The shaded
-light, by which his father was reading, left the ends of the room in
-shadow, and Sam lingered for a moment by the door. At last he came
-forward, halting directly in front of his father.
-
-Mr. Parker looked up. “Well, young man----” he began, but suddenly his
-tone changed sharply. “What in the world have you been doing, Sam? You
-look as if you’d been dragged through a knot-hole!”
-
-Sam’s wan smile was more eloquent than his speech. “I shouldn’t wonder
-if I did, sir. I’ve been walking around and--and thinking.”
-
-“Where have you been walking?”
-
-“Around town, sir--up and down the streets--anywhere.”
-
-“Thinking all the while?”
-
-“Yes, sir; thinking hard.”
-
-“Been alone?”
-
-“All alone.”
-
-“Umph!” said Mr. Parker.
-
-Sam licked dry lips. “I’ve been thinking, and I’ve thought it
-out,--what I ought to do, sir. And--and I’m here to make a clean breast
-of things.”
-
-The father studied the boy’s face for a moment. “Sam,” he said slowly,
-“Sam, I can see that you’re greatly exercised about something or other.
-What it is I don’t know. I had intended to have you on the carpet for
-being late for dinner and supper, but I’m afraid this is something
-more serious. But whatever it is, I hope you’ll do just what you say
-you wish to do--make a clean breast of it.”
-
-“And face the music!” There was a new note in the boy’s voice, a firmer
-note.
-
-“That’s part of the game of life, Sam--if you play the game fairly and
-squarely.”
-
-Sam drew a long breath, and made his plunge. “Father, you’ve heard
-about the arrest of Peter Groche? They say he shot at Major Bates.
-Well, he didn’t--but I did!”
-
-Mr. Parker bent forward; he was looking into the boy’s eyes, and the
-boy did not quail under his scrutiny.
-
-“I don’t ask you if you’re in earnest, Sam. I know that you are. Go on!”
-
-“I took your gun this morning, and went out to the Marlow woods. I’d
-been told there were deer there. I was crouching under some bushes, and
-looking across a hollow, when I saw something dark on the other side.
-It moved, and I fired. Then a man’s head showed. I didn’t recognize
-him. I was so scared that I burrowed deeper in the bushes--hid for a
-while, sir. Then I realized I ought to do something. So I crossed the
-hollow. I found blood spots, but the man had gone away. It seemed
-as if he couldn’t have been badly hurt. Then I came home. I hoped I
-wouldn’t have to tell anybody, but--but now they’ve locked up Peter
-Groche for what I did.”
-
-“When did you learn of the arrest?”
-
-“This afternoon.”
-
-“And since then?”
-
-“I’ve been thinking it over--fighting it out with myself, sir.”
-
-Mr. Parker rose and crossed the room. He picked up the gun, threw open
-the breach, peered into the barrels.
-
-“You fired only once?”
-
-“Only once, sir. Here’s the empty cartridge.” Sam took the shell from
-his pocket.
-
-Mr. Parker put the gun in its place, and went back to his chair. There
-was a little pause; then said he:
-
-“You had your mother’s permission, did you, to take that gun?”
-
-“No, sir,” said Sam.
-
-“Or to go hunting?”
-
-“No, sir.”
-
-“Did you seek it?”
-
-Sam shook his head. “She was out, and I--well, I didn’t wait for her to
-come home.”
-
-“I see. By the way, were you under an impression that I had ever
-authorized such an expedition?”
-
-“No, sir,” said Sam frankly. “But, then, you’d never forbidden it,” he
-added.
-
-“There are several things it has never occurred to me to forbid you to
-do,” said his father drily.
-
-Sam nodded. “That’s so, sir. I don’t think much of the excuse.”
-
-“There we are of a mind. So you must have realized that you were doing
-wrong.”
-
-“I didn’t bother--think, I mean--about that part of it; that is, I
-didn’t seem to comprehend how wrong the thing might be. Of course, I
-understood that it wasn’t exactly--exactly proper.” Sam had difficulty
-in picking the word, and did not appear to be over-pleased with his
-choice.
-
-“Go on,” said his father. “Tell me just what you did when you reached
-the Marlow woods.”
-
-Sam obeyed. Very carefully he went over the incidents of the morning.
-He described his cautious advance through the thick growth, his
-ascent of the first ridge, his discovery of the dark object across
-the ravine. In detail he explained how he had conquered his attack of
-“buck fever”; how he had taken aim and fired; how he had been overcome
-by consternation when the head of a man appeared. He did not deny that
-he had been slow in crossing the gully. In fact, he made no attempt to
-present his case in a more favorable light than it deserved.
-
-Mr. Parker did not interrupt the story.
-
-“Sam,” he said, at its close, “this is an extraordinary yarn of yours.
-It is borne out in part by the empty cartridge shell. I can see,
-too, that one barrel of the gun has been discharged. Also I am fully
-convinced that you have tried to present the exact truth about the
-shooting. I shall assume that the facts are as you have stated them. I
-don’t need to add that they make the case very serious.”
-
-“I--I’m afraid it is, sir.”
-
-“Yet you haven’t hesitated to make confession?”
-
-Sam moved uneasily. “I--I--oh, but I did hesitate, sir. It was a hard
-pull to bring myself up to the point. I guess I walked miles and miles
-before I was ready to come back and tell you everything.”
-
-“I wonder,” said Mr. Parker meditatively, “I wonder if it occurred to
-you that you might run away from all the trouble.”
-
-The boy reddened. “It did occur to me, sir. And--you may think it
-a funny way to put it, but it’s true--my legs just seemed to be
-determined to carry me down to the railroad station. And they did! I
-was there a long time, looking at time-tables.”
-
-“But finally they lost interest?”
-
-“Yes, sir. I’d reasoned it out that there could be no use in bolting;
-it wouldn’t help anybody.”
-
-“It very seldom does help anybody, Sam.”
-
-“I guess that’s so, sir.”
-
-There was a long pause, which Mr. Parker ended.
-
-“Sam, we’ve got to consider the next step--no doubt you have considered
-it; for it necessarily follows your statement. You’ve declared your
-faith, so to speak; now you’ve got to supplement faith with works.”
-
-The boy nodded. “I know, sir. They’ve locked up Peter Groche. We--I,
-that is--have got to get him out; for he’s innocent.”
-
-“Precisely.”
-
-Sam could not repress a shudder. “He’s in the police station for
-something I did. When they release him, I suppose I’ll have to take
-his place. I don’t know much about law, but that would seem to
-be--er--er--to be----”
-
-“Essential justice?” queried his father.
-
-“That--that’s my idea, sir.”
-
-“I see. But how do you plan to bring it about?”
-
-Sam squared his shoulders. “By going down to the station and telling
-the officers what I’ve told you--everything. Then they’ll have to let
-Peter Groche go. And they--they can keep me.”
-
-“That would be a simple method; but there may be a better one--not so
-direct, but probably more effective.”
-
-Sam stared at his father. “More effective?” he repeated.
-
-“Yes. The officers might be slow to act. You have to remember that they
-think the case against Groche is pretty strong.”
-
-“But they’d have to believe me,” Sam urged.
-
-“Not so fast, son! Don’t forget that there is a good deal of
-circumstantial evidence against Groche. Your story would certainly
-create a doubt--and a strong doubt--in his favor; but with his
-reputation for evil doing, they would be reluctant to let him go and
-risk making a mistake. No; there is a surer way to achieve the result.”
-
-“And that is----?”
-
-“To go straight to Major Bates and give him your version.”
-
-“Oh!” gasped Sam, and blanched at thought of confronting the
-redoubtable Major, by long odds the most terrifying, overbearing and
-truculent person in all Plainville. “Oh, I--I’d rather not, Father!
-They can put me in a cell if they want to, but----”
-
-Mr. Parker rose to his feet. “We’ll go to the Major--at once!” he said,
-with decision.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI DEALING WITH THE OGRE
-
-
-Major Bates lived in a big, brick house, made gloomy and forbidding by
-tall evergreen trees growing close to its walls. It had been, in its
-day, one of the noted mansions of the town, and still maintained much
-of its former state. Its hedges were trimmed to a nicety; its graveled
-walks were straight of edge and free of encroaching grass; its lawn
-was the smoothest to be found for miles around; the brass rails beside
-the steps shone with frequent polishing. Yet, with all this care,
-there was something cheerless about the place, something suggesting an
-institution rather than a home. To his few cronies the Major admitted
-that he liked to keep his premises “well policed,” as he termed it, in
-memory of his army days; but the townspeople generally were of opinion
-that the verdict of a clever woman hit the case perfectly.
-
-“Wonderfully kept up; marvelously well ordered; excellent for
-everything--except comfortable living.”
-
-Such was her summary. Perhaps nobody but the Major would have taken
-serious objection to it. He was quite sure that things were as he
-wished to have them; and it did not occur to him that anybody else was
-called upon to consider the matter.
-
-This evening he was sitting alone in the big room he called his den, a
-room whose walls were lined with bookcases, gun racks and cabinets, and
-decorated with antlered heads of moose and deer. The pictures were few
-but good. Each hung as if its top had been adjusted with the aid of a
-spirit-level. The books on the shelves were like soldiers on parade.
-
-The master of the house, seated before his open fire, curiously matched
-the room. He was very neat and precise in dress; he held himself
-stiffly, and after a fashion which caused careless observers to credit
-him with greater height than he possessed. As a matter of fact, he
-was rather short in stature and thin to gauntness; though it seldom
-occurred to anybody to speak of him as a little man. Perhaps this was
-due to his domineering manner and striking face. The Major was a person
-to attract attention in any company. He had a shock of iron-gray hair,
-bushy eyebrows, a fiercely beaked nose, and a bristling moustache and
-goatee. His eyes were keen and piercing, and not often inclined to
-friendliness.
-
-It need hardly be said that he was not on terms of intimacy with the
-youth of Plainville. Not that they ventured to annoy him--far from it!
-Two-thirds of the boys in town would cross the street to avoid meeting
-him, no matter how clear might be their consciences of recent offense
-against him. But the Major, striding along, swinging his cane and
-grumbling to himself as he advanced, was just the sort of figure to
-which peaceful folk involuntarily yield the crown of the way. And this
-evening, though he was not marching belligerently through the town, but
-was sitting before his cheery fire, he looked even more warlike--and
-war-worn--than in his public appearances. There was a patch of
-court-plaster on his cheek, and his left hand was wrapped in a bandage.
-
-There was a deferential knock, and the door of the room opened. In
-stepped a man servant, severe of countenance. He advanced to the Major,
-and halting, stood at attention.
-
-“Mr. Parker--to see you, sir,” he reported. “Yes, sir; Mr. Parker and
-Master Parker.”
-
-The Major scowled. “What! Parker and that boy of his? What’s he here
-for? But show Parker in, of course. If the boy doesn’t want to come,
-don’t urge him. Perhaps he’ll wait in the parlor.”
-
-But Master Parker, albeit he gladly would have lingered behind, was not
-to be permitted to escape his ordeal. With dragging foot he entered the
-den at his father’s heels, and stood unhappily clutching his cap, while
-his elders shook hands somewhat formally.
-
-“Ah, Mr. Parker, glad to see you!” said the Major. “Be seated, I beg
-you. And come up to the fire. Chilly evening, sir; chilly, though
-seasonable.”
-
-“Major Bates, permit me to present my son, Samuel,” said Mr. Parker.
-
-Sam stepped forward with a resigned hopelessness like that of a
-condemned criminal. He felt himself quailing before the Major’s eye;
-but felt a surprising--and vaguely encouraging--heartiness in the grip
-the old soldier gave his timidly extended hand.
-
-“Samuel, I trust you are well,” quoth the Major, courteously enough.
-Then, not being impressed with the importance of minors in the scheme
-of the universe, he turned to the boy’s father, after suggesting to his
-youthful caller that he, too, take a chair near the fire.
-
-Mr. Parker cleared his throat. “Ahem, ahem! Major, I have been given to
-understand that you have been the victim of an unfortunate accident.”
-
-“Accident!” The Major sat straighter in the chair in which he had just
-seated himself. “Sir, that’s misuse of English. What I was victim of
-was a most cowardly and scoundrelly attack. Thank heaven, though, the
-perpetrator of the outrage was at once apprehended and taken into
-custody.”
-
-“You’re sure of the identity of the----”
-
-The Major’s eyes flashed; he was guilty of the discourtesy of
-interrupting a guest.
-
-“Am I sure? Sir, I am as absolutely certain of the miscreant as I am of
-this”--he touched the court-plaster on his cheek--“and of this”--he
-waved the bandaged hand. “I’ve two good reasons to remember him, sir.”
-
-“But, Major----”
-
-“Pardon me a moment! You may not know, but it is the fact that the
-fellow has threatened, repeatedly, to do me harm. It’s an old grudge.
-Years ago I was fortunate enough to be active in sending him to jail,
-and he’s never forgotten my modest service to the general welfare.
-Only last week--on the public street, sir--he reviled me, and declared
-that he would have revenge. It was a fortunate warning, sir; for this
-morning, when he and I met in the woods--oh, yes; we passed within ten
-yards of each other--I took care to keep a weather eye open for just
-some such performance as he undertook. I’d kept his general bearings,
-and when he blazed away at me--why, sir, I rushed for him. And by Jove!
-I got him--as good as caught in the act, sir!”
-
-“But not quite caught in the act, sir. There must have been an
-interval----”
-
-The Major raised a hand. “Pardon me again! Sir, what you speak of
-is a trifle, a bagatelle. And there was plenty of circumstantial
-evidence--empty shell in the right-hand barrel of his gun--barrel
-fouled by the discharge. And he attempted no denial. Why, sir, he
-merely stood there and cursed me to my face, the scoundrel!”
-
-“And yet,” said Mr. Parker evenly, “I fear you were--and are--in error.”
-
-“Eh?” The Major bristled. “Eh? You fear I’m in error? Most
-extraordinary statement, sir! Do you mean to insinuate that nobody shot
-me?”
-
-“I merely suggest that you may not have been shot by Peter Groche.”
-
-“But who else under the canopy could it have been?”
-
-“I am afraid, as I told you--afraid that it was my son.”
-
-“What!” Up sprang the Major. “Man, what do you mean? This boy?”
-He whipped about, and peered at Sam. “Why, he’s a mere child!
-Preposterous, sir; utterly preposterous!”
-
-“I wish that it were!” said Mr. Parker, with feeling. “But the fact
-remains that he insists he was gunning this morning in Marlow woods;
-and that he declares that he mistook a man for a deer, and fired at
-him.”
-
-“Tush, tush! That’s all a piece of boyish imagination. He’s been
-reading dime novels! Haven’t you, young man?” And the Major shook a
-bony forefinger in Sam’s face.
-
-“No, sir; I haven’t.” Sam spoke firmly, and his eyes did not fall
-before the Major’s.
-
-“Do you expect me to believe you were the fellow who winged me?”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-The Major went back to his chair. He dropped into it almost limply.
-“Out with your story, boy!” said he. “I’ll listen--I’ve got to, I
-suppose.”
-
-The dreaded moment had arrived. Sam nerved himself to the task before
-him. The keen, old eyes under the bushy brows never left his face. He
-felt that they were penetrating every secret of his soul. But, after
-all, he had nothing but the truth to tell; and there was nothing he
-wished to conceal. Slowly at first, and then more rapidly, if not more
-easily, he reviewed the events of the morning. He dealt with his hunt
-through the woods; described the twin ridges and the valley between.
-Then the Major broke in upon him.
-
-“By Jove, boy, but you have the lay of the land pat!” he exclaimed. “Go
-over that again, please--about the bushes where you hid, and the others
-where you saw something move.”
-
-Sam repeated this part of his story. The Major stalked to a closet, and
-stalked back, carrying a woolen cap, dark red in color.
-
-“Was that what you saw?” he demanded grimly.
-
-“It might have been--I’m not certain.”
-
-The Major thrust a finger into a hole in the cap.
-
-“That’s where one shot went through. But, by the great horn spoon,
-Parker! what’s a man to do to secure reasonable safety in the woods
-these times? I put on a red cap to warn gunners not to pot me for a
-deer. Have I got to wear sleigh-bells, or carry an automobile horn, to
-let ’em know it’s a human being that’s coming? I must say things are at
-a pretty pass, when anybody who wants venison has to take his life in
-his hand to get it!”
-
-“Agreed!” said Mr. Parker. “That’s one of the reasons why I’ve
-practically dropped hunting. But that cap, now--strikes me the red
-might not show very clearly among the dead leaves.”
-
-“What I saw seemed to be dark rather than red,” Sam explained.
-
-The Major pulled at his tuft of beard. “All most extraordinary and
-yet--queer how the thing might have happened, as the boy says. I’d
-half made up my mind that scoundrel was gunning for me; so, naturally
-enough, when that charge of buckshot came my way, I looked where I
-thought it probably came from. And the puff of smokeless powder isn’t
-much--it’d have been gone in a few seconds. And sound fools you on
-direction. Expecting attack from a certain quarter, I’d be pretty sure
-to place the sound there, whether or no. And the boy declares he was
-right across the gulch? Umph!”
-
-Sam resumed his account. He made confession to his fright; to the
-moments which passed before he dared to look at the farther ridge, even
-though he heard the loud crackling of branches.
-
-The Major nodded. “That fits, too. Soon as I could wrap a handkerchief
-about the bleeding paw I was off after Groche. But finally you crossed
-over to see what you’d bagged, eh? Umph! Why didn’t you run away?”
-
-“I--I didn’t think I should.”
-
-“Wanted to, didn’t you?”
-
-“Indeed I did, sir!”
-
-“Umph!” said the Major again. “Well, go on. What did you find?”
-
-Sam described the trampled brush and the spots of blood on the leaves.
-Also he related his vain effort to follow the trail.
-
-The Major was scowling fiercely. “That’s all, eh? Enough, too, I must
-say! No, it isn’t, either. Look here, young man! I suppose I must
-accept this story. You’ve just missed committing murder--yes, murder!
-Abominable recklessness, abominable! And criminal, highly criminal!
-You’ve rendered yourself liable to a heavy penalty. You’ll have to
-suffer----”
-
-Mr. Parker spoke sharply and emphatically: “That is not at present
-under discussion. Our immediate interest is justice to a wrongly
-arrested man.”
-
-Up went the Major’s warlike eyebrows. “Eh? What’s that? Justice,
-you say?” Then he whipped about to Sam. “Boy, do you understand the
-situation in which you’ve placed yourself? Want justice done, do you?
-That’ll mean trouble for you. Don’t quibble! Why didn’t you let well
-enough alone?”
-
-“Why--why, sir----”
-
-“Umph! Your father’s responsible, of course, for your telling the
-story.”
-
-Again Mr. Parker intervened. “Not so fast, Major. Of his own volition
-Sam told me what had happened. The affair was a complete surprise to
-me. It was my suggestion that he repeat his statement to you rather
-than to the police--and there my responsibility begins. But I’ll add
-that, as it has begun, I shall regard it as continuing until this
-matter is settled.”
-
-“Eh?” The Major looked more hostile than ever. “Am I to accept that as
-a declaration that you are backing the boy?”
-
-“You may accept it as meaning that while I regret deeply his rashness
-and its results, now that he has made confession, I’m backing him, as
-you term it--and I shall continue to back him.”
-
-There could be no mistaking Mr. Parker’s earnestness and determination.
-A thrill shot through Sam. He flashed a grateful glance at his father;
-then turned to face the Major.
-
-The countenance of the grizzled warrior offered a rare study in
-conflicting emotions. It betrayed anger, but it also suggested chagrin.
-Moreover, there was a hint of admiration. There was an instant in which
-Sam believed that the Major was about to attempt personal chastisement
-on the spot; there was another in which he wondered if the old man were
-not struggling with a sense of helplessness. Then, of a sudden, the
-Major laughed explosively.
-
-“Ha, ha! By the great horn spoon, Parker! I’d do the same, if I stood
-in your shoes! Blood’s thicker than water, every time. Ought to
-be, by Jove! when it’s good blood. And it’s good blood that’s made
-your boy own his mistake and step forward, like a man, to bear the
-consequences. I hate a sneak, but I take off my hat to a real man, no
-matter whether he’s young or old. There, there! Hear me out! This thing
-came near enough to being my funeral to justify me in attending to the
-arrangements. I’ll telephone to the police, and withdraw my charge
-against Groche; and I’ll keep my own counsel about why I withdraw it.
-That’s all right--accidents will happen, and when you’re satisfied a
-thing is an accident, there’s nothing to do but grin and bear it. Our
-young friend here can learn a lesson, and be more careful in future. No
-need for him to gossip about it, eh?”
-
-Sam was speechless at this amazing turn for the better in his affairs;
-but his father came to the rescue.
-
-“Major, you’re most kindly and generous. If there’s anything I can do,
-command me! If Groche threatens proceedings for illegal arrest you must
-permit me to guarantee you against loss in any way.”
-
-The Major shook his head. “Very good of you, sir, but
-unnecessary--quite. Groche’s language was so abusive that a charge of
-noise and brawl would lie against him; and, no doubt, the officers will
-hold him overnight for safe-keeping, and turn him loose in the morning.
-And he’ll be content to drop the case, so far as the law goes; for he
-has no love for courts of any sort. But, young man”--he turned to Sam,
-and there was a wry grin curling his fierce moustache--“young man,
-you’ve robbed me of the consolation of being a public benefactor. If
-I could put that scoundrel behind the bars, at cost of a flesh wound
-or two, I’d count the pain as nothing compared with the service to the
-community.”
-
-Sam found tongue. “I wish I could tell you, sir, how sorry I am
-for--for shooting you.”
-
-Once more the Major laughed, and his hand fell, in friendly fashion, on
-Sam’s shoulder.
-
-“Boy, I’ve been wounded four times,” he said, “but this is the first
-time the fellow who hit me has had the grace to apologize.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII THE RECKONING
-
-
-Sam awoke to find the sunshine pouring through the window of his room.
-Overnight there had been a change for the better in the weather, and
-Sunday had dawned clear and bright.
-
-The boy yawned, stretched himself luxuriously, rubbed the lingering
-sleepiness out of his eyes. There was a blissful moment, in which
-he felt himself in harmony with the unclouded morning, refreshed,
-untroubled. Then, of a sudden, came recollection of the events of the
-day before, and understanding that there was still a reckoning to be
-paid. He might have nothing to fear from courts and officers of the
-law; Major Bates, ordinarily warlike, had been brought to prefer peace
-to hostilities; but he had yet to reach complete understanding with his
-father.
-
-Mr. Parker and Sam had exchanged hardly a word while they walked home
-from the Major’s house; but at their own door the father had paused
-briefly.
-
-“You’d better turn in, Sam,” he had said. “We’ll have to go over this
-matter pretty carefully, but I’m not prepared to do so to-night. And I
-fancy your own ideas will be none the worse for a little revision, and
-a clearer head in the morning.”
-
-But Sam, going to his room, had found himself very wakeful. Half an
-hour later his mother had looked in, and discovered him, fully dressed
-and huddled in a big chair; and glad, indeed, to see her, as it
-proved. She had had no reproaches to shower upon him--Sam had wondered
-if his father’s explanation of his misdeeds had not been extremely
-merciful; and she had slipped an arm about him, and “mothered” him most
-comfortingly. And, presently, had appeared her handmaiden and his own
-loyal ally, Maggie, bearing a tray on which were a bowl of milk and a
-plate of crackers. Sam, who might have vowed that he wasn’t hungry,
-in a second had become acutely aware of a lack of something under his
-belt, and had fallen to with a right good will, his mother watching him
-approvingly and Maggie voicing her satisfaction in her own fashion.
-
-“Well, say, ma’am, will you look at that, now? It’s not a morsel of
-supper the poor boy’ll have been puttin’ tooth to! And him sayin’
-nothing about it--no; nor his father, either! They’re like as two peas
-in some ways, ma’am. Oh, them men, them men!”
-
- * * * * *
-
-These were the brighter spots in Sam’s memories. They were pleasant
-to dwell upon; but they could not relieve the general gravity of the
-case. A very sober youth it was who dressed mechanically and in due
-course appeared at breakfast. A deal to his surprise his father and
-mother greeted him quite as usual. There was nothing to suggest that
-they regarded him either as a repentant offender or as a hero. At
-Sunday-school he had another experience of the same sort; for his
-friends hailed him with matter-of-fact heartiness. Both Step and Poke
-appeared to have lived down their domestic unpopularity, resulting from
-the incident of the hungry hound, and to be disposed to regard the
-world cheerfully, with no suspicion that he was not entirely of their
-way of thinking.
-
-There was interest displayed in the news that Peter Groche, after a
-night in the lock-up, had been released from custody; but it occurred
-to none of Sam’s chums to connect the circumstance with his adventures
-as a deer hunter. Groche, presented with his freedom, had walked
-off, mumbling and grumbling. The popular theory was that, sooner or
-later, he would try to “get even” with the Major, his old grudge being
-heightened by the recent episode.
-
-“Funny how the Major let up on him!” Poke ruminated. “Well, you never
-can tell what’ll happen. But I guess there must have been some weak
-spot, after all, in the case. If there wasn’t, the Major would have
-hung on like a bulldog.”
-
-“Gee, but I wouldn’t have him after me--not for a farm!” quoth Step.
-
-Sam held his peace. He might have shed fresh light upon the
-peculiarities of the old soldier, but the present time was not
-opportune. He had little share in the talk as the boys walked home
-together; and the mood of silence held him through dinner. Then his
-father proposed a stroll, and the boy accepted the invitation.
-
-On the top of a hill overlooking the town--not only a sightly place but
-also one ensuring freedom from interruption--father and son had their
-discussion calmly and deliberately.
-
-“Sam,” Mr. Parker began, “I’m not going to preach a sermon, but I’m
-going to take a text. You supplied it when you told me last night that
-you didn’t regard lack of direct prohibition as making a very good
-excuse for what you did. The trouble is, you reached that opinion after
-the fact. In the beginning, I dare say, it seemed quite reasonable to
-do the thing which wasn’t forbidden.”
-
-“Well, sir, I--I did it,” said Sam sheepishly.
-
-“Exactly! And, in doing it, you yielded to impulse.”
-
-“I sup-suppose so.”
-
-“You had no wish, no intention, to harm anybody,” Mr. Parker went on.
-“You desired to go hunting--I’ve felt the desire; I know what it is.
-Then there was my gun, fairly thrusting itself upon you--seemed that
-way, didn’t it?”
-
-“You’re telling it, sir, as if you’d stood in my shoes.”
-
-“Many a time! I’ve been a boy myself. Also I haven’t forgotten, Sam,
-the scrapes into which I fell. Some of them taught me a lesson--a
-lesson you’ll have to learn some day. But to get back to the gun. There
-it was, ready to your hand. You took it. You put a supply of cartridges
-in your pocket. Your mother was not at home. You were too impatient
-to await her return. So off you hurried, taking chances, but meaning
-no harm. You were very sure of yourself; you knew something about
-firearms; you were confident that you wouldn’t hurt yourself or anybody
-else. You thought you were extremely careful in the woods. Yet there
-you took another chance, still meaning no harm, but barely escaping
-homicide.”
-
-“I know that, sir.”
-
-“You can count yourself most fortunate that the results were not more
-serious. But I won’t dwell upon what might have happened. What did
-happen was quite enough to give you food for thought, and to point the
-moral of your experience. And that is that before you go ahead you
-should do your best to be sure you’re right.”
-
-“After this I’ll be sure!”
-
-Mr. Parker smiled a little oddly. “I ask only, Sam, that you do your
-best to be sure. Often you have to take risks--the practical point is
-to avoid the unnecessary risks. Hear me through! At sixteen you’re not
-going to develop the wisdom and foresight of a grown man. I’m not going
-to demand the impossible. I am going, though, to urge you to profit by
-the mistakes you’ve made--and that, Sam, is the one best use to make of
-mistakes.”
-
-“You mean, not to repeat ’em?”
-
-“That is precisely my meaning.”
-
-“Trust me!” cried Sam, with conviction.
-
-“I am going to trust you,” said his father. “In the first place, I am
-going to assume that we have no need to talk about punishment; perhaps
-you’ve had a reasonable amount of it as it is, for I suspect you have
-passed some very trying hours. At the same time, though, I’m not
-prepared to treat this affair as a wholly closed chapter. I think it
-will be better for all concerned if you regard yourself, for the next
-few months, as on probation.”
-
-“I don’t quite understand.”
-
-“Well, in other words, you may consider yourself as under test. And the
-test will be the extent to which you have profited by what has taken
-place.”
-
-“Oh!” said Sam. “Then you’re waiting to see if I’ve really learned the
-lesson?”
-
-“You have the idea.”
-
-Sam knit his brows. “It’s awfully kind of you, Father--it’s greater
-mercy than I’d hoped for. I--I’ll try my prettiest to deserve it.
-And--and will everything go on just as--just as before?”
-
-“As nearly as may be. Only that brings me to my second point. It has to
-do with St. Mark’s.”
-
-“Oh!” said Sam again, a bit apprehensively, it must be admitted.
-
-“I think,” said his father slowly, “that for the present we’ll hold in
-abeyance any plans for sending you away to school. Don’t regard this as
-a punishment; it is merely part of the probation. St. Mark’s, as you
-know, allows its students much liberty. It treats them almost as if
-they were men. And, frankly, Sam, it remains for you to prove that you
-deserve such confidence. As the boys say, it’s up to you.”
-
-The blow to the boy’s hopes was harder than his father realized. For
-months Sam had been counting upon an early transfer to the famous
-preparatory school. At his books, and in sports, he had striven with an
-eye to the St. Mark’s standards; he had read everything concerning the
-academy upon which he could lay hands; he had thought of St. Mark’s by
-day and dreamed of it at night. And now, of a sudden, he learned that
-his goal was not near, but at a distance which seemed to be all the
-more unhappy because of its vagueness. Yet, very pluckily, he rallied
-from the shock.
-
-“Yes, sir; it’s up to me--I understand,” said he. “I’ve got to show
-that I’m not an utter idiot, that I have some common sense. And I will
-show it, I will! If I don’t, I won’t be worth sending to St. Mark’s
-or--or anywhere else!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII BEGINNING THE TEST
-
-
-The junior class of the Plainville High School probably was neither
-much better nor much worse than the classes which had preceded it,
-and the other classes which were following it, along the paths of
-knowledge. It had its bright boys and girls and its dullards; its
-examples of industry and of idleness; its workers and its shirkers; its
-happy-go-lucky members, who made the most of the day without thought
-of the morrow, and its budding politicians, who laid wires and pulled
-them with an eye to future advantage. Perhaps the most distinguishing
-peculiarity of the class, however, was the influence exerted by a group
-of boys, with some of whom we have become acquainted.
-
-Just why the Safety First Club (lately the Adelphi) should have been
-so potent a factor was not easily explained. The faculty, which
-had suspicion rather than understanding of the fact, did not try
-to explain it, while certain ambitious youths, not of the charmed
-circle, insisted that it could not be made clear. The club did not
-include the coming valedictorian or salutatorian; it had none of the
-most distinguished athletes; yet the truth remained that its backing
-was a prime necessity to secure success in any class undertaking. If
-there were a fund to be raised for the ball team, or if a picnic were
-planned or a Christmas jollification, wise promoters at once sought the
-endorsement of the club. As it usually was given in generous measure,
-there was little general criticism of the coterie, though, as was
-inevitable, there were envious ones who lost no opportunity privately
-to say unpleasant things about the members, singly and collectively.
-
-In this, of course, jealousy figured. Several of the boys deeply
-resented the failure of the club to invite them to become members; and
-the feeling was bitterest in the case of one Thomas Orkney.
-
-Now and then one comes upon a striking example of the square peg
-in the round hole. Orkney did not fit. He was comparatively a new
-boy in Plainville, having lived there but two or three years, and
-having come with some very firmly established notions of his own
-importance. At bottom he had his virtues--plenty of them, no doubt;
-but they were overlaid and concealed by a highly unfortunate manner.
-His early study had been under tutors, who had helped him to better
-knowledge of his text-books than to preparation for what may be called
-the rough-and-tumble experiences of recitations in a large class. If
-he blundered, and the division laughed, that was a black day in his
-calendar; and he scowled and sulked, and cherished a grudge against
-those who had led in the merriment. Worst of all, he often found
-means to settle these scores, and so had contrived to make himself
-exceedingly unpopular among his classmates; though, as it happened,
-he also drew to himself a few supporters and adherents from among the
-discontented element, which is so frequently to be observed in any
-organization.
-
-While it could not be said that the juniors were sharply divided into
-factions, it was certainly true that the relations of the club and of
-the Orkney “crowd” were strained. Recently there had been two or three
-incidents, trifling in themselves, but together doing a good deal to
-increase the rivalry.
-
-Oddly enough, Step Jones, one of the most peaceful of mortals, had
-succeeded in enraging Orkney. Step, as a rule, was no shining star of
-scholarship; but by some mental twist he was a very planet in Greek. In
-Latin he was merely fair, and in French not quite so good, while the
-less said of his algebra and geometry the better; but, in the speech
-of his friends, he took to Greek as a duck takes to water. Poke Green
-accused him of “reading ahead” in Xenophon for the fun of the thing;
-and declined to withdraw the charge in spite of his almost tearful
-denials, holding, indeed, that it was confirmed by Step’s success in
-translating a “sight” passage, which Tom Orkney had stumbled over. Poke
-forgot all about the episode in an hour, but Tom added another to his
-growing list of grievances against the club. His average for the term
-was far above Step’s, but he begrudged the lanky youth even a trifling
-triumph. And then came the matter of Willy Reynolds.
-
-It may throw light upon the personality of Master Reynolds to explain
-that he was equally well known as Willy and the “Shark,” neither
-being used offensively, though one had a suggestion of mildness and
-the other of ferocity. He was, in fact, a little fellow, slender,
-stoop-shouldered, and physically the weakest boy in the class. Yet
-no other junior was less teased or picked upon. Practical jokers
-passed by Willy Reynolds. There was a gravity about him, not owlish,
-but distinctly discouraging to frivolity; and an almost hypnotic
-influence in his meditative and unwavering gaze. He had the prominent
-eyes of the near-sighted; and he had, too, the unconscious trick of
-staring steadfastly at man or thing of whose very existence he was
-barely conscious; and as he stared through big, round lenses, set in
-a heavy black frame, the effect was impressive, if not terrifying.
-Consequently, even the most mischievous of his mates preferred to let
-him alone, especially as they had honest respect for his signal ability
-in his specialty.
-
-Young Reynolds was a mathematician born. Languages he endured as
-unavoidable subjects of study; but he reveled in equations and
-demonstrations, made child’s play of the required algebra and
-geometry--thereby earning his nickname of the “Shark”--and carried on
-advanced work under the eye of the principal, himself an adept of the
-mathematical brotherhood. Willy, of course, was destined for scientific
-courses at college; but meanwhile, tarrying with the junior class, he
-filled his contemporaries with wonder and admiration. For example, he
-solved at sight a problem to which Tom Orkney had devoted vain and
-wearisome hours. It was all in the day’s work for the Shark, but Orkney
-noted another score to be repaid with compound interest.
-
-Sam Parker had been a witness of Tom’s discomfiture on both occasions;
-but, as may be imagined, was not concerning himself deeply with the
-sullen youth’s moods. As he himself would have put it, he had troubles
-enough of his own, and was fully occupied with his own affairs when he
-went to school on Monday morning. On the way he fell in with Step and
-Poke. The latter was full of the mystery attending the release of Peter
-Groche.
-
-“It’s mighty queer--our folks were talking it over at breakfast,” said
-he. “Course, there was a mistake somewhere, or Major Bates never would
-have let him go. But Peter didn’t let out a word--just growled, and
-grumbled, and took himself off, shaking his head. He wouldn’t deny that
-he shot the Major. The police asked him about it, but he gave them no
-satisfaction. He’s a bad one, I tell you! Regular Indian, if he gets
-down on anybody!”
-
-“All the more wonder that the Major dropped the case,” declared Step.
-“He knows Groche from A to Z.”
-
-Poke wagged his head. “There you are! Makes the business all the
-queerer. Each of them is a sticker, in his own way. And the Major had
-Groche just where he wanted him. And then, all of a sudden, he let up!
-What do you make of that, now?”
-
-“Beats me,” Step confessed.
-
-“What’s your notion, Sam?”
-
-Sam did not meet Poke’s inquiring glance. “I think,” he said slowly,
-“that something must have happened to show the Major that Groche hadn’t
-shot him.”
-
-“Huh! How do you make that out?” queried Step.
-
-“That’d mean somebody else did the shooting,” observed Poke, the
-philosopher. “The Major was hit, fast enough--peppered in the head and
-in one hand. And he didn’t do it himself.”
-
-“Of course not,” said Sam.
-
-“Therefore, some one else did. The Major was sure Groche was the some
-one. Then he wasn’t sure. In between he’d found out something. Q. E.
-D.--as the Shark would remark.”
-
-“Q. E. D.,” repeated Sam, for want of anything better.
-
-Step grunted. “Huh! Bet you he’d found out who was who and what was
-what! But that just thickens the fog.”
-
-“How so?”
-
-“Why didn’t he have the other fellow locked up in Groche’s place?”
-
-“Jiminy! that’s a good point!” cried Poke.
-
-Sam said nothing, and for a moment the three trudged on in silence.
-
-“Oh, well,” said Poke at last, “the Major knows now, but we’ll know
-sooner or later.”
-
-“How’s that?” Sam asked quickly.
-
-Poke shrugged his shoulders. “Oh, things are bound to come out. They
-always do. It’s just like a dog burying a bone--if he doesn’t dig it
-up, some other dog will.”
-
-“Don’t you believe a secret can be kept?”
-
-“Well, I can’t remember keeping many myself,” chuckled Poke. “And they
-say murder will out, you know. This wasn’t murder, of course, but it
-came uncomfortably near it.”
-
-“It sure did!” agreed Step.
-
-Sam dug his hands deeper in his pockets. Being human, and
-companionable, and very fond of Poke and Step, he had been sorely
-tempted to confide in his friends. But the Major had warned him
-not to gossip about the affair, and the Major’s wish naturally had
-great weight. As for Poke’s theory that the story would become known
-generally, sooner or later--well, Sam had his doubts. So far as he
-knew, only his parents and the Major shared with him knowledge of what
-had happened in the woods.
-
-In school that day Sam studied hard and paid close attention to the
-recitations. That was part of his plan for proving to his father that
-he could deserve confidence. When the class was dismissed, he made
-careful selection of the books he would need for home study, and so was
-a little behind his mates in leaving the building. Within a hundred
-yards of the school-ground gates, however, he overtook a group of boys,
-clustered closely about two disputants. One, as he saw, was Step; the
-other, Tom Orkney.
-
-From a little distance the Shark was regarding the squabble through his
-big glasses.
-
-“What’s the row about?” Sam asked as he came up.
-
-“Nothing!” said the Shark. “That’s why they’re making such a fuss.”
-
-Sam laughed, but quickly grew serious. Both Step and Tom were talking
-loudly, each hurling threats and defiance at the other; Step’s long
-arms were going like a windmill’s, while Orkney’s fists were doubled.
-From his acquaintance with the methods of adolescent controversy it
-appeared to be probable that words were about to lead to blows.
-
-“Just one of Orkney’s grouches,” the Shark went on indifferently. “He’s
-been ruffling his feathers at Step ever since that business in Greek
-the other day.”
-
-Sam nodded. “That, eh? But they’re going too far--they’ll be mixing it
-up.”
-
-“Well, Step’s got the reach by fully four inches.”
-
-“Maybe, but Orkney’s a tough customer.”
-
-The Shark turned, and deliberately inspected Sam from head to foot.
-“You could do him up,” he said with cold-blooded calmness.
-
-“Perhaps. That isn’t saying Step could, though. He hasn’t weight
-enough.”
-
-At this instant Orkney, catching sight of Sam in the background,
-changed his tactics. He moved away from Step, and lowered his hands.
-
-“So that’s the game, is it?” he taunted. “Keep blustering, but be sure
-not to hit a fellow till your gang’s here to back you--that’s your way,
-Step Jones. Had to wait for Sam Parker, didn’t you?”
-
-Step’s anger was that of the patient man, slow to kindle but hard to
-extinguish. He struck at his opponent, but long as his arm was, missed
-him by inches.
-
-Sam instinctively started forward, and forced a way through the ring.
-Tom fell back a pace.
-
-“That’s right! Pile on--the whole gang of you!” he shouted.
-
-Step, for his part, was more than ready to accept the challenge; but
-Sam intervened. Impulse--he was willing enough to fight Orkney--had
-yielded to sobering second thought. It behooved a young man, intent
-upon establishing his self-control and common sense, to avoid brawling
-over a trifle on the public street. Sam’s hand caught Step’s collar.
-
-“Here! Drop the fighting!” he commanded.
-
-Step wriggled, but the grip on his collar did not yield.
-
-“Oh, let me at him!” he begged. “We might as well have it out--he’s
-been pestering me for a week.”
-
-“Never mind! He’ll stop it now.”
-
-“Oh, I will, will I?” snarled Orkney. “I’d like to know who’s going to
-make me!”
-
-“I might,” said Sam simply.
-
-“Bah! Dare you to try--alone!”
-
-“That’s the way I will try it--some day,” Sam told him. “But not now;
-no, not now.”
-
-“That’s right--safety first!” sneered the other.
-
-Sam grinned; and it was an odd grin. “Certainly; safety first!” said he.
-
-Step ceased to struggle; but, twisting his neck, stared at his friend.
-And then the Shark chose to advance.
-
-“Sam’s right,” he announced coolly. “This is no place for a scrap.
-Besides, there’s no reason for one. Orkney, you’re a chump to be peeved
-at Step for doing you up in Greek, or at me for putting you out at
-geometry. See here! You’re a pretty good, all-round performer, but you
-can’t beat specialists at their own specialties. Get that? And there’s
-no use in being a general sorehead.”
-
-It was eloquent tribute to the Shark’s moral influence that Orkney
-appeared to be impressed. At all events, though he scowled fiercely,
-he received the advice in silence. Two or three boys on the outskirts
-of the group began to move off. To Sam it seemed to be probable that
-the storm had blown over. He released his hold upon Step’s collar;
-whereupon Step, still wrathful, took two long strides; found himself
-beside Orkney; plucked off his opponent’s cap, and sent it flying
-through the air. It sailed over a fence, struck the trunk of a tree,
-and dropped to the ground.
-
-Orkney bristled, but Sam already had laid hands upon Step, and was
-dragging him back.
-
-“Here! Quit all this foolishness!” the peacemaker ordered.
-
-“Make him get that cap, then!” Orkney insisted.
-
-“Won’t!” cried Step, and struggled to break from Sam’s hold.
-
-Again the Shark intervened. “No; it was a kid trick, but now that it’s
-done, we’ll let it stay done. Orkney, if you hadn’t bulldozed Step,
-and started the whole thing, the cap would still be on your head. So I
-guess it’s up to you to put it back there--or let it stay where it is.”
-
-“Sure! It was a six-year-old’s performance, but the Shark has the right
-notion,” Sam agreed.
-
-There was an instant in which Orkney hesitated between war and peace.
-Then he reached a decision which was compromise--and as unsatisfactory
-as compromises often are. He neither gave battle nor retrieved his
-headgear. Instead, with a parting scowl, which included all the allies,
-he wheeled, and marched away, bareheaded.
-
-“You, Step, you bring that cap to my house, or you’ll be sorry!” he
-called back over his shoulder.
-
-“Never!” shouted Step defiantly.
-
-The Shark stared at the retreating figure. “I’ll be hanged if the whole
-bunch oughtn’t to be back in the kindergarten,” was his comment. “Of
-all idiocies! You plumb make me tired, Step--you and that runaway pal
-of yours!”
-
-“But you wouldn’t get his cap for him if you were in my place,” Step
-insisted.
-
-“But I’m not in your place,” said the Shark drily.
-
-Sam shook his head. “Let’s stop this squabbling, fellows. One row’s
-enough at a time. Or, better yet, let’s end one without starting
-another.”
-
-The Shark’s expression was thoughtful. “If we have ended one,” said he.
-“Orkney’s a queer duck. There may be more to this ridiculous affair
-than we dream.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX POKE AND STEP PUT THEIR HEADS TOGETHER
-
-
-Memory of the successful raid by Mr. Mercer’s big hound and its unhappy
-results rankled in the breasts of Poke and Step.
-
-It was one thing, they agreed, to be joint victims of hard luck; but
-it was quite another thing--and a deal harder to endure--to behold
-the author of their misfortunes jogging about the streets, wholly
-unpunished for his misdeeds. Step even had a gloomy notion that the dog
-was plumper than usual, which, if well founded, was higher tribute to
-the nourishing qualities of the looted chicken than to the prevalence
-of even-handed justice, to Step’s way of thinking. This view, confided
-to Poke, met ready acceptance.
-
-“Sure thing! And there ought to be something we could do about it,”
-observed Poke.
-
-“Oh, I’ll find a way to get even,” Step declared.
-
-“How?”
-
-“Oh, you wait, and you’ll see,” said Step darkly.
-
-Poke, as has been related, had leanings toward philosophy. Now he
-meditated briefly.
-
-“See here, Step!” he said. “If you’re going to get at this thing, you’d
-better get at it right. You ought to teach him a lesson.”
-
-“That’s just what I’ll do!”
-
-Poke shook his head. “No; you don’t get me. You’re thinking of letting
-drive a stone at him, or giving him a whipping, but what’d be the use?
-He wouldn’t know why you did it.”
-
-“Huh! Guess he would,” growled Step.
-
-“He wouldn’t,” Poke insisted. “That is, he wouldn’t unless you schemed
-out a way to remind him of the stolen rooster. There’s got to be
-something to make him see there’s a connection--get me?”
-
-Step sniffed contemptuously. “What you want me to do? Make him a speech
-or send him a letter about it?”
-
-“Neither,” quoth Poke calmly. “But unless you make him understand that
-he’s being punished for stealing, he’ll think you’re thrashing him out
-of pure meanness.”
-
-Step rubbed his chin. “I suppose that’s so,” he admitted. “But how can
-you work it? How can you make him understand? I’m weak on dog-lingo,
-myself.”
-
-Poke smiled, a little pityingly. “Listen, and I’ll tell you something
-I read the other day. There was a chap who owned a dog, and he was a
-bully dog, except that he would steal chickens. So the man tied a dead
-hen to his collar, and left it there till--well, till that dog didn’t
-want ever to see another one or get anywhere near it. And that’s my
-idea--something like it, anyway--for teaching the hound a lesson.”
-
-Step began to take interest. “Gee, but you have got an idea there!
-Only, if there’s anything left of the chicken he stole, we don’t know
-where to find it. And----”
-
-“Don’t need to!” Poke broke in. “Look here now! Say you’re dealing with
-chickens. What do you come to first?”
-
-“Hen-house,” said Step promptly.
-
-Poke frowned. “No, no! Wake up! You come first to the feathers.”
-
-“Oh, that way? Yes!”
-
-The frown vanished. “Exactly!” said Poke. “So, if we teach that dog to
-let feathers alone, he won’t bother many chickens--see?”
-
-Step’s manner was slightly skeptical. “Oh, that’s easy to talk about,
-but, practically, how are you going----”
-
-Poke didn’t let him finish the sentence. “Ever smell burning feathers?
-Well, I guess you have, all right! And don’t you think that if we tie
-a pail to his collar, and there are some burning feathers in the pail,
-Mr. Dog’ll get enough of chickens to last him a lifetime?”
-
-Step was a generous fellow; he didn’t grudge a friend a triumph.
-
-“Gee, Poke, but you’re a corker! How’d you ever work that out? But I
-say! I can improve on the pail. Up in our attic’s one of those queer,
-old-fashioned lanterns with tin sides punched full of holes--like a
-colander, you know. And there’s a double chain to it--guess they used
-to hang it up outdoors. And there are snaps on the chain--might have
-been made for us. Only”--he paused an instant--“only how’re you going
-to be sure the stuff will burn?”
-
-Poke smiled the smile of easy confidence. “Don’t you worry! A few rags
-soaked in kerosene, and stuffed in with the feathers will take care of
-that, all right!”
-
-From this discussion and activities which followed, it happened that
-when Sam turned a corner near Mr. Mercer’s gate he came upon his two
-chums engaged in friendly overtures to a large and somewhat suspicious
-dog. Poke, as he saw, had a tempting bit of meat, while Step held
-behind him a rusty contrivance of tin, from which loops of still more
-rusty chain depended.
-
-“Halloo! What’s up?” Sam demanded curiously.
-
-“Oh, first class in dog manners--that’s all,” responded Step lightly.
-
-Poke whistled softly, and held the meat nearer the dog, which took a
-step forward, halted, eyed the tidbit greedily.
-
-Sam, far from clear as to what was afoot and inclined to caution not
-only by his new resolves but also by acquaintance with other ventures
-of his friends, watched the proceedings dubiously.
-
-“I don’t yet grasp what’s the game,” he remarked.
-
-Poke was lavishing blandishments upon the dog, and extending the bait;
-so it was left to Step to make explanation.
-
-“It’s that chicken business. We’re going to get even--teach him a
-lesson, I mean.... Got a scheme, a crackerjack scheme. Just you keep
-your eyes peeled.”
-
-“They’re peeled, all right, but----” Sam hesitated an instant. “I say,
-you fellows, better not get in trouble. Remember, you belong to the
-Safety First Club!”
-
-“Huh! No chance of trouble--for us!” Step insisted. “Look here, Sam!”
-He displayed part of the chain with a snap at the end. “Two just like
-this--see? Well, we’re going to pass one of ’em around the dog’s neck,
-so-fashion.” In illustration he wound the chain about his own left
-wrist and for good measure took an extra turn. “Then we fasten it.”
-Another illustration, the rusty spring of the catch being moved with
-some difficulty. “Then, having fixed it so he can’t get rid of it,
-we----”
-
-There Step broke off, for good and sufficient reason. For things were
-beginning to happen, and the procession of events was moving with
-startling speed.
-
-The dog, sacrificing caution to appetite, came within Poke’s reach;
-whereupon Poke, dropping the meat, caught the hound as he tried to
-gobble up the bait; deftly slipped the second chain about the animal’s
-neck, successfully worked the snap at the first attempt; wheeled;
-whipped out a match; struck it, and lighted a rag protruding like a
-fuse from the old tin lantern, which had been brought from behind
-Step’s back, as that youth gave Sam an object lesson.
-
-The kerosene-soaked rag flamed fiercely; almost instantly, dense black
-smoke began to pour from the holes in the lantern. Poke, who had
-been busy with the contrivance and the dog, with never a thought of
-complications involving his comrade, sprang back with a shout of glee,
-which perhaps added somewhat--though increase was scarcely needed--to
-the terror of the hound, which gave a panic-stricken howl and a
-tremendous bound.
-
-Step, who had been tearing desperately and quite vainly at the chain
-about his wrist--the rusty catch stuck as if it had been soldered--was
-caught off his balance; dragged forward and into a run, which, under
-the circumstances, he could not check. The big dog, as heavy and
-powerful as many a sledge-team leader of the Far North, bolted wildly,
-yet with a general purpose; and this purpose being to seek asylum from
-the infernal machine at his heels, he dashed through the gate and
-toward the house, Step following, willy-nilly, his long legs flying
-and his long arms going like the arms of a windmill in a gale; while
-dangling from the chain between dog and boy, the old lantern emitted
-great volumes of choking smoke of most evil odor.
-
-“Say, Step, where you going?” shouted the bewildered Poke, who was
-still unaware of the difficulty in which his chum was involved. “What’s
-the matter? The pair of you look like an engine going to a fire!”
-
-Now to this Step, for perfectly good reasons, made no reply. And Poke,
-seeing that Sam was running after his friend, joined in the pursuit. So
-the procession swept up the drive, turned a corner of the house, and
-headed for the side porch, under which the dog had a den of his own,
-entrance to which was secured by a break in the latticework. Through
-this opening he shot with a final tug of such violence that Step was
-jerked forward, falling on his knees, with his head close to the
-barrier. And as by this time his fright fairly matched the dog’s, and
-as he fell to shouting for help as lustily as he could against the odds
-of the suffocating smoke, which poured through the lattice, and as the
-dog was howling more madly than ever, it may be imagined that there was
-a pretty to-do under and about the side porch of the Mercer house.
-
-Sam and Poke, naturally enough, tried to drag Step back from his most
-unpleasant position; but the dog had braced himself, or the chain had
-caught on some obstruction, so that the only result of their endeavors
-was to pull Step’s knees from under him, drop him flat on his stomach,
-and leave him, if anything, rather more helpless than before. Moreover,
-the cook came hurrying from the kitchen and the hired man from the
-barn; and jumping to the conclusion that where there was so much smoke
-there surely must be fire, both dashed buckets of water with better
-intention than aim. Very little of the water passed through the
-lattice; a fair share of it spattered Sam and Poke, and a great deal
-drenched the unhappy Step.
-
-The cook ran back to the kitchen for a fresh supply; but, luckily, the
-hired man, sighting the chain extending from Step’s wrist, laid hold
-upon it, and tugged with all his strength, and the dog, recognizing his
-voice, changed tactics, and charged from under the porch, bounding over
-the prostrate Step so swiftly that he turned a complete somersault,
-when the chain tautened again. The old lantern, still smoking
-voluminously, fell between boy and dog.
-
-“Jee-rusalem!” gasped the hired man in bewilderment.
-
-“Sa-sakes alive!” quavered the cook, who had reappeared with a freshly
-filled bucket.
-
-Poke began to laugh hysterically; but Sam kept his wits. He caught
-the bucket from the woman’s hand, and plunged the lantern into the
-water. There was a long, hissing sound, a final puff of steam--and then
-comparative peace.
-
-Step sat up. The dog, trembling like a leaf and whining weakly, crawled
-to the hired man. From the vantage ground of the porch the cook spoke
-wonderingly and reprovingly:
-
-“Well, I vum, but you boys do beat my time! What on earth do you think
-you’re up to? Playin’ horse with poor Hector there?”
-
-“No--not a bit; ’twasn’t that at all!” protested Step.
-
-The cook sniffed. “Feathers--burnin’ feathers! I can tell ’em every
-time! But what’s your notion in puttin’ ’em in that thing?” And she
-pointed at the ancient lantern.
-
-Step got upon his feet. He fumbled at the chain at his wrist; and, by
-an irony of fate, the old catch now gave at a touch. Step rubbed the
-flesh into which the links had sunk. He tried to summon a propitiating
-smile.
-
-“Oh, the feathers?” he said very mildly. “Oh, yes; the feathers.
-Why--why, we--we thought Hector there--he--well, he ought to know about
-’em.”
-
-“Land o’ love! but the boy’s crazy!”
-
-The hired man scratched his head. “Must say it looks like it, Katy.
-Still, I dunno--boys’ll be boys. And this young man acted ’sif he was
-willin’ to learn same time Hector did. They were sharin’, and sharin’
-alike, on the smudge-pot, te he!”
-
-Step scowled, but Poke burst into a roar of laughter, which eased the
-situation. The cook chuckled; Sam smiled. The hired man smote his thigh
-with his hand.
-
-“Gee-whillikens! but I never saw the like of it! And I guess no great
-harm’s done. Don’t seem to be no fire under the porch.”
-
-Then Poke found tongue. “It’s this way: The dog stole a chicken,
-and got us into a scrape. We thought we’d--er--er--we’d teach him
-a lesson and sicken him of stealing. And feathers and chickens go
-together--and--er--er--get the idea, don’t you?”
-
-“Sorter!” grinned the hired man. “Kind o’ think I do, sonny. And
-t’other fellow got tangled up, somehow. Wal, yes, I do see how ’twas.”
-
-“Then, if you don’t mind, we’ll be going home.”
-
-The hired man waved his hand. “I would, if I was you,” he said. “I’d go
-home and get into some dry clothes.”
-
-The three friends moved down the drive, with Step, a truly disconsolate
-and melancholy figure between the other two. For a little none of them
-spoke. It was left to Poke to break the silence with one of his bits of
-philosophy.
-
-“You’ve got to live to learn,” quoth he. “Now, who’d have thought--no
-use, though, crying over spilt milk! And what on earth made Step want
-to chain himself up--no; we won’t talk about that, either. But I say,
-Sam, I tell you there’s a lot of sense in that notion of yours! Safety
-First for me after this--yes, sir; Safety First every time!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X QUEER TROUBLES
-
-
-It is not to be supposed that Sam Parker, in spite of his exhibition of
-new self-control in the affair of Step and Tom Orkney, had taken on the
-gravity of years. There was, indeed, a change in the boy, but it was
-subtle rather than manifest. Sam worked a little harder than before,
-but played with no lack of zest. It was to be noted, however, that
-there was a decrease in the number of scrapes into which he fell.
-
-Perhaps Hannibal, Sam’s bull terrier, was first to perceive, if not to
-understand, the change. Hannibal was a sagacious animal, beyond the
-follies of puppyhood, but still full of interest in the doings of his
-master and his friends; fond of a long tramp in their company; and very
-pleased to doze comfortably in a corner of the club room. The new days
-were much to Hannibal’s liking. Sam never had been cruel to him, but at
-times may have been a bit thoughtless. Now, though, Hannibal enjoyed a
-degree of consideration quite unparalleled in his experience.
-
-Lon Gates, shrewdly observant, began to remark that Sam’s visits to the
-barn resulted in less disturbance of its orderly arrangements.
-
-“Ain’t had a hedgehog day lately, have you, Sam?” he queried. “World
-don’t seem to be so all-fired uncomfortably crowded as it was, eh? And
-I dunno’s there’s so much genooine solace in kickin’ over buckets as a
-feller might think there was.”
-
-“True enough, Lon,” said the boy soberly.
-
-The hired man grinned cheerfully. “They say nobody has to hunt for
-trouble, and I guess there’s sense in that. Still, it’s amazin’ how
-often trouble’ll let you alone if you don’t go stirrin’ it up. There’s
-that wuthless scamp, Peter Groche, now. He wouldn’t ’a’ been locked up
-over night if he hadn’t been so cantankerous. Course, they really took
-him in on suspicion, and I must say Groche is about the suspicionest
-nuisance that infests these parts. And all he got out of bein’ ugly was
-a sleep behind the bars.”
-
-“That’s so,” said Sam.
-
-“Funny how close-mouthed the Major is ’bout the whole business,” Lon
-went on. “If only he’d talk he’d make things easier for quite a lot of
-the chaps that was out gunnin’ that day.”
-
-“Yes?”
-
-Lon chuckled. “Te he! There’s always a reg’lar bargain sale rush
-when the season opens, but this year it was wuss than usual. Seems
-as if everybody was sort o’ venison hungry; so it turns out there’s
-about a dozen fellers who ain’t been able to prove what you’d call a
-water-tight alibi. That is, they can’t bring witnesses to show that
-they didn’t pot the Major; and they’re bein’ joshed half out o’ their
-lives, some of ’em. You see, first and last, a sight o’ folks must
-have been prowlin’ through Marlow woods that mornin’, and none of ’em
-happened to think to keep a time register. The huntin’ crowd’s all tore
-up about it.”
-
-“No doubt,” said Sam. If he had cared to meet Lon’s eye, he might have
-noted a twinkle, suggesting that the hired man had theories of his own
-as to the identity of the careless sportsman. But Sam avoided Lon’s
-gaze, and Lon chose not to make direct inquiry.
-
-“Well, this world does see a heap of entertainin’ things, comin’ and
-goin’,” he observed. “Good scheme, too--keeps folks from stagnatin’ and
-gettin’ as dull as ditch water. Plainville’s perkin’ up a lot because
-of the Major and his unknown party o’ the second part, as we’d be
-sayin’ if you and me was lawyers.”
-
-Here Lon spoke within the truth. The town was making a nine days’
-wonder of the affair; and what the town talked, the school talked, and
-the club.
-
-Sam, so far as he could, kept out of the discussions; permitted his
-chums to speculate as they pleased; and watched and waited for the
-interest in the matter to wear itself out.
-
-Oddly enough, Peter Groche appeared to be following the same policy. He
-was about town as usual, doing odd jobs when work was unavoidable. No
-improvement was reported in his habits, but even in his cups his tongue
-was not loosed, so far as his feud with Major Bates and its recent
-development were concerned. He grumbled and made threats, to be sure,
-but he had been grumbling and threatening people for years; and from
-his incoherent growls his cronies gained no information. If he had an
-inkling of the secret of Marlow woods, he was keeping it to himself.
-
-Step’s quarrel with Tom Orkney seemed to have led to nothing, even
-in the way of reprisals. There was no second demand upon Master
-Jones to recover the cap, nor was there formal notice that he should
-repay the owner for the seized property. In debates at the club the
-probability of the latter course had been stoutly upheld by Poke Green,
-who developed such concern in the outcome that he made a searching
-expedition, from which he bore back tidings that the cap was not to
-be found where it had fallen. Step insisted this merely went to show
-that Orkney, when the coast was clear, had returned to the scene and
-regained possession of the cap, thus avoiding loss and “saving face.”
-
-“But he’s wearing another bonnet,” Poke pointed out.
-
-“Oh, that’s because he’s too stuffy to admit the truth,” Step declared.
-“He’s as stubborn as a mule--that’s the whole case in a nutshell.”
-
-The club agreed with this opinion of Orkney more heartily than it
-endorsed Step’s performance, which was held to be juvenile, albeit
-not without provocation. Sam’s interference was accepted with respect
-rather than warm approval. As Poke put it, somebody, sooner or later,
-would have to thrash Orkney; and Step might as well have tried his
-hand. Whereat the Shark spoke up from his corner.
-
-“Say, that’s nice doctrine to be preaching at the Safety First Club!”
-
-For an instant Poke was abashed. “Why--why, there’s something in that.
-I guess I wasn’t thinking of our new name.”
-
-“Well, Sam was,” said the Shark crisply.
-
-“Huh!” grunted Poke. He glanced thoughtfully at Sam; seemed to be about
-to continue; changed his mind, and let the subject drop.
-
-Sam went home that afternoon to find Lon in uncommonly bad humor.
-Somebody, it appeared, had opened a faucet in the barn, and left the
-water running in a merry stream. As a result, half the floor had been
-flooded, and annoying, if not heavy, damage had been caused. Lacking
-evidence to the contrary, Lon was disposed to hold Sam responsible.
-
-“But I had nothing to do with it,” the boy explained. “I don’t know how
-it happened.”
-
-“Foolin’ ’round here, wasn’t you, after school?”
-
-“Yes--but I didn’t touch the faucet.”
-
-“Guess you’re gettin’ absent-minded.”
-
-Sam reddened wrathfully, but kept his head. Very clearly he realized
-that he had a deal at stake. A youth on probation, as he was, must shun
-rages as well as keep his record clean.
-
-“Look here, Lon!” he said. “I’m not joking--I’m in earnest. And I tell
-you I’m not to blame. I mean it--honor bright!”
-
-Lon rubbed his chin. “I swan, but it plumb beats my time! You’re sure
-you didn’t do it, and I’ll swear I ain’t been walkin’ in my sleep and
-cuttin’ up didoes for more’n a year. Yet here was the water goin’ like
-all possessed! Now, who set it goin’?”
-
-“I didn’t,” said Sam decidedly.
-
-“Hanged if I believe you did!” Lon had been studying the boy keenly.
-“You’ve got as much of Old Nick in you as the next ’un, generally, but
-you _have_ been behavin’ pretty well lately. And you ain’t a liar any
-time. So it looks as if we’d got to add this to the list o’ mysteries,
-’long with who struck Billy Patterson. Only I do wish I could lay hands
-on the skunk that made all this mess, and argy with him a while on
-the error of his ways.” And Lon frowned as he turned his gaze to the
-water-soaked planks.
-
-Sam went on to the house, but only to find himself again in the rôle of
-defendant. The complainant this time was Maggie, who swooped down upon
-him when he entered the kitchen. She caught him by the arm, dragged him
-across the room, and pointed tragically to a tub, in which were soaking
-several mud-stained garments.
-
-“See all the trouble you’re makin’ me, you imp!” she cried. “How do
-you s’pose I’m a-goin’ to do all the work of this big house, with you
-snoopin’ round, and breakin’ my clothes-line, and lettin’ down half a
-wash into the dirt? All them things to be put to soak and done over! I
-tell you I just won’t stand it, I won’t! We’ll see, Mr. Sam, what your
-mother’ll have to say to such tricks!”
-
-Sam wriggled free. “But, Maggie, you’re all wrong,” he protested. “I
-didn’t break the clothes-line.”
-
-Maggie sniffed incredulously. “Course not! Must have been Hannibal or
-the cat! Go ’way with you, tryin’ to bamboozle me with such talk!”
-
-Poor Sam felt like throwing up his hands in despair, or bursting into
-vehement denials. But once more he was reminded of the stake for which
-he was playing.
-
-“Honestly, Maggie, I had nothing to do with dropping the wash,” he
-declared so emphatically that she could not but be impressed. “I didn’t
-even notice that you’d hung it out. And as for breaking the line----”
-
-“Well, somebody broke it!” said Maggie tartly. “Look at it!” And she
-snatched a coil of rope from a shelf above the tub.
-
-Sam gravely inspected the parted strands.
-
-“Well, it is broken, fast enough,” he began. “That is”--he was peering
-hard at the end of the line--“that is, it isn’t broken--I was mistaken;
-this has been cut.”
-
-“What do you mean?”
-
-“Cut with a knife--and a sharp knife, at that. Made a clean gash. No
-accident there, Maggie!”
-
-The cook took time to make careful examination.
-
-“My stars, Sam Parker, but you’ve got a head on you, after all!” she
-declared. “Who’d ’a’ thought it! No; I don’t mean the head--it’s the
-miserable meanness of the job. But who on earth would be so ugly?”
-
-“I don’t know,” said Sam. “Anyway, though, I’m not the fellow.”
-
-“Well, puttin’ it that way, I don’t suppose you are,” Maggie admitted.
-“But I’d give a pretty penny to be able to figure out who is.”
-
-“So would I,” Sam agreed gravely.
-
-He had cause to repeat the statement in the next few days. Things went
-wrong about the Parker place with peculiar persistence. Valuable young
-trees were broken down; gates, supposed to be kept closed, were found
-open; Hannibal, for whose care Sam was responsible, was missing over
-night and came limping home in the morning in badly battered condition.
-And in each instance it appeared to be incumbent upon the son of the
-house to prove his innocence. It is an old rule of the books that
-there is much difficulty in establishing a negative proposition. Sam’s
-patience was sorely tried, but he kept his wits about him, remembered
-the demands of his situation, and did his best to win confidence by
-deserving it.
-
-He had his suspicions, of course, that there was something more than
-mere coincidence in the succession of troubles. Also he had a theory
-as to their cause. In amateur fashion he undertook detective work. In
-other words, so far as he could, he maintained a close, if unobtrusive,
-watch upon the doings of Tom Orkney.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI THE CLUB GETS A CLUE
-
-
-It was Friday evening, and the Safety First Club was in full session.
-Sam, Step and Poke were gossiping about school affairs, and with them
-was Herman Boyd, a new member and a brother junior. Willy Reynolds
-and Harry Walker, otherwise known as “Trojan,” a recently admitted
-classmate, were playing checkers in a corner.
-
-The Shark, who was human enough to have his little affectations,
-pretended to care not at all for the game, holding it to be a poor and
-trifling substitute for chess; but it was to be observed that he was
-doing his best to win. Moreover, when he did win, he chuckled gleefully.
-
-“Hew-ee! You ought to have known that last move was coming,” he told
-his opponent. “But you gave me the opening, and then I had you.”
-
-Trojan Walker laughed. “I’d have known all about it if I could see
-around two corners at once as you do. Never mind, though! I’ll win yet.
-Set up your men, Shark.”
-
-Poke strolled over to the players while they were ranging their pieces.
-
-“Fellow who wears glasses like the Shark’s ought to be able to see
-everything,” he remarked idly. “All the same, Trojan, you’ll notice he
-isn’t making out much about Orkney’s schemes.”
-
-“Humph! What can Tom do?” objected Herman Boyd. “That row of his with
-Step is ancient history.”
-
-“Sure! And the time for a come-back was right after the row,” chimed in
-Trojan.
-
-Poke wagged his head sagaciously. “Don’t fool yourselves!” said he.
-“Orkney is a sticker. He’s got it in for Step, and for Sam, for that
-matter. We haven’t had the last of the business, not by a long shot.”
-
-“Hear that, eh, Sam?” asked Herman.
-
-Sam rose from his chair, and crossed to the checker players’ corner.
-
-“I heard it,” said he.
-
-“Well, do you agree?”
-
-“Yes,” said Sam brusquely.
-
-For a moment nobody spoke. All his friends realized that he was taking
-the matter seriously.
-
-“Why--why--you must have some reason, of course?” Herman ventured.
-
-Sam hesitated. “Maybe it’s more hunch than reason.”
-
-“But what gave you the hunch?”
-
-“Oh, one thing and then another.”
-
-“Huh! That sounds like some of my answers in history!” quoth Poke.
-“It’s specially like those I make when I’m meeting a total stranger of
-a question, and trying to be polite, if not communicative.”
-
-The Shark wriggled in his chair; he was growing impatient to resume
-play.
-
-“Your move, Trojan!” he snapped.
-
-“Wait a minute!” said his opponent. “Sam’s going to elucidate.”
-
-“Well, things have happened and kept on happening,” Sam began; “things
-that can’t be explained except----But I say, Shark! What on earth’s the
-matter?”
-
-Young Reynolds, who had turned from the table in disgust at the delay,
-of a sudden had uttered an exclamation and started to his feet.
-
-“Speak out! What is it?” Sam demanded.
-
-The Shark pulled off his spectacles; held the lenses to the light;
-inspected them closely; shook his head.
-
-“No; they’re not clouded,” said he, half to himself. “Very curious, I
-do declare!”
-
-“What’s curious? And what are you driving at?”
-
-“Of course, it might have been a tricky reflection,” mused the Shark.
-“Or, maybe, it was just an optical illusion.”
-
-Sam caught him by both shoulders. “Wake up! What are you talking about?”
-
-“Then, again, the doctor tells me eye-strain works queerly sometimes.”
-
-Sam shook the slender youth vigorously. “Get back to earth! Let’s have
-some sense out of all this. Thought you saw something, didn’t you?
-Well, what was it?”
-
-“Man looking in the window!” said the other calmly.
-
-“Oh!” cried Sam, and whipped about. Certainly no face now was pressed
-against the pane. He ran to the door, opened it, and sprang into
-darkness, closely followed by all the other members of the club except
-the Shark, who was busying himself in polishing his glasses and
-replacing them on his nose. This task was completed to his satisfaction
-when the boys came straggling back. Their search had been utterly
-without result.
-
-They crowded about the Shark, and rained questions upon him. Just what
-had he seen? How long had he seen it? What had he to say for himself,
-anyway?
-
-The Shark waved them back. “Here! Don’t walk all over a fellow!”
-he cried. “What I saw--or thought I saw--was a head. I had just a
-glimpse--there one instant, gone the next--presto, change business!
-Looked like a human head.”
-
-“You said it was a man’s,” Sam reminded him.
-
-“Well, it might have been a boy’s--I couldn’t make it out clearly, you
-understand. It was vague, shadowy.”
-
-“Then, of course, you didn’t recognize the face?”
-
-“No,” said the Shark. “And you’ll understand, too, that I don’t insist
-that I really saw anything. You know, these glasses of mine--chance of
-freak of refracted light--all the rest of it. What’s the good, though,
-of getting all stirred up about it? If anybody was outside, he’s far
-enough away now. I’ll bet he’s running yet if he heard the crowd
-galloping out after him. Sit down, Trojan! You haven’t won a game.”
-
-Walker plumped himself into a chair. “Well, you are a cool hand!” he
-said, with a touch of admiration. “But I’m going to beat you this time,
-all the same. Whose move is it?”
-
-Step lounged across the room, but the others stood watching the play,
-which went on briskly, and to the advantage of the mathematical genius.
-The Trojan, beaten rather disgracefully, pushed back his chair.
-
-“Tackle him, Poke,” he urged. “Or you take him on, Sam. This isn’t my
-night, I reckon.”
-
-Poke grinned. “Age before beauty! Go ahead, Sam.”
-
-But there was to be no more checker play in the club just then. For,
-while Sam paused, debating his chance of coping with the skilful Shark,
-there was a loud crash of a breaking window pane, a little shower of
-fragments of glass fell to the floor, and a big stone shot across the
-room, just missing the boys standing by the table, which it struck with
-great force. Over went the table with a crash, rivaling that of the
-window. Over, too, went the Shark, untouched but thoroughly startled by
-the bombardment.
-
-Sam and Poke, Step and the Trojan and Herman Boyd poured out of the
-club like bees sallying forth to defend the hive. Around the corner
-of the building they raced, eager to detect the enemy. Prompt as they
-had been, however, they were too late. The night was very dark; there
-was much shrubbery about, which, even in its leafless state, afforded
-cover. The stone-thrower was gone. The boys could not detect a darker
-shadow betraying his whereabouts, and there was no sound of fleeing
-feet.
-
-Sam and Poke turned to the right, and the others to the left, spreading
-out as they neared the barn. The course taken by Sam and his comrade
-led toward the house, round which they worked their way as rapidly as
-possible. Strain their eyes as they might, they saw nothing to arouse
-suspicion; nor were they better rewarded when they moved to the
-street, and peered up and down road and sidewalk.
-
-“Clean get-away,” Poke said reluctantly. “Fellow must have bolted just
-as soon as he let drive. And it must have been the chap the Shark saw
-at the window, of course. What a pity he hasn’t a decent pair of eyes!”
-
-“It’s the biggest kind of a pity,” Sam agreed. “This affair is no joke,
-Poke. If that stone had struck one of us--whew!”
-
-Poke laid a hand on Sam’s arm. “Come now!” He dropped his voice almost
-to a whisper. “Fellow who threw that stone was pretty savage, or crazy,
-or--or revengeful. And--and you won’t need maps or foot-notes to
-understand who I reckon he is.”
-
-“I wouldn’t ask but one guess,” said Sam.
-
-Poke was silent for a moment, listening intently. “The others have
-had no better luck than we,” he reported. “Might as well go back, I
-suppose.”
-
-“All right,” Sam agreed, and they moved toward the club-house.
-
-Meanwhile the Shark, who had picked himself up from the floor and
-found that he was none the worse for his upset, had been making an
-investigation on his own account. First, he raised the big stone,
-shifting it meditatively from one hand to the other, as if he were
-estimating its weight. Then he crossed to the window and measured the
-height from the floor of the jagged hole in the glass. This done, he
-furrowed his brow, pulled out pencil and note-book from his pockets,
-and fell to making a calculation of some sort. He was still engaged in
-this when Sam and Poke entered.
-
-“No luck!” Poke informed him. “The fellow got away.”
-
-The Shark didn’t look up. “Hm-m! Thought he would.”
-
-“So that’s why you didn’t try to chase him?”
-
-“Partly. ’Nother reason was that I wanted to do some figuring.”
-
-“On what?”
-
-“Oh, don’t bother me!” snapped the Shark. “I’m right in the midst of
-things.”
-
-Poke frowned. “You needn’t be so snippy. Sam and I have done some
-figuring, too, and we’ve been quicker about it than you. And we
-know--what we know.”
-
-The Shark raised his eyes. “Umph! Don’t be too all-fired sure,” he
-counseled.
-
-Poke took a step toward him. “See here, you owl! Our figuring has made
-us certain--morally certain, that is--that we know who threw that
-stone.”
-
-Usually the gaze of the Shark was unwavering, but now he was blinking
-rapidly.
-
-“Go slow, Poke,” said he. “Moral certainty doesn’t answer problems in
-mathematics.”
-
-“Bosh! This isn’t mathematics.”
-
-“’Deed it is!”
-
-“Hold on, boys!” said Sam. “You’re getting nowhere. Now, Shark, listen!
-Poke and I believe that Tom Orkney did this thing. We hate to think he
-would, but we believe it because----”
-
-“Because you’re wrong. Tom couldn’t have done it--at least, I don’t
-admit that he could. It won’t work out that way.”
-
-“Work out?”
-
-The Shark nodded. “Of course, I have to depend on estimates, and I
-don’t pretend that I can show exact results,” he began; but paused as
-Step strode into the room, closely pursued by Boyd and the Trojan.
-
-In the middle of the floor Step halted. Not a word said he, but raised
-a hand dramatically.
-
-The hand held an object, recognized at sight by every boy there. It
-was the cap, owned by Tom Orkney, which had figured in the celebrated
-quarrel.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII PUNISHMENT POSTPONED
-
-
-There was a long pause, and a very significant pause it was. The
-boys stared at the cap in Step’s hand; then they glanced from one to
-another. Here and there a head nodded, as if in answer to an unspoken
-question; but it was left to Poke to break the silence.
-
-“Jupiter crickets! That settles it, I guess. Well, I never have liked
-Tom Orkney, but I didn’t think him up to this sort of thing!”
-
-“Or down to it!” cried Herman Boyd.
-
-“Now you’re talking!” chimed in the Trojan. “Lowest-down trick that
-ever was!”
-
-“Trick! Huh! Worse than that!” growled Poke. “Why, that rock might have
-killed one of us!”
-
-The Shark appeared to be estimating the weight of the stone. “Yes; it’s
-heavy enough,” he said calmly. “If it had struck anybody squarely, the
-result might have been fatal.”
-
-There was a wrathful gleam in Sam’s eye. “Where did you find the cap,
-Step?” he demanded. “Let’s get down to business.”
-
-“It was on the ground, back of the barn--low limb of one of the apple
-trees must have knocked it off his head. Great luck that I stumbled
-upon it; and that was just what I did. Too dark to see anything, but my
-foot caught in something, and I stopped and picked the something up.
-And here it is!”
-
-Poke was wagging his head in his peculiar fashion. “Fellows, it’s as
-plain as day. Orkney has been too proud to wear the cap to school, but
-he didn’t mind putting it on at night, when nobody would notice it.
-Then he came sneaking around the club-house. The Shark must have had a
-glimpse of him at the window. When we went out to see who was there,
-he lay low. As soon as we came back into the house, he let drive the
-boulder at the first chance, and then bolted for all he was worth. He
-had such a start that he got away; but he didn’t dare stop to pick up
-the cap. And now, I say, we have him where we want him.”
-
-“You bet we have!”
-
-“That’s hitting the nail on the head!”
-
-“Gee! but it was a cowardly job!”
-
-So spoke the Trojan, Step and Boyd. Poke warmed to his theme, after the
-manner of orators, encouraged by applause.
-
-“We’ve got him where we want him, and we’ll put him through the works.
-I tell you, he’ll be mighty sorry before this thing is ended. Why, he
-ought to be arrested and sent to jail!”
-
-“H-m-m-m!” It was a murmur tinged with disapproval, which Poke did not
-fail to perceive.
-
-“Wait a minute, fellows!” he said hastily. “I know what you’re
-thinking, and I guess you’re right. We can take care of this case
-ourselves. We will, too! If the club can’t defend itself, it ought to
-go out of business.”
-
-There was another murmur, all approval.
-
-“It may have been Step’s scrap in the beginning, but it’s our scrap
-now,” Poke went on. “It’s a club affair. That stone was thrown at the
-bunch--at Sam, for instance, as much as at Step.”
-
-The Shark grunted. “Huh! Be accurate, Poke, be accurate! It wasn’t
-thrown at Step at all. He was out of range--across the room from the
-rest of us. He wasn’t in sight from the window.”
-
-“Eh? What’s that?”
-
-“It was the fact--come to think of it,” Step himself admitted. “I
-remember I’d left the crowd.”
-
-“Humph! Don’t see that that makes any difference,” argued Poke.
-
-“It doesn’t--in one way,” said the Shark. “In another, it does. It
-means that the person who chucked that stone wasn’t especially after
-Step. No doubt he took a good look into the room before he let drive.
-And, as I recall the position of each of us, Sam stood where he must
-have been the real bull’s-eye of the target.”
-
-“But what diff----”
-
-The Shark did not let Poke finish the query. “The difference between
-getting things straight or crooked,” he rapped out. “How can you solve
-a problem----”
-
-“Oh, hang mathematics!” Poke interrupted, in turn. “Cut ’em out! This
-isn’t a recitation; it’s a row! Let’s hear what Sam has to say.”
-
-Sam had been keeping silent, but with growing difficulty. He was, as
-we know, naturally impulsive, and still a beginner in the practice
-of the policy of Safety First. Moreover, he was not a fellow of the
-sort to make ready excuse for attacks which smacked of cowardice or
-treachery; and his patience had been sorely tried by the series of
-depredations about his home. While his clubmates had debated, he had
-been considering not only the stone-throwing but also the earlier
-instances of what he was now sure was somebody’s revenge. The cap
-apparently settled the question of identity. Likewise, the Shark’s
-observation regarding the target had its weight. Sam struggled to keep
-his temper, but it was like a case of bottling steam in a boiler and
-fanning the fire beneath. When you treat a boiler so, there is likely
-to be an explosion.
-
-“What have I to say?” The words seemed to force themselves from his
-lips. “You fellows don’t dream how much I could say! This thing
-to-night is only a link in a chain.”
-
-The others stared at him in amazement.
-
-“Link--link in a chain?” Step repeated.
-
-“Just that! A chain of meannesses! Listen!” And Sam went on to describe
-briefly, but forcefully, the persecution to which he believed he had
-been subjected. “And now we’ve had the stoning,” he added. “There is
-one explanation, and only one. Tom Orkney has dropped Step and taken me
-on. He hates me more for interfering than he hates Step for squabbling
-with him. And just as that’s the only explanation, there’s just one way
-to handle the case--and that’s for me to settle with Tom Orkney. And I
-will--don’t you worry!”
-
-None of his hearers took his words lightly. All were ready to consider
-them very gravely. Here, indeed, was an issue for a youthful court of
-honor; and it behooves such courts, young or old, to pass judgment in
-all solemnity.
-
-“Well, I guess you’re entitled,” said Poke slowly.
-
-The others, with one exception, nodded assent. The Shark looked
-unconvinced.
-
-“Talking about chains,” he remarked, “you mustn’t forget the old rule:
-the chain’s no stronger than its weakest link. And there is a link
-that may be weak. I don’t say it is, but I do say it may be.”
-
-“Rats!” snapped Step.
-
-The Shark wheeled to face him. “Rats nothing! What’s the record--the
-school record--for the shot put?”
-
-“What are you talking about?”
-
-“The record. What is it?”
-
-“Oh, thirty or thirty-five feet for the twelve-pound shot.”
-
-The Shark frowned. “Confound it! but can’t you chaps make anything
-exact? ‘Thirty or thirty-five feet’! How’s anybody to make computations
-with all unknown quantities?”
-
-“What are you trying to compute?”
-
-The Shark juggled the stone, which he still held. “Humph! This weighs
-more than twelve pounds, I’ll bet--may run up to fifteen,” said he.
-“But what am I figuring on? Why, the amount of force required to send
-it through the arc this stone described.”
-
-“Twelve to fifteen pounds!” jeered Step. “Seems to me you’re furnishing
-some of the unknown quantities yourself.”
-
-“I am,” said the Shark. “I admit it. I also admit that I can’t reach
-satisfactory results from such data. But the results I do get--subject
-to revision, of course--make me doubt that Tom Orkney could have done
-the job. When I have the stone weighed, and when I measure the distance
-across the room, and add a good estimate of the distance the thrower
-stood from the window, I believe I can plot a curve----”
-
-A chorus of shouts interrupted him. The non-mathematical members of the
-club would have none of such follies. Evidence? Wasn’t the cap evidence
-enough to convict Orkney?
-
-Stoutly the Shark maintained that one should not put too great faith in
-circumstantial evidence.
-
-“What! You’d put more in your old curves and calculations?” cried Step.
-
-“Every time!” vowed the Shark.
-
-Sam cut short the discussion. “Look here, fellows!” he said sharply.
-“I’m going to thrash Orkney, and there’s no more to be said about it.”
-
-“Well, thrash ahead!” growled the Shark. “I don’t object to the general
-proposition; but I am pointing out that you may be wrong as to your
-reason for thrashing him.”
-
-“I’ll risk that!” cried Sam hotly. “And I’ll even the score at the
-first chance I get.”
-
-This decision, warmly admired and praised by the club, seemed to be
-in a fair way for accomplishment on Monday when Sam, walking alone to
-school, met Orkney at a street corner.
-
-Meditation had cooled his anger, but had not lessened his determination
-to have a speedy accounting. He put himself in Orkney’s path, and gave
-him monosyllabic greeting.
-
-“Huh!” It must be confessed that there was a distinctly challenging
-note in Sam’s growl.
-
-“Huh!” responded Orkney. In fairness it is to be stated that he
-betrayed no sign of anxiety; and instead of halting, stepped aside and
-passed the boy holding the center of the walk.
-
-Sam turned, and overtook him in three long strides. Then they moved on
-together, but with a space of three or four feet between them.
-
-Orkney gazed straight before him. The sullenness of his expression may
-have been a trifle more marked than usual. Sam, studying him from the
-corner of an eye, decided that his enemy was merely playing a waiting
-game.
-
-There was a moment’s silence. Then said Sam, very grimly:
-
-“This thing has got to stop--see?”
-
-The tone was more impressive than the words. Orkney stopped, and
-inspected the other coolly.
-
-“Has, eh? Well, what might ‘this thing’ be?” he inquired.
-
-“You know well enough!”
-
-“Guess again. I don’t.”
-
-“You do.”
-
-A dull red showed in Orkney’s cheeks. “That’s the same thing as telling
-me I don’t tell the truth.”
-
-“Does sound like it.”
-
-“Mean to call me a liar?”
-
-“Yes--if you say you don’t know.”
-
-Orkney’s fists clenched; but Sam, warily watching, saw that the enemy
-kept himself in hand.
-
-Again there was a pause. Sam broke it:
-
-“There’s no use in your trying to put up a bluff. It won’t go. You
-understand perfectly what I mean.”
-
-[Illustration: “YOU’RE LOOKING FOR TROUBLE”]
-
-“I understand that you’re looking for trouble,” said Orkney slowly.
-“That’s nothing new with you and your crowd--you think you own the
-earth, and you’d like to fence in this part of it for your own
-stamping grounds. You had things your own way till I came along, and
-you’ve always been down on me because I wouldn’t tail on after your
-procession. You’d rather interfere with me than eat, any of you. Why,
-just the other day Step Jones----”
-
-“Leave Step out of this!” Sam interposed. He had not been able to
-reconcile himself wholly to Step’s performance; and Orkney having found
-a weak spot in his armor, his tone was more belligerent than ever.
-“You’re dealing with me and not with Jones this time. And Step doesn’t
-beat dogs, and cut clothes-lines, and heave rocks through windows.”
-
-“Well, who does?”
-
-“You do!” roared Sam.
-
-Orkney pulled up. He faced his accuser, and his eyes did not fall
-before Sam’s.
-
-“Parker, you’re talking like a wild man,” he said.
-
-“Wild, am I? Not much! I’ve got proof!”
-
-Orkney shrugged his shoulders. “It’s plain enough you’re looking for
-a fight, and don’t care how you get it. Now, I tell you, in the first
-place, that all this stuff you’re hinting and insinuating is gibberish
-to me; and in the second place that if you want fight I’ll give you all
-you’re looking for and more, too.”
-
-“Now?” demanded Sam.
-
-“No,” said Orkney, and grinned a queer, savage grin. “What’s more, you
-know why I won’t fight now. It’s my day to speak for the Lester prize,
-and a pretty chance I’d have for it, wouldn’t I, standing up before the
-school with a black eye or a cut lip? You talk about bluffs! Where’s
-there a bigger bluff than asking a fellow to fight when you know he
-can’t take you on? Or maybe this is your game: You’re scheming to
-batter me up so that one of your gang can carry off the Lester, eh?”
-
-“I hadn’t thought of the prize-speaking!”
-
-“Well, I’ve been thinking of it for some time. And I don’t propose to
-let you ruin my chances.”
-
-Sam fell back a pace. There was an element of reason in the other’s
-contention, which he could not ignore.
-
-“Well, if I let you off now----” he began.
-
-Orkney’s grin was sardonic. “‘Let me off’ is good, but we’ll also
-let that pass. I’m busy this morning, as I’ve explained, but after
-that--well, you can suit your own convenience in picking a time for
-taking a good licking.”
-
-“This afternoon, then----” stormed Sam.
-
-“Oh, suit yourself!” said Orkney curtly, and marched off.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII NOT ON THE PROGRAM
-
-
-Sam, following his enemy at a more moderate pace, was burdened by a
-peculiar sense of helplessness. He was troubled by no doubts of the
-justice of his cause; but he was annoyed and perplexed by the obstacles
-Fate threw in his way. They were the harder to consider philosophically
-because he was quite sure that he was obeying his new rule of Safety
-First, and that Orkney’s guilt was clearly established. At the same
-time he had to admit that Tom had offered valid grounds for delaying
-combat. Altogether the case struck him as one of difficult application
-of entirely sound principles.
-
-As he turned a corner, however, he forgot Orkney for a little; for
-within a dozen yards of him he beheld two men in conversation. And one
-of the men was Major Bates. The other was Peter Groche.
-
-Sam almost halted. He gazed in surprise at the two. The Major had
-never appeared to be straighter, or fiercer, or more bristling; while
-Groche’s slouch was never more pronounced. The ne’er-do-well was
-listening sulkily to the Major’s very energetic remarks, occasionally
-growling a brief reply to the veteran.
-
-As it chanced, Sam had not met the Major since the night he had made
-confession. A glance was enough to show that he had nearly recovered
-from the effects of his wounds; and the ear testified that the vigor of
-his speech was in no wise abated.
-
-After a second’s hesitation Sam advanced. As he neared the men, Groche,
-seeming, of a sudden, to catch sight of him, wheeled and shuffled off,
-growling as he went. The Major swished his cane, as if he regretted
-that it might not descend upon the retreating legs. Then he, too, saw
-the boy, and the severity of his expression lessened a trifle.
-
-“Ah, young man!” he said. “Ah, good-morning!”
-
-“Good-morning, sir,” said Sam.
-
-The Major tapped the sidewalk smartly with his cane. “I’m out of
-hospital. Am I to regard myself as in receipt of your felicitations?”
-
-“’Deed you are, sir!” Sam assured him with unfeigned warmth.
-
-The Major’s eyes twinkled. “Mutually satisfactory state of things, eh?
-I’m pleased myself. Fact is, I’m so overflowing with good will this
-morning that I’ve been trying to improve that vagabond.”
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Sam.
-
-“By Jove! but I fancy I made it clear even to his befuddled wits that
-there is no profit in persistently remaining a social liability. I
-warned him that if he didn’t mend his ways he’d end in state’s prison.
-Big, hulking brute like that’s liable, some time, to commit a felony.”
-
-Sam glanced at the retreating Groche. The fellow _was_ big and hulking,
-and brutish as well--an ugly customer, in short.
-
-“Has he been bothering you again, sir?”
-
-“No,” answered the Major. “I rather anticipated some of his
-characteristic attentions, but he has quite neglected me. Not that I
-complain--certainly not! Only I took occasion to point out to him the
-exceeding unwisdom of again annoying me. Odd, too, how he took the
-advice. Leered at me, and mumbled, but made no distinct threats. But
-I must not detain you, young man. You, I infer, are on your way to
-school?”
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Sam again.
-
-“Then proceed. A moment, though!” The Major’s bushy eyebrows met in
-a frown, which wholly lacked ferocity. “Your holidays are at hand, I
-believe. Some day, when you’re at leisure, I should be glad to show you
-my modest collection of weapons of war and the chase. Ought to interest
-you, as a budding sportsman with a promising record of large game!”
-
-The Major’s eyes were twinkling once more. Sam blushed hotly.
-
-“I’ll be very glad to come, sir,” he said.
-
-“Then I have the honor to wish you a very good morning,” quoth the
-Major; and they parted in friendly fashion.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Both Major Bates and Peter Groche soon lost first place in Sam’s
-consideration. The school session promptly put the Orkney affair to the
-fore.
-
-The Lester prize for declamation was one of the great honors of the
-course, and competition always was keen. The contest covered a full
-term, two boys and two girls entering the lists each Monday. Usually
-they were seniors, elocution being part of the required work of the
-final year, but sometimes juniors volunteered, often with a notion of
-“working off” the requirement ahead of time, but occasionally with a
-hope of winning.
-
-There could be no doubt that Tom Orkney did his best to win. As it
-happened, he was fortunate in his competitors. The other boy was a
-senior, who took the platform simply because he had to take it, and who
-raced through his selection with an eye single to ending the ordeal
-in a minimum of time. Then two girls performed conscientiously but
-ineffectively. And then came Orkney, junior and volunteer.
-
-Tom had chosen an ancient favorite “speaking piece,” so ancient,
-indeed, that a giggle ran through the hall when the principal
-announced, “The Parting of Marmion and Douglas.” But the merriment
-quickly died, as the boy swung into Scott’s stirring verse.
-
-“Good work!” was the involuntary and whispered tribute of Step Jones,
-who sat beside Sam. “Awfully good work, confound him!”
-
-Sam nodded. Orkney was revealing unexpected dramatic fire; and,
-unpopular as he was with his audience, was capturing its admiration.
-One might suspect that he had had professional coaching, but one could
-not deny that it had been worth while.
-
-There was loud applause--not the customary ripple of hand-clapping but
-a spontaneous and hearty demonstration--and Tom was smiling when he
-made his bow to his schoolmates, and another bow to the principal, and
-came down the steps from the stage. It was not a pleasing smile, for
-there was in it more than a trace of supercilious triumph.
-
-“Hang the chump! Look at the smirk of him!” complained Step.
-
-Sam made no answer. Orkney was approaching, and for an instant the eyes
-of the rivals met. Sam’s expression did not change, but the other’s
-smile lost the little charm it had. Sam found it bitterly taunting; it
-seemed to say to him, “This was what you schemed to prevent, eh? Well,
-you didn’t do it, did you?”
-
-Step drove an elbow into his ribs. “You can’t spoil that mug by
-pounding it! Say, though! When are you going to get at it?”
-
-“Soon as I can,” said Sam simply.
-
-“Date with him?” whispered Step eagerly.
-
-“Not exactly.”
-
-The classes were rising to march out of the hall, but Step found time
-to make a suggestion.
-
-“Maybe you can catch him down at the pond this afternoon. They say the
-ice is at last strong enough to hold.”
-
-“I’ll be there,” Sam promised.
-
-Mild as the season had been, the temperature had been falling steadily,
-if slowly; and the skim of ice on the big mill-pond on the outskirts
-of Plainville had thickened until it had been for some days in rather
-perilous use by venturesome skaters. Now, however, Sam believed it
-was reasonably safe; and when he descended the slope to the pond, its
-surface was dotted with swiftly gliding figures.
-
-Directly in front of him a lively game of hockey was in progress. To
-the right, and safely removed from the rushes of the players, were boys
-and girls, skating singly, or in pairs, or in long lines, hand in
-hand. To the left, near the dam, were a few youngsters.
-
-Sam shook his head as he observed them. The ice always was thinner
-there than in other parts of the pond, and there was seldom a season
-in which somebody did not regret rashness in straying too close to
-air-holes. At a time like this there was more or less danger anywhere
-in the neighborhood of the dam.
-
-“It ought to be roped off,” he told himself; but as there appeared to
-be no means to carry out this precaution he sat down on the bank and
-began to put on his skates. This he did leisurely, pausing now and
-then to run his glance over the skaters. At a little distance up the
-shore some of the larger boys were building a fire, and were having
-trouble, their fuel consisting chiefly of long boards torn from an
-abandoned ice-house. Here a little crowd clustered. Sam thought he had
-a glimpse of Orkney, but was not certain. As he tightened his last
-strap, however, and stood up, Step came along, arms and legs flying in
-an effort to recover the partly lost art of the Dutch roll. At sight
-of Sam the lanky youth went through some extraordinary contortions,
-checked his speed, and glided alongside his friend.
-
-“Say! It’s all right--he’s here!” was his greeting.
-
-“Who’s here?” asked Sam, quite unnecessarily.
-
-“Humph! Who you s’pose? Deacon Pender?”
-
-“No,” said Sam coolly. “I don’t imagine you were thinking of the
-deacon.”
-
-“You bet I wasn’t!” rapped Step. “I was thinking of Tom Orkney.”
-
-Sam peered at the crowd by the fire. “Queer I can’t make him out,” he
-remarked.
-
-“He’s down at the lower end--along with those kids.”
-
-“Oh!”
-
-Step was grinning. “Oh, he tried to butt into the hockey game, but the
-fellows gave him the cold shoulder. So he had to flock by himself till
-he saw the young ’uns. He’s with ’em now, teasing and tormenting ’em, I
-reckon.”
-
-Sam struck out with the experimental feeling of one on runners for the
-first time in months; made a wide circle, and came back to Step.
-
-“Bit rusty, but I’ll get the swing all right in an hour or so,” he
-reported.
-
-Step brought him back to the previous question, so to speak.
-
-“What do you want? Don’t mean to fight him on skates, do you?”
-
-“Certainly not,” said Sam testily. “What put such a notion in your
-head?”
-
-“Well, what are you here for?” demanded Step pointedly.
-
-“Don’t expect to have a fight before all this crowd, do you?”
-
-“Seems to me you’re getting awful fussy.”
-
-“I am, if ‘fussy’ consists in objecting to scrapping with half the town
-rubbering.”
-
-Step looked hurt. “Don’t you want anybody but yourself to have any fun?”
-
-“I don’t intend to entertain Plainville in a body.”
-
-Step’s expression was bewildered. “Say--say, you ain’t crawling, are
-you?” he queried.
-
-The suspicion stung Sam’s pride. “Crawling? Not on your life! I’m
-looking for Tom Orkney, and when I find him I’ll ask him to walk back
-in the woods with me--he’ll know what for. And you can come along, and
-one or two of the others, but----”
-
-The cloud vanished from Step’s brow. “Oh, that’s all right!” he said
-heartily. “Can’t have a mob trailing along, of course. But I say!
-There’s Orkney now--just shooting out from behind the point. He’s
-chasing one of the kids.”
-
-Sam’s glance followed the direction of Step’s extended arm.
-
-“Yes, that’s Orkney, fast enough. But what’s he doing?”
-
-“Pestering the youngster!” snapped Step. “Can’t you see? And I declare,
-if it isn’t Little Perrine he’s worrying!”
-
-Sam watched the swiftly moving figures, one short and slender, the
-other tall and stout. Little Perrine, barely in the lead, seemed to be
-hard pressed, for he dodged frequently without being able to throw off
-his pursuer.
-
-Suddenly Step cried out sharply: “The miserable bully! Look, Sam! he’s
-driving the kid right down to the dam, where the ice won’t hold him for
-a minute!”
-
-“Confound it all!” fumed Sam. “Why won’t people think of Safety First?
-Why won’t----”
-
-There he broke off, aghast at the catastrophe he beheld, but Step’s
-voice rose shrilly:
-
-“Great Scott! it’s happened! They’re in--both in!”
-
-With appalling swiftness the ice had yielded beneath the weight of
-the two, and Little Perrine, vanishing as if through a trap-door in a
-stage, had been followed almost instantly by Orkney.
-
-Step started to the rescue, striking out wildly and shouting as he
-raced down the pond at top speed. Sam, about to join in the dash,
-checked himself. He knew well enough how the thin ice near the dam,
-once broken, would crack and crumble under even slight pressure.
-“Safety First!” was the thought which flashed upon his brain; safety
-not so much for himself as for the pair struggling in the water.
-
-Other skaters were speeding after Step: but Sam, turning, hurried to
-the heap of boards near the fire. He caught up the longest plank on
-which he could lay hands, and skated down the pond with all the speed
-his burden permitted. Before him other would-be rescuers, halted by
-the widening circle of open water, were moving about aimlessly, if
-pluckily, getting in one another’s way, and risking a general break-up
-of the ice under their weight. One youth, indeed, had slipped over the
-edge, but luckily had been dragged back, suffering no more serious
-consequences than a drenching to the waist.
-
-Orkney was clutching desperately with one hand at the crumbling edge of
-the ice. At first Sam saw nothing of Little Perrine, but as he dropped
-his board and thrust its end over the water, he had a glimpse of the
-boy’s head, pressed close to Orkney’s breast. So Tom, having caused the
-disaster, was doing what he could to save an innocent victim! Such was
-Sam’s belief, and the belief of Step and the rest.
-
-The long plank swung nearer and nearer to Orkney. He grasped it, drew
-himself forward, threw an arm over it; his other arm was still about
-Little Perrine. Sam, kneeling on the board with Step anchoring its end
-to the thicker ice, got a firm grip on Orkney’s coat collar. Then came
-the tug of war. It lasted for thrilling seconds, of which Sam was to
-have only confused memories, in which were mingled the ominous cracking
-of the ice, the shouting of the spectators, his own cries of warning
-to the crowd to move back, Orkney’s struggles, the ghastly pallor of
-Little Perrine’s face. Slowly, by inches, they gained. Then with a
-report as sharp as that of a pistol a foot or two of the edge gave
-way; Orkney dropped back till his shoulders were submerged; Sam’s arms
-were plunged in water to the elbows. Then Tom made a mighty effort.
-Sam exerted all his strength. What had been lost was recovered and
-retained. Then there was another clear gain; and, in an instant more,
-Orkney and Little Perrine had been dragged to safety.
-
-Tom was able to raise himself on an elbow, but Little Perrine lay
-unconscious and motionless.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV SENT TO COVENTRY
-
-
-It was a disagreeable morning, dully lowering and overcast, with now
-and then a flurry of snowflakes bearing promise of a heavier fall to
-come, but a crowd of boys and girls lingered in the school yard.
-
-There seemed to be a curious constraint upon everybody. There was
-no shouting, no practical joking, no horse-play; but there was much
-low-toned talk in the groups, in which the classes appeared to have
-gathered unconsciously. Now and then, when late comers hove in sight,
-there was a stir of expectancy, and necks were craned as eager glances
-were directed toward the gate. Sam Parker, arriving with Poke Green,
-was greeted by a murmur of applause; and, flushed with embarrassment,
-made his way to a party of his chums, who chanced to be standing near
-the steps leading to the big door.
-
-“Come on--let’s go in!” he said. “What’s everybody waiting for?”
-
-Step Jones laughed harshly. “Ho, ho! This is a reception committee,
-Sam--reception committee and committee of the whole. It’s for T.
-Orkney’s benefit.”
-
-“You’re making a mistake,” Sam protested.
-
-“Humph! I may be, but if I am, I’m not lonesome.”
-
-“That makes the thing all the worse.”
-
-“Can’t be much worse than it is.”
-
-Sam shook his head. “Oh, be fair!” he urged. “Remember, Orkney held on
-to Little Perrine like a good fellow.”
-
-“Yes--after he’d driven him into the water!” growled Step.
-
-“But----”
-
-“But it was like locking the door after the horse was stolen,” Poke put
-in.
-
-“Right you are!” contributed the Trojan.
-
-“Well, what’s the latest news?” asked Sam. “How is Perrine this
-morning?”
-
-“Mighty badly off, I hear,” Step told him.
-
-“Delirious all night,” added the Trojan.
-
-Sam looked perturbed, and with reason. “Little” Perrine, as the boy was
-known to his mates, was a delicate chap, clever at his books--he was a
-high school freshman at ten--but weak physically and of an extremely
-nervous temperament; just the sort of lad, in short, to suffer most
-from such an experience as he had undergone in the icy water. Moreover,
-he was the pet of the school, and any harm done him would be bitterly
-resented by the pupils. Indeed, the case promised to go hard with the
-unpopular Orkney, even if more encouraging tidings were received from
-those caring for one regarded generally as the victim of his malicious
-pursuit.
-
-The Shark came hurrying up the walk, carrying a great bundle of books.
-He nodded at his clubmates, but did not halt. Poke chuckled softly as
-he passed them.
-
-“There’s cold-blooded science for you!” said he. “Much the Shark cares
-for a trifling matter of life or death when he’s got a real juicy lot
-of equations on hand! Why, he put in all yesterday afternoon figuring
-away with the principal, and now he’s going to have another crack at
-him before the bell rings. I met him last night, and asked him what he
-was up to, and what do you suppose he said?”
-
-“Give it up,” said the Trojan.
-
-“So do I,” quoth Step.
-
-“Trajectories!” cried Poke with all the scorn he could command.
-
-Step rubbed his chin. “Well, it takes all sorts of people to fill up
-the world. But there are mighty few like the Shark, I’ll bet you!...
-Hulloo, though! There’s Jennie Bruce. She lives next door to the
-Perrines, and she can tell us the latest.”
-
-Others had the same thought, and crowded about the girl who had just
-entered the yard. There was a moment’s waiting, and then an angry
-murmur ran through the throng.
-
-“Whew! That means he’s worse!” Step inferred.
-
-Jennie Bruce broke through the press. She came straight to Sam.
-
-“You should have heard first of all,” she declared. “You pulled both of
-them out, you know.”
-
-“I hope it isn’t bad news,” said Sam.
-
-“It’s bad enough. No; Little Perrine isn’t dead. He’s better this
-morning, but the doctor says he may not be able to be out for a week.
-But that isn’t it, at all!”
-
-“Isn’t what?”
-
-“What I’ve got to tell you, Sam Parker. It’s about last night--and
-almost all through the night. Poor Little Perrine was out of his head,
-raving. He seemed to be going over and over it, and then beginning
-again and going all through it.”
-
-“That is, through the accident?”
-
-Jennie’s eyes flashed. “Accident! You know well enough it was something
-else. Oh, well, perhaps it was partly accident, but it was something
-else, too. Don’t stop me! I don’t call it all accident when the poor
-little fellow was just driven out upon the thin ice! And while he was
-delirious he kept crying out, ‘Don’t let him get me! Stop him! Don’t
-let Tom Orkney get me!’ Why, we could hear him over at our house. It
-was awful!”
-
-“Gee, but it must have been tough!” cried Step.
-
-“Tough!” For a moment Jennie regarded Master Jones half pityingly.
-“Mercy! but you boys have weak ways of putting things! If you’d heard
-him shrieking----”
-
-“Hold on!” the Trojan broke in excitedly. “Here comes Orkney!”
-
-There may have been method in the circumstance that Orkney was reaching
-the school grounds but a few minutes before the opening hour. Perhaps
-he had hoped that most of his mates would be within the building when
-he arrived, but he did not falter when his glance fell upon the crowd.
-Of its temper he could have had little doubt, though probably he had
-not foreseen the hostility of the reception which awaited him.
-
-Three or four senior girls near the gate deliberately turned their
-backs to him. As many senior boys looked him full in the face with no
-sign of recognition.
-
-Orkney squared his shoulders, and raised his head. Looking straight
-before him, he walked up the path. No one addressed him, and he spoke
-to nobody till he came to Sam.
-
-“Parker!” Tom’s voice was low and not quite steady.
-
-“Well?” said Sam coldly.
-
-There was a little pause. Orkney was meeting Sam’s searching gaze
-without flinching, but his sallow face had taken on a grayish pallor.
-
-“Parker, I’ve got something to say to you. And I want to say it now.
-Yesterday you yanked me out of a bad fix. It was a great job you did.
-I’d like to have you know I appreciate it, even if I don’t seem to be
-able to say much more than ‘Thank you!’”
-
-“Oh, that’s all right!” said Sam, hastily and, it may be, gruffly.
-“Don’t bother your head about it. Forget it!”
-
-“Can’t!” growled Orkney, gruff in his turn. “That brings me to
-something else I’ve got to say and you’ve got to hear. That other
-matter--you know?”
-
-Sam nodded. The “other matter,” of course, was the engagement to fight.
-
-“This--this is harder to--to get right.” Orkney plainly found
-explanation difficult. “You put something up to me, and I said yes. I
-meant yes; suited me. But you’ve complicated the situation. When you
-pulled me out of the pond you tied my hands--don’t you see that?”
-
-“I didn’t mean to.”
-
-“You did, all the same. I won’t go into details, with all these
-long-ears rubbering; but you don’t need details, anyway.”
-
-The youths referred to as “long-ears” had the grace to retire a pace
-or two, but their liking for their critic was not heightened.
-
-“I get your drift--guess I do,” said Sam. “But here! You’re free to
-forget yesterday’s business. Wish you would!”
-
-“Don’t think I wouldn’t--if I could!” There was an ugly gleam in
-Orkney’s eyes. “That’s out of the question, though. So my hands are
-tied, as I tell you.”
-
-“They needn’t be.”
-
-Orkney shook his head. “It’s all very well for you to take that
-attitude, but I can’t. I’m in your debt--deep in it. So there are
-things I can’t do that I’d mighty well like to do.” And again the ugly
-gleam was in evidence.
-
-A wave of the old anger seemed to sweep over Sam.
-
-“Go ahead and try ’em, then!” he cried savagely.
-
-Two spots of red, of a sudden, burned in Orkney’s cheeks, but he kept
-his self-control.
-
-“There’s no use talking--I can see that,” he said grimly; turned, and
-marched alone up the steps to the great door.
-
-The decisions of youth are decisions of a drumhead court-martial, to
-be carried out on the spot.
-
-The school had but one verdict to give in the case of Thomas Orkney.
-As he disappeared in the corridor, there was a chorus of hisses and
-groans.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV THE CLUB ENDORSES ITSELF
-
-
-The promise of the snow flurries had been borne out in full measure,
-and now the country about Plainville was covered by a thick, white
-mantle. Real winter had come at last, for after the storm there had
-been a sharp drop in temperature, forecasting not only a “white
-Christmas” but also holidays brisk and invigorating. And Friday night
-had arrived, with its relief from school cares, and the Safety First
-Club was in full session. All the members were in attendance, and all
-were discussing the most sensational bit of news the town had enjoyed
-since the mysterious wounding of Major Bates.
-
-Tom Orkney had run away!
-
-The fact was established beyond doubt or denial. The boy was gone,
-nobody knew whither. There was, to be sure, a somewhat popular theory
-that he had fled to a neighboring large city; but the theory was based
-on conjecture, and wholly lacked convincing proof.
-
-For forty-eight hours Plainville had been talking about his
-disappearance, but the topic had lost nothing of its interest. At the
-club Poke held the floor, and submitted his philosophic view of the
-case to his friends.
-
-“Orkney’s a stubborn brute, as you fellows very well know. When he
-makes up his mind, it’s made up, and it stays made up. He’s bolted, and
-he’ll take precious good care not to come back right away. Where do I
-think he’s gone? I don’t know, but I’m sure he’s gone far enough. And
-if you insist on having my personal opinion, I think it’s good riddance
-of bad rubbish.”
-
-“Humph! Haven’t seen me shedding the sorrowful tear, have you?”
-demanded Step.
-
-“I haven’t seen any tears,” said Poke. “Why, Orkney hasn’t a friend
-left, after the way he treated Little Perrine! Don’t you remember how
-everybody cut him that last day in school?”
-
-“Must have been pretty hard for him,” Sam observed thoughtfully.
-
-“I don’t believe a soul spoke to him,” Poke went on. “That is, none of
-the fellows or the girls did. The teachers, of course, had to; but they
-said just as little as they could. Why, he was called up but once, and
-that was in the Greek class.”
-
-Step moved uneasily. “Say, though! That was a star translation Orkney
-made! Jiminy! but he must have had an iron nerve to keep his wits about
-him, with all hands doing their best to show how they despised him.”
-
-“Just what it was--case of nerve!” cried Poke. “Bet you I know just
-how he felt. He was saying to himself, ‘I’ll show this gang that they
-can’t rattle me; I’ll show ’em that I don’t give a whoop for their
-opinion. Let ’em hiss me! I’ll go through this day and prove that they
-can’t even rattle me.’ And that is just what he did. And when school
-was dismissed, he walked out as coolly as if he didn’t understand that
-nobody would travel with him for love or money. You know he’d been
-building up a sort of crowd of his own? Well, every one of the bunch
-quit him when the pinch came. But he kept a stiff upper lip right to
-the end!”
-
-“He surely did,” admitted the Trojan, with a touch of reluctant
-admiration.
-
-“But all through it he must have been planning what he’d do. My notion
-is that when he went down the school steps he was saying to himself
-that it was for the last time. He’d been scheming out what would come
-next. In the afternoon he got together the few things he meant to take
-along. He ate supper with his folks as usual. Then he slipped out of
-the house. And that’s the last anybody in Plainville knows certainly
-about Tom Orkney.”
-
-From his corner the Shark shot curt comment: “Big mistake he made! Case
-of quitting!”
-
-“How do you figure that out?” asked Herman Boyd.
-
-“Ran away under fire, didn’t he?”
-
-“But he’d stood the fire all day.”
-
-“Umph! That wasn’t enough.”
-
-Poke waved a hand. “Listen, you fellows! I’ve been meditating on that
-part of it. And I’ve doped it out this way: Orkney had pride enough to
-carry him through one day--pride and nerve are the same thing with him,
-I reckon. But when it came to facing other days, and other days, and
-then some more--why, that’s where a chap would have to have the backing
-of a clean conscience. And there were all the tricks he’d played on
-Sam, and the chance he took of killing one of us with that big boulder,
-and the dirty deal he gave Little Perrine--why, his conscience must be
-as spotted--as spotted as an old blotter!”
-
-“So that’s your diagram?”
-
-“Well, as I say, that’s the way I see it.”
-
-The Shark’s lip curled. “Huh! Easy to see what you hope’s true!”
-
-“Well, what’s your mathematical calculation, old Dry-as-Dust?”
-
-“Oh, go on!” snapped the Shark. “You’re the lecturer.”
-
-Poke needed no urging. “Well, I tell you he’d made up his mind to
-beat it, and he did. And he got away, all right. You know his aunt
-telegraphed, and telephoned, and called in the police, and offered a
-hundred-dollar reward; but there was no clue anywhere. Hard luck for
-her that Tom’s father is out West! They say she’s almost crazy.”
-
-“And Tom’s mother is away, too,” said the Trojan.
-
-“Yes; she’s visiting down South. Those are things, though, we’ve
-nothing to do with.”
-
-“That’s a queer way to put it,” grumbled the Shark.
-
-“Not at all,” Poke insisted. “You don’t get my point, which is that
-we may not be responsible for those things, but we are responsible
-for others. One of them is that we’re the fellows who got on to
-Orkney’s meannesses, and that Sam here promised him a thrashing and a
-showing-up. Then, somehow, I can’t help feeling that Sam, in fishing
-Orkney and Little Perrine out of the pond, helped to bring things
-to a head. But from the very first--from the time Orkney came to
-Plainville--it has been our crowd that blocked him, that took the shine
-off him. The Shark downed him in ‘math,’ and Step made a monkey of him
-in Greek; but, most of all, we--this club--kept him from bossing the
-class. And for that, I believe, we ought to be proud to be responsible.”
-
-“Some speech, Poke!” cried Herman Boyd.
-
-“Shouldn’t wonder if there were something in the idea,” contributed the
-Trojan.
-
-“Thanks, kind friends!” chuckled Poke; but quickly grew serious again.
-“In a nutshell, my notion is this: If Tom Orkney has been driven out of
-town, we’ve driven him--and a good job, too, from first to last!”
-
-Two or three heads nodded vigorous assent; but there was a little
-pause. Step broke it.
-
-“Sam, you’re keeping mighty quiet. What’s your opinion?”
-
-Sam hesitated. “My opinion? I--why, I don’t know that I’d go quite as
-far as Poke goes, but----”
-
-“But I’m right, in the main,” Poke insisted.
-
-“Well, I guess we’ve been justified in everything we’ve done,” Sam told
-him. “I know I’ve tried to be fair. And, certainly, there has been
-evidence enough.”
-
-“You’re right there!” cried the Trojan.
-
-“Every time!” quoth Step.
-
-“I vote aye,” said Herman Boyd.
-
-“Well, everybody knows where I stand,” declared Poke. “We’re unanimous.”
-
-“Hold on a minute!” The Shark rose from his chair, and came forward.
-“You fellows are talking about justification and evidence, eh? I
-suppose you’re sure Tom Orkney threw the stone through that window,
-for instance?”
-
-“If he didn’t, who did?” demanded Step hotly.
-
-“Answer my question first.”
-
-“Certainly we’re sure it was Orkney.”
-
-“I’m not, then,” said the Shark. “Fact is, I’m practically sure it
-wasn’t he.”
-
-“Oh, come off your perch!”
-
-“I won’t. You can call it a perch if you wish; but I know what I’m
-standing on, and that’s more than you can claim.”
-
-“Give the infant prodigy and foster-brother of the Binomial Theorem his
-inning!” sang out Poke. “Go to it, old Four Eyes!”
-
-The Shark, in no wise disturbed by the raillery, produced and unfolded
-a big sheet of paper, bearing a curious diagram and what appeared to be
-an elaborate calculation.
-
-“The problem may be stated thus,” he began. “Given a weight of fifteen
-pounds, seven and nine-tenths ounces, what is the force required to
-propel it for a distance of thirty-five feet?”
-
-“Thirty-five feet? How do you get that?” queried Step.
-
-“The table stood eighteen feet from the window,” the Shark explained.
-“The table-top, which the stone struck, was two and a half feet from
-the floor. I estimate that the stone, if it had not struck the table,
-would have traveled at least five feet farther. Then it was thrown from
-a point at least twelve feet from the building--if you take the trouble
-to inspect the ground you will see that the thrower must have been so
-far from the wall to have secure footing. Now then, eighteen and five
-and twelve make thirty-five.”
-
-“Go on!” urged Step.
-
-“We have the weight of the object moved, and the distance moved. To
-aid us in plotting the curve of flight of the object, we have three
-known points, or, rather, two known points and one which can be closely
-approximated. We know the height from the floor at which the stone
-broke the window-pane--seven feet, nine inches. The table-top, as I
-have said, was thirty inches from the floor. The approximated point is
-the distance from the ground (or, rather, from the level of the floor
-projected for the calculation twelve feet beyond the window), at which
-the stone began its journey. This distance was not less than five feet
-nor more than six, allowing for a rise in the ground, and assuming that
-propulsion began about on a level with the thrower’s shoulder. But
-whether it was five or six----”
-
-“Hold on! Hold on!” cried Step. “You’ve got me going!”
-
-“Huh! Can’t be made clearer, can it?” expostulated the Shark. “But if
-you’ll look at the diagram----”
-
-Step threw up his hands in burlesqued horror. “No, no! Take it away! I
-can’t bear the sight of the thing out of school hours!”
-
-“Never mind about the pretty picture, Shark!” chimed in the Trojan.
-
-“No; if we follow the tune, it’ll have to be by ear,” chuckled Poke.
-
-The Shark shrugged his shoulders. “Well, I didn’t believe you fellows
-had the sense to understand the process,” he said frankly. “Still, I
-thought I’d give you a chance. But if I’ve got to jump to the result,
-I’ll tell you that, having secured my data, I proved conclusively that
-the stone was thrown by somebody with a lot more muscle than Tom
-Orkney has. Why, the low trajectory----”
-
-Two or three of the boys were grinning. “There, there! Don’t call
-names!” jeered Herman Boyd.
-
-The Shark’s glance went from one to another of his friends.
-
-“Oh, well,” he said resignedly, “I guess it’s useless. Only you may be
-interested to know that the principal went over my work and verified
-it.”
-
-“What! Didn’t tell him, did you?”
-
-“No; of course not. Had a supposititious case, naturally.”
-
-“Oh!” said two or three, in relieved chorus.
-
-The Shark put the paper back in his pocket. “All right,” he said. “You
-haven’t disappointed me. I know your limitations.”
-
-But Poke was disposed to argument. “Look here, Shark! You’re banking
-too much on your rules and formulas. Remember the professors who said a
-curved ball couldn’t be pitched, and proved it--on paper?”
-
-“Different case--nothing to do with this one.”
-
-“But you overlook the evidence of the cap,” declared Step.
-
-“Bother the cap!” said the Shark, and snapped his fingers. “Doesn’t
-interest me. It might have got there a dozen ways. What I’m trying to
-tell you is something that’s absolutely established--mathematically
-established. And you won’t listen!”
-
-“We might--if you’d just figure out who except Tom Orkney would have
-done the job.”
-
-“Hang it, I’m no fortune-teller!” growled the Shark.
-
-Again Step appealed to Sam. “What’s your notion? Don’t you still think
-the club is all right, and Orkney is all wrong?”
-
-“I think,” said Sam, honestly and with full conviction, “I think
-the weight of the evidence is against him, in spite of the Shark’s
-calculations. I’ve tried not to be hasty----”
-
-“That’s right--Safety First!” cried Poke.
-
-“And so the Safety First Club is all right!” chimed in Step jubilantly.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI SAM HAS A RUDE AWAKENING
-
-
-“Wal, I dunno. Once there was an old feller that complained the eels
-didn’t squirm’s lively as they uster when he was a boy; but, somehow,
-I reckoned his memory was playin’ tricks with him. It’s the same way
-with the weather. All the oldest inhabitants’ll keep on tellin’ you the
-climate’s changin’, and losin’ its grip; but I guess, fust and last,
-there ain’t much difference. Why, when I was a youngster, they had a
-joke that this would be a rattlin’ good country if the sleighin’ didn’t
-get sorter thin for three months in the year; but I don’t recall makin’
-snowballs on the Fourth of July. And, when you think it over, you’re
-likely to be enjoyin’ just about as much concentrated winter this
-minute as anybody ever really needed in these parts.”
-
-Thus Lon Gates rambled on for the entertainment of Sam Parker, bustling
-about his work in the barn the while. It was a fine, clear morning,
-the air still and crisp, and the snow glittering in the bright sunshine.
-
-“Maybe--but this is a bully day,” said Sam cheerfully.
-
-There was a twinkle in Lon’s eye. “Lot better’n that other Saturday,
-when the hedgehog had all his spines on end, eh? Wal, the weather does
-make a pile o’ difference in the human feelin’s. And, as I was sayin’,
-we’ve got jest about enough winter to be real comfortable right this
-minute--plenty of snow for haulin’, and cold enough to fill the bill.
-Even zero when I got up this mornin’, and ’tain’t more’n ten above
-now. And it looks ’sif there wouldn’t be a thaw for a good spell. And
-that’ll help the lumbermen to get out their logs. Your father can tell
-you what that means to the fellers in the woods.”
-
-“I’ve heard him talk about it,” said Sam. Mr. Parker was interested
-in several tracts of woodland; and though his son never had visited a
-lumber camp, he had some idea of the methods pursued.
-
-“Ought to get him to take you on one of his trips,” Lon observed.
-“He’ll be makin’ one before long.”
-
-“Wish he would!” said Sam.
-
-Lon bustled into the harness-room. In a moment Sam heard a sharp
-exclamation of surprise; and out popped Lon, carrying a heavy collar
-with dangling traces.
-
-“Jest look at that!” he stormed. “Suff’rin’ snakes! but that’s the wust
-yet! What skunk do you s’pose’d be mean enough to carve a brand new
-harness that way?”
-
-The leather of the collar was deeply gashed in several places, and the
-traces were almost severed.
-
-Sam made close examination of the cuts.
-
-“Well, Lon,” he said, “I can’t prove it, of course; but I believe that
-job was done by the same person who left the water running, and let
-Maggie’s clean clothes down into the mud, and has been raising all the
-rest of the hob around here.”
-
-“Maybe. Same line o’ business. But who’d do it?”
-
-Sam hesitated. “I--I--well, I’ve had a suspicion all along, but lately
-it has become practically a certainty.”
-
-“Speak up! This thing’s past endurin’. Who’s the party?”
-
-“Well, everything points to one person.” Sam was trying to show
-judicial moderation.
-
-“Who’s he?” asked Lon impatiently.
-
-“Tom Orkney,” said Sam.
-
-“What! The kid that ran away?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-Lon looked puzzled. “Sure, be you?”
-
-“Morally sure.”
-
-“Wal, I ain’t, then,” said Lon. “Why ain’t I? Orkney’s been gone
-two-three days, hain’t he?”
-
-“He has.”
-
-“Then we’ve got to leave him out. This job was done last night.”
-
-It was Sam’s turn to betray bewilderment. “But--but we know he’d be
-ready to do it, and there’s nobody else who would. And----”
-
-“No; you’re barkin’ up the wrong tree!” Lon declared. “I was lookin’
-over the harnesses yesterday, and there wa’n’t even a good-sized
-scratch on this one. So ’twa’n’t Orkney, Sam--not unless he come back
-to do this ’special.”
-
-“But he did the other things,” Sam insisted.
-
-“Swear to it, could you?”
-
-“Why--why, I could--almost.”
-
-“‘Almost’ don’t go--not in swearin’ folks are guilty.”
-
-“I know that. But we’ve had a lot of evidence----”
-
-“What kind o’ evidence?”
-
-Sam frowned. “Why--why, it has been circumstantial evidence, but there
-has been a lot of it. And Orkney has had a chronic grouch all along.
-And he has had it in for all my crowd. And, finally, he ran away.
-That’s the same as confessing, isn’t it?”
-
-“Confessin’ what?”
-
-“Oh, everything,” said Sam vaguely.
-
-Lon took a moment for thought.
-
-“Sam, I can’t help thinkin’ there’s a mistake somewhere. Now, you mean
-to be square and fair, and so do your chums, but you haven’t liked this
-Orkney. I dunno’s there’s any reason why you should like him, but that
-ain’t the question. I plumb despise a rattlesnake, but I’ve got no call
-to insist he’s stealin’ my fire-wood. Follow the argyment, do you?”
-
-“Yes; but----”
-
-“Hold on! Wa’n’t there nothin’ nowhere along the line to make you
-doubt if you were right?”
-
-“Nothing,” Sam insisted; then recalled the Shark’s contention, and made
-amendment. “There was nothing, that is, except that Willy Reynolds
-figured it out that Orkney couldn’t have thrown a stone that smashed a
-window in our club-house. And the Shark--Willy, I mean--is a crank on
-mathematics. And we found a cap of Orkney’s----”
-
-“One he’d been wearin’ that evenin’?”
-
-“Well, nobody saw him wearing it--nobody saw him, for that matter; for
-he ducked and ran. And though a face showed outside of the window, the
-fellow who noticed it didn’t recognize it. But the cap belonged to
-Orkney.”
-
-Lon did not appear to be deeply impressed.
-
-“Thing like that depends on a lot of other things,” said he.
-
-“But Orkney didn’t try to deny anything.”
-
-“Oh, put it up to him, good and straight, did you?”
-
-“Why--why, in a way.”
-
-“Jesso! But you didn’t say, ‘Now, Orkney, what did you do this thing,
-and that thing, and the other thing for?’”
-
-“Well, I hinted at things I was going to thrash him for, and----”
-
-Lon laughed. “Ho-ho! Now we’re gettin’ down to cases. You said, ‘I’m
-goin’ to lick you,’ and he said, ‘Come on and try it.’ Sam, it’s been
-a good while since I was a boy, but I guess that’s jest about what I’d
-’a’ said to a feller of my own size that promised me a hidin’. And I
-wouldn’t ’a’ asked a bill o’ particulars.”
-
-Sam took a turn the length of the barn floor and back. Lon certainly
-was presenting a new aspect of the case, a disturbing aspect,
-unsettling, destructive of comfortable confidence.
-
-“Look here, Lon! What makes you take sides against me?” the boy asked
-querulously.
-
-“I don’t,” was the curt reply.
-
-“But----”
-
-“Wal, I’ll explain. First place, such didoes as somebody has been
-cuttin’ up round here don’t quite fit in with what a feller like this
-Orkney would be likely to do. Maybe he’s a surly customer, but, after
-all, he’s had good bringin’ up. Second place, bein’ away from town,
-he couldn’t have chopped up the harness last night. Third place, I’m
-gettin’ kind of a hunch that I may be able to dig up a clue or two.”
-
-“Connecting somebody else with the case?” queried Sam incredulously.
-
-“Yep.”
-
-“But who----”
-
-“Don’t ask me that, Sam, till I’ve looked around a bit. If I’m
-right--well, you’ll say it’s the queerest piece of business you ever
-heard tell of.”
-
-“Oh, don’t stop there!”
-
-“Got to. It’s kinder shapin’ up promisin’, but I ain’t sure. And in a
-matter like this it’s better to be safe than sorry.”
-
-There was a wry smile on Sam’s face. “Safety First!” he said in a tone
-which made Lon gaze at him curiously.
-
-“Jest what do you mean?” he asked.
-
-But Sam turned away without answering. Indeed, to make full explanation
-would have been difficult; for he could have said little more than that
-he was experiencing a peculiar sensation, to be likened to that of one
-rudely awakened from a complacent dream.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII MORE SURPRISES
-
-
-Sam walked out of the barn without any clear notion of what he ought to
-do; but when he reached the gate his step quickened.
-
-It was Saturday; the morning was his own. It had flashed upon him
-that he could not do better than investigate the matters which had
-first seemed to be so conclusive of Orkney’s guilt. Granting that Tom
-probably had had nothing to do with the damage to the harness, he
-would attempt to remove all doubt from the value of the best piece of
-evidence for the prosecution, so to speak. This was the cap found by
-Step near the club-house.
-
-When Master Jones had snatched the cap from Orkney’s head, and thrown
-it over a fence, it had dropped upon the dead turf in old Mrs.
-Benton’s yard. The club’s theory was that the owner had recovered it
-subsequently and secretly. It remained for Sam to try to discover what
-really had happened.
-
-Mrs. Benton, if advanced in years, was active and alert. She answered
-her door-bell in person, and led Sam into her spotlessly neat
-sitting-room.
-
-The boy plunged at once into his errand. Had she chanced to see a cap
-lying on her lawn, and did she know what had become of it?
-
-Mrs. Benton nodded vivaciously. A cap--a boy’s cap? Of course, she
-remembered.
-
-“When I looked out of my window that morning, there it was in plain
-sight,” she said. “And I must say it looked awfully careless and
-shiftless--I don’t know what strangers would have thought of the folks
-living in this house. So I went right out and brought the cap in.”
-
-“And--and--and that was in the morning?” Sam faltered.
-
-“In the morning--early.”
-
-“Somebody came to claim it?”
-
-“Nobody came. I declare! I don’t see how young folks get so regardless
-of things these days! And that was a perfectly good cap--that is, it
-would have been perfectly good if it hadn’t been left out in the damp
-all night.”
-
-“Is it still here, ma’am?”
-
-“Bless you, no, child! It’s gone.”
-
-Sam leaned forward in his eagerness. “Gone where, ma’am?”
-
-“Into the rubbish can, of course.”
-
-“Oh!” said Sam, and sank back in his chair.
-
-Mrs. Benton’s eyebrows rose a trifle. “Bless me, but you wouldn’t
-expect me to keep my house cluttered up with all sorts of other
-people’s odds and ends, would you?”
-
-“No, ma’am,” Sam hastened to assure her. “But--but did it stay in the
-can?”
-
-Mrs. Benton met question with question. “Why? Was it yours?”
-
-“Oh, no,” said Sam. “It wasn’t mine, but I--I--well, I was sort
-of--sort of interested in it. Do you know what became of it?”
-
-“That’s just what I don’t know.”
-
-“Oh!” said Sam again.
-
-The lady did not miss the disappointment in his tone.
-
-“Somebody took it out of the can,” she explained. “It wasn’t the
-garbage collector, for that wasn’t his day to come ’round. But I
-remember that I disposed of the cap after breakfast, and that, when
-I carried out some potato peelings an hour or two later, the cap had
-disappeared. There often are people prowling through the alley, you
-know--tramps, some of ’em--and it was a pretty good cap, after all, if
-a body wasn’t over-particular. And you say it wasn’t yours?”
-
-“No, ma’am,” said Sam, and rose a bit hastily. “But I’m very much
-obliged for the information.”
-
-Mrs. Benton followed him to the door. “You’re thanking me for very
-little,” she remarked. “But if it’ll be any help to you, in whatever
-you are after, I can add that the cap was taken out of the can
-somewhere between nine and ten o’clock that morning.”
-
-And in the hour mentioned, as Sam was quite aware, Tom Orkney was fully
-accounted for, having been in his place in school!
-
-Sam’s step was slow as he moved away from the house, and his brow was
-furrowed. Undeniably the case against Orkney was weakening. Equally the
-case for the Safety First Club was tottering.
-
-There came to Sam unhappy recollections of talk about the chain of
-proofs and its various links, among them the cruelty to Little
-Perrine. Well, there was nothing for it but to go on with the inquiry
-he had begun.
-
-Little Perrine, he was told, was very much better, and would be glad to
-see him. The convalescent was sitting up in bed, and was in excellent
-spirits.
-
-“Hullo, Sam!” he called out gaily. “Gee, but it’s good of you to look
-me up! Sit down, and tell me all about how you pulled Tom Orkney and me
-out of the pond. The folks won’t tell me half enough.”
-
-Sam drew a chair close to the bed.
-
-“Oh, it isn’t much of a yarn,” he said modestly. “I happened to have a
-plank, so it was no trick at all.”
-
-Little Perrine smiled. “That’s what you say! Doesn’t match the stories
-other people tell--and I guess they’re nearer the real truth. Everybody
-declares you did a star job. Funny, isn’t it, that I don’t remember
-anything about your part of it? One instant Tom Orkney was grabbing for
-me, and trying to drag me back, and the next--crash! There I was in
-the water, and Tom had jumped in after me, and was holding me up. Then
-everything was blurred, and there was a queer singing in my ears--and
-the next I knew, here I was, in bed. And then things got to whirling
-round, and I was going through it all again and again. Jiminy! but I
-bet I yelled like a good fellow!”
-
-“Pretty close call for a kid like you,” said Sam.
-
-“Poof! I’m tough!” insisted the boy. “I’d have been all right--crawled
-out myself, I would, if it hadn’t been for that sleepy feeling that
-came over me. But it was all right, anyway. There was old Orkney to
-hold my head out of water, and you were coming on the run. But, as it
-is, Orkney’ll have a good laugh on me, I tell you.”
-
-Sam grasped the fact that Perrine had not been informed of Tom’s
-disappearance.
-
-“Oh, so he--he’ll have the laugh on you?” he asked uncertainly.
-
-“Sure! You see, he’d been telling me to keep away from the thin places.
-When he came along I was doing stunts--seeing how close to a blow-hole
-I could skate, you know; and he made a fuss about it. Why, he grabbed
-me, and lugged me back to shore, and tried to make me promise to quit
-the funny business. But I got away from him, and beat it for the dam. I
-didn’t think he’d dare chase me, he weighs so much more than I do. But
-he pelted after me, and he’d have got me if I hadn’t kept dodging. And
-then--well, then the thing happened. But old Orkney was a brick, wasn’t
-he?”
-
-Sam strove to make fitting reply, but achieved only a choking sound.
-
-“Why, what’s the matter?” demanded Little Perrine. “And what makes you
-look so queer?”
-
-Sam wiped his forehead with his handkerchief; he had a sense of
-fighting for time.
-
-“Oh, looking--looking queer, was I?”
-
-Little Perrine grinned. “Say! It was as if I’d hit you between the eyes
-and dazed you.”
-
-Sam laughed, but it was a forced laugh and unconvincing.
-
-“I guess this room’s pretty warm,” said he, and got upon his feet.
-“I’ll have to be going. You’ll be out, I suppose, in a day or two?”
-
-“Yes. But if you meet Orkney, tell him to come to see me. You wouldn’t
-mind taking the message, would you? Of course, I know he hasn’t been
-pals with your crowd, but after all that’s happened----”
-
-“If I should see Tom Orkney I’d be only too glad to deliver your
-message,” said Sam heavily.
-
-Another link in that famous chain had been fractured. By the testimony
-of the best possible witness Orkney had not imperiled Little Perrine’s
-life by driving him upon the thin ice; but, on the contrary, had risked
-his own to protect the younger and frailer boy.
-
-With dragging step Sam went back to Lon Gates.
-
-“I might as well speak plainly, Lon,” he said. “I’m all unsettled in my
-ideas.”
-
-Lon regarded him keenly. “So? Ain’t that Orkney the all-round cut-up
-you thought he was?”
-
-“I--I guess I’ll have to take back some of the things I said.”
-
-“So?” Lon repeated.
-
-“Yes--so!” said Sam with more spirit. “And since it’s so, and since
-somebody must have made all the mischief, and since it isn’t likely
-Orkney was the guilty one--why, Lon, I’d amazingly like to know whom
-you suspect.”
-
-The hired man rubbed his chin. “Wal, I dunno. As things was, I didn’t
-intend to say nothin’ more till I was surer of my ground. But, seein’
-how you’ve kinder cooled down and come to be ready to accept the light
-o’ reason, maybe I might’s well breathe a whisper or two of what the
-little birds may, or may not, have been tellin’ me.”
-
-“This has been a day of surprises,” said Sam, “but I’m ready for some
-more. Fire ahead!”
-
-Lon came a step nearer. They were alone in the barn, but he dropped his
-voice almost to a whisper.
-
-“Wal, then, I will. Remember that day you went out and potted Major
-Bates?” he began.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII LON DISCUSSES CROOKED THINKING
-
-
-Perhaps you have had the trying and distressing experience of
-discovering, of a sudden and without warning, that what you devoutly
-had hoped was a closely guarded secret appeared to be no secret at
-all. If you have suffered such a shock, you will understand Sam’s
-sensations. The unfortunate affair of Marlow woods was by no means
-ancient history, but gossip about it had dwindled, and he had come to
-believe that the town had set it down as one of those mysteries which
-never are solved. Yet here was Lon, referring to it as nonchalantly as
-if it were matter of common knowledge!
-
-For a moment Sam stared, wide eyed and open mouthed, at his ally.
-Mentally and physically he was overcome. Speech failed him, and he sank
-weakly upon a feed-box, beside which he had been standing.
-
-There was a touch of sympathy in Lon’s manner. “Sorry if I’ve rubbed
-your fur the wrong way, Sam. Course, though, when you asked me----”
-
-Sam found tongue. “How did you know? Who told you?”
-
-“Lot o’ folks.”
-
-“A lot!” gasped Sam.
-
-“Yep; a lot. Bill Marlow, and your father, and Maggie, and the Major,
-and you----”
-
-“Me!” In his amazement Sam was careless of grammar. “Me? Why, I never
-breathed a syllable!”
-
-Lon grinned. “Wal, you wa’n’t exactly chatty; that’s a fact. But I
-guess ’twas the things you didn’t say that told me most. Same way with
-your father. Didn’t know, did you, that I saw him one mornin’ swabbin’
-out that gun of his? And he hadn’t been huntin’, and he wasn’t goin’
-huntin’. Then there was Maggie. One day we was discussin’ your life
-and public services, and I sorter gloomed about you, and she flew at
-me like a hen protectin’ her last chick from a hawk; and then I knew
-well enough you’d been in some particular big scrape, and she knew, or
-guessed, more or less what ’twas. Then there was the Major----”
-
-“The Major!”
-
-“Sure! ’Nother case of what you might call eloquent silence. When he
-turned Peter Groche loose, what more did he do? Nothin’! What more did
-he say? Nothin’! And the Major ain’t the party to let somebody put a
-few buckshot into him and grin and bear it uncomplainin’. He’d ’a’
-railroaded Peter Groche to jail with all the pleasure in life, and he’d
-’a’ done the same thing to any other man that played he was an old
-buck. But the Major’s a good sport, after all; he hates to fuss with
-anybody that ain’t his size. See where the argyment’s leadin’, don’t
-you? So, when you ’fessed up----”
-
-“When I ’fessed up!” Sam seemed to be capable of nothing but
-repetitions.
-
-Lon chuckled a bit complacently. “Wal, Sam, that’s where I’m on dead
-reckonin’. But when I’d chewed it all over a few times, it struck me
-that you was jest the kind of a feller to own up when you saw somebody
-else was in trouble for what you’d done; and that the Major was jest
-the old hardshell to be tickled by your givin’ a square deal to that
-miserable critter, Groche. Course, I’ve kept my eyes and ears open,
-and I’ve been down town nights, and I’ve talked with folks, and I’ve
-picked up little things here and there that fitted together. And so I
-got four, not by puttin’ two with two, but by addin’ an eighth, and
-three-sixteenths, and a half, and three-quarters, and so on and so on.
-And--wal, that’s about all of that chapter.”
-
-“Lon, you’re a wonder!”
-
-“Pretty nigh right, wa’n’t I?”
-
-“Nearer than that.”
-
-“Wal, you see, I knew one Sam Parker like a book. And when something
-happened one mornin’, and he dodged talkin’ about where he was jest
-then or what he was doin’--wal, I had a mighty good start on Shylock
-Holmesin’.”
-
-“Sherlock Holmesing,” Sam corrected mechanically.
-
-“Same family, anyhow.”
-
-There was a pause. Then said Sam:
-
-“Lon, I didn’t wish to keep the truth from you especially. If I’d
-talked about the affair, there’s nobody who’d have heard more about it
-than you would. But I was advised not to confide in anybody.”
-
-Lon nodded. “Right enough! And I wouldn’t have yipped if, somehow,
-things hadn’t worked around as they have. And I jest had to let the cat
-out o’ the bag if I was goin’ to point out the dog I believe has been
-snappin’ at us. You want to find out who ’tis I suspect, don’t you?”
-
-“Most certainly!”
-
-“Peter Groche!” said Lon emphatically.
-
-“Peter--Peter Groche?” Astonishment again possessed Sam. “Why--why
-should he have a grudge against me? Didn’t I save him? Didn’t I keep
-him out of jail? Didn’t they have what seemed to be a complete case
-against him?”
-
-“Like enough.”
-
-“Then, too,” urged Sam, “he could have had no notion that I was mixed
-up in the case. The Major didn’t tell him; nobody else told him. But
-if he had known, he ought to have been grateful. Either way the thing
-isn’t reasonable.”
-
-“Huh! Peter ain’t, neither!” grunted Lon.
-
-“But what’s that got to do with----”
-
-[Illustration: “HOLD HARD, THERE!”]
-
-Lon loved an argument. “Hold hard, there!” said he. “To get at things
-you’ve got to start right. And it ain’t startin’ right to talk about
-Peter Groche and reasonable things in the same breath. Look here, now!”
-Lon picked up an empty liniment bottle, and stood it on its neck;
-whereupon the bottle fell over on its side. “See what’s happened, don’t
-you?”
-
-“But it was upside down.”
-
-“Exactly! But that’s the way with Peter Groche--with his brains, I
-mean. Your mistake is tryin’ to figure on him as a reasonable bein’.
-But Groche, for years and years, has been like that bottle--all upside
-down. He’s been carousin’, and loafin’, and stealin’. All his thinkin’
-has got warped, and twisted, and crooked.”
-
-“Then he’s crazy!”
-
-“Not quite that. But he ain’t what folks call normal. Oh, I know the
-breed!”
-
-Sam racked his memory. “You mean he’s a--a degenerate?” he queried.
-
-“That’s the ticket! He’s like pizen ivy: he began by bein’ no good, and
-he’s got wuss and more of a nuisance the more he spreads out.”
-
-Sam shook his head doubtfully. “All the same, I don’t follow your
-argument, Lon. If there’s anything to it, we’d have to figure that
-Peter had some cause to suppose I was in the scrape; for we might as
-well drop the notion that, all of a sudden, he’d begin to persecute me,
-unless he had some tip. But I’ve told you I’m sure nobody gave him one.
-And as I didn’t see him in the woods, he wouldn’t have seen me there.”
-
-“You can’t prove that,” Lon declared. “He’s an old hand at deer
-huntin’, out o’ season as well as in; and he keeps his eyes peeled
-mighty sharp. It’s ten to one he had a peek at you, and knew within
-five rods where you were, when the Major was hit. So it was an easy
-guess for him, when he was arrested, that you’d figgered in the
-combination.”
-
-“But----” Sam began.
-
-Lon interrupted him. “You listen, son! I’ll bet you he not only saw
-you, but believed you saw him. And he was keepin’ tabs on you and on
-the Major, too--’tain’t a bad idea, at that, for anybody in the woods
-in the deer season to watch his neighbors and what they’re about. Wal,
-then, we have Peter, as keen as a weasel, and full as vicious--we have
-him, I say, with his eyes and ears busy. Bang! goes your gun. Peter
-hears it. He waits for what’ll happen--always a chance that if you’ve
-really sighted a buck, the critter may come his way. Wal, again, in a
-minute or two, something does come, but it ain’t nothin’ on four legs.
-It’s the Major, and the Major’s fightin’ mad. Somebody’s winged him,
-and he thinks it’s Peter; but Peter don’t need no map to show where you
-come in.”
-
-“But I----”
-
-“Let me finish! Peter, bein’ Peter, acts accordin’. He jumps to a
-conclusion--and that’s that you’ve done what he’d do himself, if he was
-in your shoes. He figgers you’ve blazed away, and run up to find a dead
-deer, and come on the Major, dazed and ragin’, and grabbed the chance
-to put the blame off on somebody else. He credits you with knowin’ the
-reputation of the Groche fam’ly hereabouts, and with settin’ the Major
-on a false trail that leads straight to one Peter o’ that name. Then,
-havin’ set the Major goin’, you vamoose--and that’s what Peter Groche
-would ’a’ done himself, if he’d been in your fix. What say to that,
-Sam?”
-
-“I--I don’t know what to say. Only, when the sheriff arrested him, why
-didn’t he deny----”
-
-Once more Lon stopped the boy in mid-sentence. “There you go
-again--forgettin’ Peter ain’t like most folks! It’s where the crooked
-thinkin’--and the crooked livin’--comes in. The Major’s in a passion,
-and Peter has jawed back till he’s ’bout as mad himself. Most likely
-the sheriff can’t make head nor tail o’ what he’s growlin’. And Peter’s
-got his reputation, and everybody knows he’s made threats against the
-Major, and one barrel of his gun has been fired. So the sheriff thinks
-it’s a pretty clear case, and loads Peter in his wagon, and hauls him
-to the lock-up. By that time Peter, mebbe, has been workin’ his crooked
-wits. He sees well enough nobody’d believe him just then if he said he
-didn’t do it, so he doesn’t waste his breath that way. And mebbe, too,
-he gets a notion the case against him won’t be so all-fired convincin’
-when it comes to a trial, the evidence bein’ circumstantial, you see.
-Perhaps he’s schemin’ for damages for false arrest--and then, all of
-a sudden, they turn him loose. And so he skulks off, with a grudge
-against everybody, but a particular one against Sam Parker, Esq., who,
-he believes, lied about him to save himself. Sense, ain’t it--Peter’s
-kind o’ sense, that is?”
-
-Sam pondered. “Why--why--perhaps.”
-
-Lon wagged his head sagely. “Wal, I’m tellin’ you, Sam, a grudge is
-jest the one thing in this life Peter’ll live up to. He means to take
-it out o’ your hide. Now, when things went wrong about the place, and
-kept on goin’ wrong, and I saw they weren’t due to your footlessness, I
-had half a notion some kid might be at the bottom of the trouble. But
-then I began to miss things from the barn--a spare bit, then a wrench,
-then a new sponge; and I’ll admit that did sort o’ suggest Groche’s
-manners. And weren’t you tellin’ me a while ago that one of your crowd
-figgered it out that no boy could have chucked that boulder through
-your club-house window? Wal, Groche could ’a’ done it. He’s as strong
-as an ox, confound him! Come now! Piece it all together, and own up it
-makes quite a case!”
-
-“Perhaps it does,” Sam admitted.
-
-“But I don’t convince you completely?”
-
-Sam hesitated. “Why--why, I don’t know, Lon. I’ve had a lot of jolts
-to-day, and I’ve got to do some thinking before I can be sure of
-anybody.... Or of anything!” he added, after an instant’s pause.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX OF DUELS AND CONSCIENCE
-
-
-The club received such report as Sam felt free to make of his
-investigation with interest rather than with regret for its share in
-the misfortunes of Tom Orkney.
-
-If Sam had told the whole story, including the affair in Marlow woods
-and Lon’s suspicions of Peter Groche, the crowd, doubtless, would
-have buzzed with excitement, and, incidentally, felt some sympathy
-for Orkney; but, given merely new light on the matter of the cap and
-a revised version of the incident at the pond, the boys, as a rule,
-fell back upon the declaration that Tom was a “grouch,” anyway, and
-declined to take to themselves any especial culpability. Somebody had
-committed the depredations at the Parker place; somebody had smashed
-the club-house window. Maybe Orkney hadn’t done these things, but
-wasn’t he a chronic sorehead? Of course, it was hard luck for him to
-be deemed Little Perrine’s persecutor instead of protector, but the
-misunderstanding was general and not the particular error of the Safety
-First Club.
-
-Even the Shark, who might have spoken from the text of “I told you
-so,” let the opportunity pass. His calculations of the flight of the
-boulder had started him upon an agreeable inquiry into the subject of
-projectiles, and, as Poke declared, he was as far in the clouds as if
-he had been sent there by one of the big mortars about which he was
-reading.
-
-In the club’s opinion that there was nothing to be done, Sam was in a
-way to coincide, though he would have phrased it that nothing could be
-done at present. Yet something should be done. This was clear in his
-mind, though he seemed to be unable to hit upon a practical suggestion.
-
-No news came of the missing Orkney.
-
-Lon Gates, playing detective at every opportunity, confessed that he
-found nothing either to shake or to confirm his theory of the guilt of
-Peter Groche. The man, after hanging about town as usual, had dropped
-out of sight, leaving no word of the destination for which he was
-bound.
-
-Then came Christmas and a fortnight’s vacation, and Sam shared
-cheerfully in the festivities of the season. He was in excellent
-health; he liked fun; he indulged vigorously in winter sports; his
-appetite remained admirable. But, for all that, there was a change
-in the boy, quite unobserved by his father, who was held by business
-cares; vaguely felt by his friends, and distinctly marked by his
-mother. Mrs. Parker took occasion to have several long talks with
-her son. She was sure that he had something on his mind, but all her
-tact did not lead him to confidences. Sam understood her solicitude,
-and was grateful, if reticent. A fellow who was trying to prove his
-self-reliance, he reasoned, must work out his problems for himself.
-Not that he would have declined counsel from older heads--probably he
-would have welcomed a chance to accept his father’s advice, the affair
-appearing to him to be peculiarly one for masculine consideration; but
-he would not seek it.
-
-Mr. Parker, as has been related, was very busy. For one thing, he was
-arranging a trip into the woods with a capitalist from New York, and
-plans for the expedition took up much of his time. For another, his
-method of dealing with Sam on probation was to interfere as little as
-possible with the boy’s affairs. Sam’s school reports were good; he
-seemed to be avoiding scrapes; he had distinguished himself in the
-rescue of Tom Orkney and Little Perrine. On the whole, the father was
-well pleased with the situation as he observed it.
-
-Sam himself was not pleased. It is not good to have a sense of
-uncertainty, and of baffled intentions to do right. On the one hand was
-his remembrance of his precautions in trying to follow out his motto of
-“Safety First”; on the other, an uneasy conviction that Tom Orkney had
-suffered unjustly. Sometimes one seemed to outweigh the other; again he
-vacillated miserably between the two opinions. And one day, not long
-after Christmas, when his doubts were assailing him sorely, he recalled
-the Major’s invitation, and sought diversion in a visit to the veteran.
-
-The Major received him with marked favor, cracked a joke or two
-about his big game record, and began to make the round of what was
-really a fine collection of arms. There were flint-lock muskets and
-fowling-pieces; muzzle-loading and breech-loading rifles; cutlasses,
-sabers and bayonets; huge, old-fashioned horse pistols, revolvers and
-even a modern, compact, automatic weapon. Of these the Major spoke
-briefly; but he lingered longer over a case in which lay a brace of
-pistols, very old in pattern, but of exquisite workmanship.
-
-“I wonder, Sam,” he said, “if you ever have seen such fellows as these?
-What do you think they are?”
-
-“I’m sure I don’t know, sir,” Sam answered.
-
-“Well, what do you imagine they were used for?”
-
-“I haven’t a notion.”
-
-The Major wagged his head. “My boy, it’s a testimonial to the progress
-of the world that you haven’t a notion. Time was, I’m sorry to say,
-when a fine, upstanding lad like you would have known only too well
-what these were and how they were used. These are dueling pistols, sir!”
-
-“Oh!” cried Sam, and bent over the case with increased interest.
-“And--and were they ever--ever----”
-
-“They were,” said the Major drily. “Oh, yes--more than once. Genuine
-article, I do assure you! But that sort of thing is over and done with,
-fortunately.”
-
-Sam straightened his back. “I’ve read about duels, of course. And some
-of the books speak as if there must have been lots of them.”
-
-“Too many!” snorted the Major. “That’s perfectly true, sir. Principle
-was all wrong, but it took centuries to make the discovery. Honest men,
-honorable men mistakenly believed that the way to do justice and to
-accept justice was by killing each other or standing up to be killed.
-All wrong; all wrong, sir! The law is the law, and to it we must look
-for redress for injuries.”
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Sam, a deal impressed by this testimony from
-one commonly reputed to be a stubborn and unyielding antagonist.
-“Only--only”--a curious thought had thrust itself upon him--“only, can
-you always be sure of what the law is? I mean, that is, can you always
-be sure of what you ought to do?”
-
-“Eh?” The bushy eyebrows came together as if the Major were perplexed
-by the question.
-
-“Can you always find a law--or a rule--that applies?”
-
-“Well, a law is general in its terms, of course. And you’ve some
-special instance in mind, haven’t you?”
-
-Sam hesitated. “I--I--well, I’m thinking of a case in which a fellow
-acted on what he thought was full justification, and found, afterward,
-that--well, that there had been a lot of mistakes.”
-
-“Honest mistakes?”
-
-“Yes, sir. Only----”
-
-“Pardon me!” the Major interrupted. “Let me cite a case. Once a friend
-of mine, who had to carry a great deal of money, was set upon by masked
-and armed men. In what he fully believed was self-defense he shot and
-killed one of them. It proved that the attack was the work of rash
-practical jokers. My friend was acquitted, justly. Now, was his case
-like that which you are considering?”
-
-Again Sam hesitated. “Yes--and no, sir. My case isn’t quite so clear.”
-
-“Little prejudice to begin with--biased judgment?” queried the Major
-keenly.
-
-“That’s the trouble, sir,” said Sam frankly. “The evidence looked all
-right, but how can I be certain that it ought to have seemed so?”
-
-“Difficult!” said the Major tersely.
-
-“Well, sir, what would you do if you were in my--if you were in the
-fix?”
-
-The Major put his hand on Sam’s shoulder. “My boy,” he said very
-gravely, “you’re dealing with a problem which neither I nor anybody
-else can solve for you. It is a problem to be settled by law, but
-the law is that of your own conscience. Now, I submit, the court of
-conscience is supplemental to the courts of the land, but it is severer
-in its judgments. The other courts may give you the benefit of a doubt,
-but hardly the court of conscience. And if there were prejudice----”
-There he checked himself. “No; I’ll say no more; for I’ve no right to
-seek to influence you unduly. You must reach your own decision for
-yourself.”
-
-“I understand, sir,” said Sam, with a gravity matching the Major’s.
-
-The pressure on his shoulder increased. “If I’m a judge of human
-nature, young man,” the Major declared, “you _will_ settle this thing
-for yourself, and you’ll settle it right!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX SAM MAKES A SPEECH
-
-
-It was late in the afternoon of Sam’s visit to the Major, and the club
-members were gathered in their house.
-
-Sam, silent and preoccupied, was sitting in one corner. The Shark,
-in another, was somewhat skeptically regarding Step Jones, who was
-describing, for the benefit of the assembled company, a number of big
-fish that day caught through the ice of the mill-pond. Step’s arms were
-long, and his imagination was active.
-
-“Gee, but those pickerel were regular old granddaddies!” he averred.
-“Smallest was this long.” He spread his hands. “Then came two or three
-about this size.” Another illustration. “Then there was the biggest.”
-And Step’s hands were moved farther apart.
-
-“Aw, come off!” jeered the Trojan. “You’re thinking of ’em all, put end
-to end.”
-
-“I’m not,” Step insisted. “What’ll you bet ’twasn’t this long?”
-
-“Huh! You’re dreaming!”
-
-“Dreaming nothing! Didn’t I see the fish?”
-
-“You didn’t see any five-foot pickerel.”
-
-“Tell you I saw one the length I’m showing you.”
-
-Up sprang the Shark, and strode across the room, pulling a tape-measure
-from his pocket as he advanced. A good deal to Step’s embarrassment,
-he insisted upon making careful measure of the distance between the
-outstretched palms.
-
-“Four feet, three and seven-eighths inches,” he announced. “Umph! Some
-fish, Step; yes, some fish!”
-
-Step lost no time in lowering his arms. “Well, you fellows can josh if
-you want to; but you can’t prove I’m wrong.”
-
-There was a shout of derision.
-
-“No, sir--I won’t take off an inch!” declared Step.
-
-The Shark grinned. “All right, Step. Only that couldn’t have been a
-pickerel; it must have been a muskellunge.”
-
-“’Longe in the mill-pond! Sure thing!” snickered Poke.
-
-“No, no,” Herman Boyd put in. “Step’s mixed--that’s all. He’s thinking
-of what Sam caught--Little Perrine and Tom Orkney.”
-
-Over in his corner Sam roused at the name. “Who’s talking about
-Orkney?” he called out.
-
-“I am,” said Herman.
-
-“Any news of him?”
-
-“No, thank fortune!” Herman was not an especially vindictive fellow;
-but he had disliked Tom exceedingly.
-
-Sam rose, and came over to the group about Step.
-
-“Listen, you chaps; I’ve something to say about Orkney,” he began.
-
-“Speech, speech!” shouted Poke.
-
-“Very well; I’ll make a speech,” said Sam. “You may not agree with me,
-but I’m going to give you the truth as I see it. We’re wrong in this
-Orkney business; we’ve been wrong all along.”
-
-There was a ripple of dissent.
-
-“Oh, I say, Sam!” protested Poke. “That’s going too far.”
-
-“Not at all,” Sam insisted. “We were wrong in charging Orkney with a
-lot of things he never did.”
-
-“I know--you’ve harped on that before.”
-
-“Well, I’ll harp on it again.”
-
-“But we thought he did ’em. He was mean enough to do ’em, if they’d
-occurred to him.”
-
-“Go to it, Poke!” cried Step. “Now you’re shouting!”
-
-Sam frowned. “Here!” he said impatiently. “Do I get my chance to talk,
-or don’t I?”
-
-Poke made a burlesque bow. “Sir, I yield the floor,” said he.
-
-“I say we made a mistake, and I mean it,” Sam went on. “Not liking
-Orkney, we forgot the old rule that you’ve got to hold anybody innocent
-of a charge till he’s proved guilty. Don’t stop me! You’ll try to argue
-that we had evidence against him, but, as we know now, it wasn’t proof,
-by a long shot. There was that business of the cap. Did we investigate
-it? We didn’t. If any one of us had taken the trouble to ask Mrs.
-Benton about it at the time, there’d be another story to tell. Then
-every one of us jumped to the conclusion that Orkney came near drowning
-Little Perrine. Evidence? We hadn’t a bit.”
-
-“But people said----” Poke began.
-
-“Confound what people said! They knew no more than we did. They
-were jumping to conclusions, too. But we were saying things on our
-own account. Right here, in this room, Poke told us that we were
-responsible for blocking Orkney’s ambitions from the first, for taking
-the shine off him; that the Shark eclipsed him in mathematics and Step
-skimmed the cream from the Greek; that the crowd of us kept him from
-bossing the class. And all of us chimed in, and said it was so, and
-patted our own backs, and----”
-
-“Hold on, Sam!” the Shark broke in. “How’d we do that? We’re not
-contortionists.”
-
-“Hang it all! Don’t interrupt! You know what I mean.”
-
-“I don’t know; I infer,” corrected the Shark. “Be accurate, be
-accurate!”
-
-Sam’s temper flared. “What’s the matter, anyway? Don’t you want to hear
-me?”
-
-“I do,” said the Shark calmly. “You’re talking sense. Therefore use
-sensible language.”
-
-“I’ll do the best I can,” Sam promised, “but listen to me, anyway.
-What I’m getting at is that, as Poke had it, if Orkney was driven out
-of town, we had a lot to do with the driving. We called it a good job,
-but was it? It was _not_! We didn’t play fair; we didn’t give him a
-square deal. He was entitled to the benefit of the doubt, and we always
-counted the doubt against him. I know, I know what you’re thinking--he
-_was_ a cub, and a chronic grouch, and a trouble maker; but the ugly
-fact remains that we accused him of a lot of things he didn’t do, and
-had no intention of doing. And I say, in such a case, it’s up to us to
-see that, at last, he gets a square deal. I don’t say it so much for
-his sake as for our own.”
-
-“Umph! Matter of self-respect?” queried the Shark.
-
-“Just that!” said Sam emphatically.
-
-For a moment there was silence.
-
-“But, Sam!” ventured Herman Boyd. “Aren’t you piling it on this crowd?
-Suppose Orkney was--er--er--os--os--what’s that word I want?”
-
-“Ostracized?” suggested Step.
-
-“That’s it--ostracized. Well, suppose that was what happened to Orkney.
-We didn’t do it--all. The whole school had a hand.”
-
-“That doesn’t relieve us of responsibility for our part.”
-
-“You’re right, Sam,” said Poke very soberly; for like the others he
-felt the influence of Sam’s earnestness. “You’re right. We’ve got some
-responsibility. We were boasting of it the other day, and we can’t
-crawfish and shirk it now. But what’s the practical thing? What can we
-do about it?”
-
-“That’s it! What can we do?” echoed Step and the Trojan.
-
-“We can talk, argue,” Sam explained. “We can tell people Orkney has
-been misjudged. We can spread everywhere the truth about Little
-Perrine.”
-
-“Well, I’ll go so far, gladly,” said Step.
-
-“Same here!” cried the Trojan.
-
-“Of course,” agreed Poke.
-
-The Shark was frowning slightly. “If you fellows had listened to my
-demonstration about the flight of the boulder, you wouldn’t have to
-listen now to Sam. But it’s better late than never.”
-
-“Oh, cut the crowing!” said Step testily.
-
-“Might as well--it’ll be the same story over again next time I try to
-put anything before you in black and white.”
-
-Step turned to Sam. “I don’t like Orkney,” he said. “I never expect
-to like him. But I’ll promise to help set him right with the school.
-If there were any way to find him and bring him back, I’d jump at the
-chance.”
-
-“Guess you can make that promise for the whole club!” exclaimed Poke.
-
-“Sure!” cried the Trojan. The others nodded, a bit solemnly.
-
-“Then we’ll consider it a definite agreement,” said Sam. “If any of
-us get a clue, a tip, a hint, the whole club will pull together in
-whatever may be done.”
-
-Step laughed rather vaguely and glanced at the Shark.
-
-“What are the mathematical odds against getting a clue, old Headlights?
-Figure ’em out for us.”
-
-The Shark’s lip curled. “Can’t! Problem’s all unknown quantities. But
-you may have bull luck. It’s always coming to blooming idiots.”
-
-Sam interposed in the interest of peace.
-
-“Stow the joshing, fellows! We’ve reached an understanding, anyway.
-It’s settled that if anybody gets news of Orkney the club is to share
-it. I admit I don’t know where it can come from, but I’ll hope for it,
-all the same.”
-
-Sam spoke guardedly enough, and with no suspicion that at that very
-moment Lon Gates lay in wait for him. And Lon had news, interesting
-certainly, and perhaps important.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI LON PLAYS DETECTIVE
-
-
-“See that, sonny?” Lon, having captured Sam at the gate and led him
-to the privacy of the barn, had taken a wrench from a shelf and was
-displaying the implement with much complacency. “’Member it? Ought to!
-It’s the wrench I told you the other day was lost, strayed or stolen.”
-
-“Oh!” said Sam. “And so you found it?”
-
-Lon chuckled. “Wal, I did sort o’ stumble on it, as you might say. Only
-there was more’n plain stumblin’ involved, seein’ as how I had to take
-it away from Peter Groche. And Peter don’t willingly give up what ain’t
-his--not so long as he has his health.”
-
-“Then Peter’s turned up again!”
-
-“He’s turned up--this afternoon. Guess he’s turned down again, though,
-before this. I’ll tell you how ’twas.”
-
-“Wait a minute! If he had the wrench, he’d stolen it from us. If he
-stole it, there’s no doubt left that he played all the other tricks!”
-
-Lon thrust a hand into the bosom of his coat, and struck an attitude.
-
-“Now what do you think o’ me as a sleuth? Ain’t I a reg’lar Shylock
-Holmes?”
-
-“Sherlock Holmes,” corrected Sam.
-
-“Oh, wal, Shylock’s the name that sort o’ sticks in my head. Guess he
-must ’a’ been Sherlock’s brother. But then there was Hannibal, too.”
-
-Sam threw up his hands in mock despair. “Go on! Give me the yarn!”
-
-“Wal, me ’n’ Hannibal was goin’ down-town to do an errand for your ma,
-and we cut across by Lane’s blacksmith shop. The door was open. I was
-for paradin’ by, unnoticin’, but Hannibal began to growl and scooted
-for that door. Somethin’ made me whistle him back, and I was tickled
-I did; for when I peeked in, there was Peter Groche, big as life and
-uglier’n ever, tryin’ to sell this wrench to old man Lane for a dime. I
-knew it was ours the minute I clapped eyes on’t, but I jest thought I’d
-wait a little and listen to what Mr. Groche was purrin’. And he was
-explainin’ to Mr. Lane that he’d been away for a day or two, and that
-he was back in town jest to settle his affairs, ’cause he’d picked up a
-reg’lar job, choppin’ in the woods up Payne’s Stream, and he was goin’
-there soon’s he’d cashed in on a little portable property he had no
-further use for. And then, seein’ as how Hannibal was gettin’ uneasy, I
-walked in and took Mr. Groche by the collar, and walked him out o’ the
-shop, and took away the wrench, and told him I guessed there was one
-bargain sale he’d have to call off.”
-
-Sam’s eyes were opened widely. “Gee! but it took nerve to tackle him!
-They say he’s an awful scrapper.”
-
-“Mebbe it wasn’t his scrappin’ day. And, of course, a bull terrier
-growlin’ ’round a feller’s legs is kinder disconcertin’--say, Sam,
-Hannibal showed plain enough he’d got a score to even with Groche.
-Don’t wonder at that! ’Member the mornin’ the dog come limpin’ home?
-Wal, anyhow, Peter didn’t put up a fight. He jest scowled, and cussed,
-and swore he’d found the wrench. Then I told him I supposed the wrench
-must ’a’ met him on the street and followed him home, and he shut up
-on that part of it. Then I called him a thief, and a few other pet
-names; and he acted queer, I swan he did!”
-
-“What did he do?”
-
-“Swelled up like a frog. Didn’t call names back at me, but behaved
-contemptuous-like, as if I was a cheap ’un to worry about a plain old
-wrench. Said he had money enough to buy me; or, anyhow, he knew where
-he could get a bunch of it for the askin’. Then I laughed at him, and
-he puffed up more’n ever. What’d I think of an even hundred dollars,
-heh? Wal, it was his, whenever he chose to say ’bout a dozen words.
-And there wa’n’t nobody else in Plainville that could say ’em. He knew
-something, he did! And then he sputtered so there was no makin’ head or
-tail of his nonsense.”
-
-Sam caught Lon’s arm. “What else happened? Tell me--quick!”
-
-There was an excitement in the boy’s tone that made Lon stare at him.
-
-“Why--what--what’s stirrin’ you up, Sam?” he demanded.
-
-“I’ll tell you afterward. Go on!”
-
-“Huh! That’s what Groche did. You see, Hannibal lost patience and
-took a nip at his calf, and Peter jest missed kickin’ Hannibal; and
-it struck me the gaiety of our social circle was gettin’ feverish. So
-I grabbed Hannibal’s collar, and told Groche that if I saw him again
-I’d have him arrested for thievin’. Over on the railroad a freight was
-gettin’ ready to pull out on the branch line. I hinted he’d better jump
-it, and let it give him a lift, if he was headin’ Payne’s Stream way.
-And I was sorry he couldn’t stay to collect that ghost hundred dollars
-he was dreamin’ about, but Hannibal wouldn’t be denied much longer; so
-he’d better beat it. Which also he done.”
-
-“You mean he ran for the train?”
-
-“Yep! And caught it--saw him.”
-
-“And he’s going to Payne Stream?”
-
-“Looked mighty much that way. But what you drivin’ at, Sam?”
-
-“Wait a minute! Father’s camps are up there, aren’t they?”
-
-“Yes; he’s got gangs lumberin’ three-four places along the stream.”
-
-“Hurrah!” cried Sam.
-
-Lon’s jaw sagged. “What--what in Sam Hill’s got into you? This ain’t
-the Fourth of July.”
-
-Sam was still clutching the man’s arm. “Look here, Lon! Wake up! Groche
-has been up-stream, got a job, come to town for some reason or other.
-You’ve started him back.”
-
-“Jesso!”
-
-“He boasted he could make a hundred dollars by telling something?”
-
-“That’s what he said.”
-
-“But you didn’t give him a chance to earn the money?”
-
-“No. Still, of course, most likely he was lyin’----”
-
-“For once he may have been speaking the truth. And it happens there’s
-just one way to pick up a hundred in Plainville so easily.”
-
-“How’s that?”
-
-“By winning the reward for news of Tom Orkney!”
-
-Lon’s expression was crestfallen. “Of all the chuckleheads!” he
-groaned. “And I didn’t tumble! I guess I’m jest a one-idea-at-a-time
-feller. But that one idea that I’d got Groche dead to rights on the
-stealin’ seemed big as a mountain--hid everything else. But I’ll bet
-you’re right! Groche spotted the kid up in one o’ them camps on Payne
-Stream, and came back to collect easy money----”
-
-“Sure he didn’t get it?” Sam broke in.
-
-“Yep! I scared him off. You see, ’twas a mite livelier’n I let on
-jest now. And what between me ’n’ Hannibal and that wrench--reckon
-I was wavin’ it sort o’ free and vi’lent--and the risk o’ bein’
-arrested--wal, I guess Groche was glad to go while the goin’ was good.
-Then, too, he may ’a’ figgered he could come back to pick the plum when
-things had quieted down--see?”
-
-Sam nodded. Lon was no braggart; no doubt the brush with Groche had
-been very nearly a full-sized fight.
-
-“Wal, what’ll you do now?” Lon queried curiously. “Say! That hundred’d
-come in pooty handy, eh?”
-
-“Oh, I couldn’t take it!” Sam said quickly. “That doesn’t mean,
-though----”
-
-There he checked himself; wheeled; and strode toward the house. His
-brain was working actively; a plan was taking shape, a plan hard to
-execute, perhaps, yet not impossible. And if it could be carried out,
-it might go far toward wiping out the balance against the Safety First
-Club in the matter of Tom Orkney.
-
-Sometimes Fortune comes to meet those who seek her favors. No sooner
-had Sam set foot in the house than he realized that there was an
-unusual air of excitement in the normally tranquil establishment. Nor
-had he long to wait for enlightenment.
-
-The supper bell rang, and very willingly he took his place at table;
-for, as has been set forth, his cares had not blunted his appetite.
-Three minutes later, however, he had laid down knife and fork, and was
-listening eagerly.
-
-“We ought to make a fairly early start in the morning,” his father
-remarked. “Warren will arrive on the nine o’clock train this evening,
-and can get a good night’s rest. Perhaps we’d better have breakfast
-about seven.”
-
-Mr. Warren was the New Yorker Mr. Parker was to take into the woods!
-And they were to depart in the morning for the camps on Payne Stream!
-
-“Father!” cried Sam.
-
-Mr. Parker glanced in surprise at his son. “Well, what is it, young
-man?” he asked.
-
-“The biggest favor I ever begged of you! Take me with you!”
-
-“On this trip?”
-
-“Yes, sir. I can’t tell you how much I want to go.”
-
-Mr. Parker shook his head doubtfully. “It’s a long haul--we’re going in
-to the new camps, and maybe beyond them. I’m afraid----”
-
-“But it’s such a tremendous favor, Father!”
-
-“Exactly! But----” Mr. Parker paused. He had noted Sam’s earnestness;
-had marked how the boy was bending forward, and how his hands gripped
-the edge of the table. “But, you see----” Now he had caught his wife’s
-eye, and again hesitated. For some strange reason she was endorsing
-her son’s plea. He read the unspoken message; he saw her little nod of
-affirmation. “Why--why, give me a moment to consider,” he concluded.
-
-“It’s vacation, you know,” said Mrs. Parker softly.
-
-“I know--but I hadn’t thought of----”
-
-“But you’ll think of it now, won’t you?” implored Sam.
-
-Once more husband and wife exchanged glances.
-
-“The fact that I hadn’t thought of taking you, Sam, doesn’t bar
-considering the proposition now,” said Mr. Parker. “Well, I dare say it
-can be arranged if----”
-
-“Bully!” cried Sam enthusiastically. “Oh, but that’s fine, sir! And I
-want my crowd to go--the club--you know, sir!”
-
-“What!”
-
-“Yes, the club--all of ’em. That’s the best part of it.”
-
-“Possibly--for the club,” said Mr. Parker drily. “But I’m not planning
-a wholesale migration.”
-
-“Still,” suggested Mrs. Parker, “there’s the big sleigh.”
-
-“There is.”
-
-“And the boys wouldn’t mind a little crowding.”
-
-“Not they! Warren may have prejudices.”
-
-“You can share the front seat with him. And I believe the roads are
-well broken.”
-
-“Only so far as the first camp.”
-
-“But that’ll do for us,” cried Sam. “You can leave us there, and go on
-with Mr. Warren, and pick us up when you come back. You won’t be more
-than a couple of days away from us, and we’ll keep out of mischief.”
-
-“Why not put Lon in charge of the boys?” added Mrs. Parker.
-
-Her husband laughed outright. “It’s no use--I’m outvoted two to one!
-But that is a happy thought about Lon. And jammed as we’ll be, an extra
-passenger will make little difference. Only understand, son!” He turned
-to Sam. “You’ve promised good behavior. Don’t forget that.”
-
-Sam was grave enough. “I won’t forget that I’m on probation, sir.
-But--but then it’s settled?”
-
-“You may consider it so.”
-
-“Whoop! Excuse me, please!” Up sprang Sam so hastily that his chair was
-almost overturned. He dashed into the hall and caught up the telephone.
-
-Mr. Parker glanced inquiringly at his wife.
-
-“There’s more animation than I’ve seen manifested for weeks,” he
-observed. “Sam has seemed to be rather subdued lately.”
-
-“I’ve noticed it. And I confess I haven’t understood it.”
-
-“Effect of his escapade with my gun, perhaps?”
-
-“Not wholly. I’m sure there’s something else on his mind.”
-
-From the hall floated Sam’s eager voice:
-
-“Course your folks will let you go, Step. Make ’em, make ’em!... Yes,
-yes; I tell you there’s a special reason. Biggest chance that ever
-happened!... No, no; I can’t tell you now, but we’ll get the gang
-to the club, and you’ll have the whole story.... No, no--just bring
-along your snow-shoes.... But you’ve got to come--every fellow’s got
-to!... What’s that?... Sure, there’s a clue!... No; I shan’t talk over
-the wire.... Get permission to come along; that’s all you need worry
-about.... Say, hang up now, won’t you? I want to catch Poke and the
-rest before any of ’em go out for the evening.”
-
-Mr. Parker smiled quizzically. “My dear lady,” he said, “I confess that
-I find difficulty in comprehending the mental processes of your son.”
-
-His wife gave a little sigh. “Ah! Sam is too much for me sometimes.
-And this is one of the times. But”--and her face brightened--“but I’m
-confident he has some excellent reason for setting his heart on this
-expedition.”
-
-“Well, I hope so, at least,” said Mr. Parker, rather resignedly.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII TOM ORKNEY CHANGES HIS INTENTION
-
-
-There are three ways in which one may travel from Plainville to
-the woods about Payne Stream. One is partly by rail, involving a
-jolting journey over the branch line to a flag-station, and then a
-trip over roads which quickly dwindle to trails. The other routes
-are by highways, neither being direct. Mr. Parker, choosing the more
-promising of the two, brought his party in sight of the No. 1 camp in
-mid-afternoon.
-
-The pace had been very moderate, but rather because Mr. Parker
-spared his horses than because of hard going. In the more thickly
-settled districts the sleighing was excellent, while the last lap of
-the journey was over a “tote road,” worn smooth by the passage of
-sledges carrying supplies to the lumbermen. Midway there had been a
-stretch, over which travel evidently had been very light. Here, as
-Lon explained to the boys, was a district of abandoned farms, some
-of whose houses, fast falling into ruin, he pointed out to them. Then
-he indicated groves of flourishing young trees, growing on land which
-within his memory had been under cultivation, and philosophized a
-little on the “hard grubbin’” on the hill farms.
-
-Wrapped in their fur coats, Mr. Parker and Mr. Warren shared the front
-seat, and afforded shelter for the other passengers. The rear seats had
-been removed from the sleigh, and Lon and the boys filled the bottom
-of the vehicle, with plenty of straw and robes to keep them warm. On
-the whole they did very well; though it is not to be denied that they
-were quite willing to alight and stretch their legs when the sleigh
-drew up at the door of a big log hut, low but long and with an ell at
-the rear. Smoke was curling from two chimneys, one in the middle of the
-main building and the other in the ell, but nobody was in evidence.
-When Mr. Parker raised a shout, however, the door opened, and out came
-a thick-set, ruddy, middle-aged man, in sweater, corduroys and heavy
-boots.
-
-“Hullo there!” he sang out cheerfully. “Glad to see ye, Mr. Parker!
-Wasn’t lookin’ for ye quite so early. And this is Mr. Warren, ain’t it?
-Proud and happy, sir, to make your acquaintance. Wha’je think of this,
-now? Kinder remind ye of Fifth Avenue, eh?”
-
-“Well, I’ve seen snow on the avenue--when it was very new snow--that
-looked like that you have here,” said Mr. Warren.
-
-The thick-set man chuckled, and shook hands with Mr. Parker. Then he
-repeated the ceremony with Mr. Warren, being duly presented as Mr.
-Kane, foreman, or “boss” of No. 1 camp. Then for the first time he
-seemed to observe Lon and the club.
-
-“Hullo some more--a whole lot more!” he exclaimed. “Wha’je got in
-behind, Mr. Parker? New crew of lumberjacks?”
-
-Mr. Parker briefly explained, and there were more introductions.
-
-“Kinder wedged in, ain’t they?” inquired Mr. Kane. “Guess I’d better
-play block and tackle.”
-
-With that he put out an arm, caught Step by the collar, and fairly
-swung him to the ground. Whereupon Step’s friends swarmed over the
-side of the sleigh, and fell to stamping their feet vigorously, in an
-effort to quicken sluggish circulation.
-
-“Go in, boys, go in,” Mr. Kane urged hospitably. “Go in and warm up.
-Goin’ to let these fellers stay with me, ain’t ye?” he added.
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Parker. “Hope you can put ’em up, and put up with them,
-for a day or two, while Warren and I go farther on.”
-
-“Sartain sure! Plenty o’ room, and grub, and blankets. Only ain’t ye
-goin’ to stop at the Hotel de Kane?”
-
-“On the way out we will. Just now I’m anxious to get in touch with
-Wells----”
-
-“Wal, now, if he didn’t go through to No. 2, not half an hour ahead of
-ye!”
-
-Mr. Parker cast a weatherwise look at the sky, and gathered up the
-reins.
-
-“Then I think Warren and I will push on,” said he. “There’s a feel of
-more snow in the air, Kane. So, if you’ll just keep a sharp eye on
-these young scamps and show them what a lumber camp is like----”
-
-“Trust me!” chuckled the cheery foreman.
-
-Sam had drawn a little apart from his friends and was glancing keenly
-about him. At that hour, of course, the choppers were at work, probably
-at some distance from the camp, but other employees might be in or near
-the cabin. Already he had observed a fat man peering from the door of
-the ell. That would be the cook, no doubt. The jingle of bells told him
-that his father was resuming the journey, and his ears warned him that
-Mr. Kane was shepherding his flock of guests indoors.
-
-Sam was as chilled and stiff from the long ride as were his friends,
-but he still lingered at his post of observation. It was no more than
-a chance, at the best, that Orkney, if he had come to the woods, was
-at this especial camp; but Sam was making the most of the chance. In
-full session of the club it had been decided that, if the runaway were
-discovered, Sam should first reason with him in private, falling back,
-if necessary, upon the support of the others.
-
-Except where a clearing had been made for the camp, and where ran the
-narrow tote road, towered tall pines, doomed to fall as the choppers
-worked their way from the borders of the tract to its center. Here
-the snow had fallen deep and without drifts, such as the travelers had
-seen in the more open country. Sam shivered a little. The cheerful
-and vociferous boss had followed his charges into the cabin, and, of
-a sudden, the watcher was oppressed by the silence and the loneliness
-of the woods. Instinctively he took a step toward the main door of
-the camp; halted; listened intently. Then he heard again, and with
-certainty, the sound which he had half believed a trick of imagination.
-It was the crunch of dry snow under a hurrying foot.
-
-Sam strode forward. As he turned the corner of the building, he caught
-sight of a figure moving obliquely toward the runner tracks leading to
-No. 2 camp. In spite of the low-drawn cap and the rough Mackinaw he
-recognized Orkney.
-
-“Slipped out of a back door, and around the other side of the camp and
-started for another get-away,” he reflected. “Bound not to be seen, if
-he can help it. Thunder, but he is as stubborn as they make ’em!”
-
-Orkney was in haste, but Sam pursued still more rapidly. The tote road
-bent sharply to avoid a great boulder. Orkney vanished around the
-bend, without giving evidence that he suspected he was followed; but
-when Sam passed the big rock, and thus shut himself from view from
-the camp, he beheld Orkney, faced about and standing defiantly in the
-middle of the road.
-
-Sam, too, pulled up. For a moment neither boy spoke. Sam advanced a
-pace. Orkney contented himself with holding his ground.
-
-“Well, what do you want?” he growled.
-
-“You,” was Sam’s terse response.
-
-“Cut out the guff! I’m in a hurry.”
-
-Sam took another step forward. “See here, Orkney! I’ve got things to
-tell you. You made a mistake when you bolted.”
-
-“That’s my own lookout. I’m satisfied.”
-
-“I’m not.”
-
-“Huh! It’s no affair of yours.”
-
-“I tell you it is,” Sam insisted. “Helped drive you out of town, didn’t
-I?”
-
-“What’s that? ‘Drive me out?’” snorted Orkney. “Not much! Nobody drove
-me--least of all you and your gang of swelled heads!”
-
-Sam kept his temper. “Might as well face things as they are. You ran
-away because everybody was down on you, because everybody cut you,
-because----”
-
-“Not on your life!” Orkney broke in fiercely. “I don’t care a rap for
-the whole school or the whole town!”
-
-“All the same you couldn’t stand the gaff. So you turned tail and
-bolted. And here I find you a wood-chopper and----”
-
-“No siree! Can’t you get anything straight? I’m cookee. Know what that
-is? Cook’s helper. Or, rather, I was. I’ve quit the job. I’m moving on.”
-
-“You’re running again--from us!”
-
-“I’m running from nobody. But I don’t choose to stay where a lot of
-prying sneaks are butting in.”
-
-Sam took another step. This proffering of the amende honorable was
-proving to be even more difficult than he had feared, but he kept
-himself in hand.
-
-“Orkney,” he said earnestly, “you’ve got to hear me. The other day I
-charged you with a lot of rascality. I was mistaken. I take back what
-I said. Then, like everybody else, I thought you as good as shoved
-Little Perrine into the pond. That was another mistake; I’m sorry for
-it.”
-
-Orkney was more puzzled than pleased. “Eh? Sorry, are you? Well, if you
-want to apologize----”
-
-“Apologize” is a word which, sometimes, grates on the ear. Sam flushed.
-
-“Go slow there!” he said sharply; then, with a change of tone, went on:
-“If I’m apologizing, it’s for the things I did because I was fooled,
-deceived. And the club are with me in this. But I’m not apologizing,
-and they’re not apologizing for thinking you a grouchy sorehead. You’ve
-made your own troubles, mostly. We’ll let that pass, though. I’m not
-here to call you names; I’m here to tell you that, if you’d stuck it
-out and not run away, things would have cleared up for you. As it is,
-we’re ready to do what we can for you if you’ll come back. We’ll spread
-the truth. You can make a fresh start.”
-
-“With the help of your bunch! I see myself doing it!”
-
-“Look at the case fairly. We came here in the hope of finding you. We
-came to make the offer.”
-
-“Got a tip where I was, eh? Well, I know who gave it. Fellow from
-Plainville, who’d been hanging around the camp, disappeared for a
-couple of days, and then came back.”
-
-“Groche--Peter Groche? Is he here now?”
-
-“Was this morning. It was none of his business, and it’s none of yours,
-Parker--mixing up in my affairs this way.”
-
-“But it is our business!”
-
-Orkney’s jaw was thrust forward obstinately. “See here, Mr. Sam Parker,
-you’re going too far. You’re banking on a notion that on account of
-what you did for me at the pond I’ve got to come when you whistle. Get
-that out of your head! I told you I couldn’t very well fight you--you
-know why--but there’s a limit. You don’t own me!”
-
-Sam had not thoroughly mastered the rôle of bearer of the olive branch.
-“Mighty glad I don’t own you! If I did, I’d get rid of you very quick!”
-he rapped out. “And if you want to fight--why, the slate’s clean; you
-don’t owe me anything.”
-
-Orkney dropped a bundle he had been carrying under one arm. Sam,
-observing this readiness to clear for action, struggled between zest
-for the fray and duty, as he saw it.
-
-“Listen, you--you chump! Show common sense, can’t you? Come home with
-us. We want you to have a square deal. We’ll back you up--so far as we
-can. Little Perrine swears by you--we’ll spread his story. And there’s
-another thing--maybe you don’t guess how awfully broken up your aunt
-is. She’s almost crazy. She’s done everything she could to trace you.
-She’s offered a reward----”
-
-“What’s that? A reward?”
-
-“Yes--hundred dollars for news of you.”
-
-“Oh-ho!” Orkney’s cynical grin was a taunt in itself. “Oh-ho! So that’s
-your lay, eh? You’re after me because you and your gang are after the
-hundred? Well, you don’t get either--see?”
-
-Orkney had passed the limits of endurance. Rage seized Sam. To be
-charged with mercenary motives was more than he could bear. He sprang
-at Tom, and at the same instant that vigilant youth leaped to meet the
-attack. There was a furious exchange of blows, each combatant seeking
-to inflict punishment and making no effort to avoid it. Then the pair
-grappled, and swayed back and forth, struggling desperately for the
-mastery.
-
-It was a fight, and a real fight; but one carried on under unusual
-conditions. Both boys were in heavy winter clothes; there had been no
-time to discard overcoats or jackets, or even the thick gloves they
-wore. So they were, in some degree, like armored knights of old, come
-to grips in full panoply, by which they were at once hampered and
-protected; while the yielding snow offered most uncertain footing. Now
-they were in the tracks of the tote road; now they had reeled into snow
-that rose above their plunging knees; now they were floundering back to
-the path. Sam, slipping, went to his knees. Orkney, over-eager to press
-his advantage, lost it; for though he landed a blow on his opponent’s
-forehead, it was at cost of the precious “under hold.” Sam’s arms
-were locked about Tom’s waist; his chin was pressing hard against the
-other’s shoulder. Orkney swayed backward under the pressure. He made a
-frantic effort to break free; failed; lost footing. Down he went into
-the deep snow, Sam falling upon him and still holding him fast.
-
-But the battle was far from ended. Orkney writhed and twisted. He
-struck at Sam, raining ineffective blows upon his head and shoulders.
-He kicked furiously, sending the snow flying in showers. Indeed, he
-fought determinedly but vainly, until at last Sam, keeping his wits,
-had slowly shifted position, and was astride his prostrate foe’s
-body. Then, with one of Sam’s hands at his throat, and the other
-hand clenched and poised above his unprotected face, Orkney sullenly
-accepted defeat and ceased to struggle.
-
-“You--you had enough?” Sam panted.
-
-“Y-Yes!” gasped Orkney with all imaginable reluctance.
-
-“Give up?”
-
-“Yes.” It was barely a whisper, but Sam caught the word.
-
-“All--all right!” he said, breathlessly but cheerfully, and got upon
-his feet.
-
-Orkney sat up, but did not attempt to rise. His expression betrayed
-intense chagrin.
-
-“I--I won’t admit you--you licked me, but--but you got me down,” he
-said brokenly. “And--and I gave up. But that--that doesn’t settle
-anything.”
-
-To his surprise Sam laughed.
-
-“Sure settles one thing, Orkney! You said you--you wanted to fight
-me, but couldn’t--’member? Well, somehow, we seem to have dodged the
-difficulty.”
-
-Tom seemed to find a certain grim consolation in this aspect of the
-case.
-
-“That’s so. But--but what do you want me to do now?”
-
-“Stand up!” said Sam promptly. “We’ll brush the snow off each other.
-Then we’ll go back to the camp. You’d better slip in the way you
-slipped out. I’ll go in at the front door, and tell the fellows you’re
-working here, and I’ve had a talk with you. Then you’ll happen along
-naturally. The crowd will be decent.”
-
-Orkney made a grimace. “S’pose I’ll have to see ’em--might as well have
-it over. But see here, Parker! Mind you, I haven’t promised to go back
-to Plainville.”
-
-“But you’ll think it over?”
-
-“Well,” said Orkney reluctantly, “I’ll agree to that. Yes; I’ll stay a
-day or two, anyway, and think it over.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII LON GATES ENTERTAINS
-
-
-What easily might have been an embarrassing situation was dealt with
-capably by the Safety First Club. Hardly had the jovial Mr. Kane
-welcomed the belated Sam and demanded how in the world he had happened
-to stray from the rest of the party and what he had been doing to amuse
-himself out in the cold; and hardly had Sam explained as nonchalantly
-as might be that he had chanced to meet a schoolmate, who was serving
-as cookee to the camp, and had paused for a chat with him, when the
-door in the partition shutting off the cook’s domain opened, and Orkney
-appeared.
-
-There was brief, but tense, silence as Tom advanced toward the group.
-Then Step, who chanced to be nearest, spoke.
-
-“H’lo, Orkney!” said he brusquely but not harshly.
-
-“Howdy, Step!” responded Tom, quite in the same manner.
-
-“Oh, up here for a while, eh?”
-
-This was Poke’s contribution. The others nodded, a bit stiffly, maybe;
-and the Shark regarded the newcomer solemnly through his glasses.
-Nowhere was there sign of hostility, even if warmer welcome were
-lacking. There was not a boy there but guessed shrewdly at what had
-taken place; but not for love or money would one of them have betrayed
-his knowledge by speech or look. At times the methods of youngsters
-in their teens curiously resemble those of Indians--at least, to the
-extent of jealous hiding of emotion. Both Tom and Sam bore a mark or
-two of their encounter, but for the present these were things to be
-carefully ignored.
-
-Mr. Kane, as he himself would have said, “sensed” something queer; but
-though he glanced quickly and inquiringly from face to face, he could
-make nothing of the manner of his guests. And then Orkney going about
-his duties and the boys resuming their talk, he gave up the problem,
-and turned to Lon, from whom he demanded the latest news of the outside
-world.
-
-It was Sam’s first opportunity to inspect a lumber camp, and he
-studied with keen interest the long, low room, with its walls of logs,
-its big stove, its line of bunks against each wall, and its “deacon’s
-seat,” or bench built beside the bunks. The windows were few and small.
-Roughly as the house was built, it was very solidly put together, while
-drafts were lessened by moss packed between the logs. Here and there
-hung spare clothing and extra boots. There was no attempt anywhere at
-adornment or decoration, but order of a sort seemed to be maintained,
-the order which places everything where it can be most handily come at.
-
-Dusk was falling, and the choppers began to straggle into the camp.
-With them came the “yard men,” whose business it is to handle and pile
-the logs, and the teamsters. Strapping big fellows were most of Kane’s
-crew, roughly clad for rough work, hard as nails, and hungry as bears.
-Among the last to arrive was Peter Groche, who slouched into the big
-room, grunted when his eyes fell upon Lon and the boys, halted for
-an instant, regarding them evilly, and finally made his way to what
-appeared to be his especial corner. There he remained until the whole
-company trooped through the doorway in the partition to the combined
-kitchen and dining-room.
-
-This filled the ell of the camp. There was a range in one corner, and a
-table of boards ran the length of the room, benches serving as seats.
-Behind these were two bunks for the cook and the cookee. The supper,
-everything being eaten from tin plates, made up in quantity what it
-lacked in variety. Beans, baked with pork, formed the principal dish,
-most excellent beans and in seemingly inexhaustible supply. Then there
-were enormous camp doughnuts, which would have appalled a dyspeptic,
-but which proved to be singularly toothsome and comforting after a day
-in the open. Tea, sweetened with molasses, was drunk from tin cups.
-The boys may not have been able to match the huge appetites of the
-woodsmen, but they ate and ate until, as Poke whispered to Step, he’d
-have to stop or hitch two belts together; for the food, simple as it
-was, was well cooked and tempting enough to hungry folk, young or old.
-
-Sam divided attention between Orkney and Peter Groche. The cookee, of
-course, was busy throughout the meal, devoting himself to his tasks
-and going about them in businesslike fashion. Sam fancied Tom was not
-in high favor with the men, though it certainly could not be alleged
-that he neglected them. Still, Tom’s was a dogged and silent manner of
-performance not calculated to secure popularity anywhere.
-
-At table Groche’s appearance was at its worst. He ate greedily and
-enormously, fairly shoveling the food into his mouth. Sam observed that
-the man kept his eyes on his plate, spoke to none of his neighbors,
-and showed no interest in the talk which began to be heard when the
-supper drew to a close. He was the first to rise, and shuffled out as
-if glad to go; but when the boys trooped into the main room, there was
-Groche, perched in his corner and sucking at a black pipe. And there he
-remained until dislodged by no less heroic a champion than the Shark.
-
-Now the Shark, as has been related, had the quaint habit, into which
-near-sighted persons, given to reflection, sometimes fall, of fixing
-his gaze upon some object and holding it there without any especial
-concern in the object, or consciousness of its existence. As it
-happened, the Shark had chanced to wonder what might be the weight of
-a layer of snow two feet deep, spread evenly over one square mile; and
-being more charmed with the computation than with the conversation of
-his friends and hosts, he sat down opposite Peter, brought him into
-range of his big spectacles--and promptly forgot his very existence.
-
-Groche, on his part, woke up gradually, as it were, to the baleful and
-unwinking intensity of the scrutiny to which he seemed to be subjected.
-He glared at the Shark, growled deep in his throat, tried to stare down
-the unconscious youth over the way. Failing utterly in this, he dropped
-his eyes, pulled desperately at the black pipe, shifted position, stole
-a side-long glance at his vis-à-vis. The Shark was still contemplating
-him with unruffled composure and deadly concentration.
-
-Groche bent forward, scowling his fiercest. The Shark ignored the
-demonstration. Groche made an abrupt and threatening motion. The Shark
-didn’t move an eyelash. A strange fear clutched the heart of the
-ne’er-do-well. He had heard frightful tales of the evil eye. What the
-evil eye might be he had no notion, but also he had no intention to
-risk learning. Up he jumped, retreating the length of the room; while
-the Shark, wholly absorbed, stared at the wall instead of Mr. Groche,
-without being aware of the change in view.
-
-Sam, the observant, had not missed Groche’s strategic movement, though
-he did not grasp its cause. Nor did he fail to perceive that Peter from
-his new post was sourly surveying the group by the stove, with especial
-regard for Lon and himself. But then came Orkney to distract Sam’s
-attention.
-
-Tom, his work finished, took the place the Trojan made for him on the
-bench. His air was not markedly sullen, but it was reserved; and it
-could not be denied that the talk, which had been going merrily enough,
-began to drag. Sam, hurrying to the rescue, started a topic, which
-drooped and languished. Tom was attentive but unresponsive; so were the
-club members. Both sides were trying to be fair, and the result was
-chilling.
-
-Sam caught Lon’s eye, and telegraphed a message for help. Lon
-understood. He nodded in reply. Clasping his hands about a knee, he
-fell to rocking his body back and forth. Of a sudden he broke into a
-loud laugh.
-
-“Haw, haw, haw! If he wa’n’t jest the plumb ridiculousest old critter!”
-
-“Who was?” asked Herman Boyd.
-
-“Old man Wallowby,” chuckled Lon. “Dunno jest what made me think of
-him. Long before the time of you boys he was.”
-
-“I remember him,” said Mr. Kane. “Queer old codger as ever was. Folks
-used to say there was only three things he never seemed to get around
-to--washin’, workin’, or worryin’.”
-
-“Jesso!” Lon agreed; then made correction: “Say, though! There was one
-time he was worried, fast enough. Ever hear tell o’ the night he fit
-the bear?”
-
-“Fit a b’ar?” echoed the foreman. “No; new one on me.”
-
-Several of the lumberjacks, who had been listening to the talk, drew
-closer.
-
-“There’s two-three b’ar hangin’ ’round No. 3 camp,” one of them
-volunteered.
-
-“Never mind them, Jake,” interposed Mr. Kane. “Le’s hear about old
-Wallowby’s run-in.”
-
-Lon ran a glance about the expectant group.
-
-“Wal,” he drawled, “I dunno’s I can tell the story the way Wallowby
-told it to me, but I’ll try. You know, the old humbug uster give out
-that he was a nat’ral bonesetter, and uster wander about, foragin’ off
-the country and pretendin’ to look for broken bones. That’s how he got
-wind of old Calleck, who must ’a’ been a good deal of the same breed.
-Only Calleck was a yarb doctor, and a bigger freak’n Wallowby himself.
-He was all the while prowlin’ through the woods, diggin’ up roots for
-his medicines; and he called himself a hermit; and he built himself a
-mighty queer house off by his lonesome, a stone house, and----”
-
-“I’ve seed it,” one of the men broke in. “What’s left of it’s standin’
-over on the South Fork, not ten mile from here. But ’twa’n’t all stone.
-Calleck got tired o’ luggin’ rock, and topped it off anyhow he could.”
-
-“Like enough!” said Lon. “I’ve never been to the house, but that’s
-about the fashion old Calleck’d ’a’ done any job. But I’ll get on to
-where Wallowby and the bear come in. Wallowby’d been cruisin’ down in
-the villages, and I guess he’d sorter wore out his welcome in spots.
-Way he put it to me was he got to longin’ for the congenial society
-of a brother scientist, and so he tramped off to find Calleck. He’d
-never seen him and he didn’t know jest where the stone house was, but
-everybody was amazin’ glad to give him directions and push him along;
-and so he moseyed up into the woods.
-
-“It was along in December, but the ground was still bare; though it had
-been mighty cold, and it kept gettin’ colder all the while Wallowby
-climbed the hills. Got dark, too, and the wind was risin’. ’Cordin’ to
-Wallowby ’twas perishin’ cold, and black as a cellar, before he woke to
-the fact that he was as good as lost.
-
-“He stopped and tried to figger out his bearin’s, but it was no use.
-It was a second growth, hard wood country, with a lot o’ scrub stuff
-mixed in; and he’d been fallin’ over roots, and duckin’ branches till
-his notions o’ north and south was twisted as a corkscrew. Looked like
-he was in for a night in the brush, but to keep from freezin’ he
-wrapped an old blanket shawl--he always carried one--around his head,
-and kept goin’. ’Twa’n’t no pleasure trip, believe me! He shivered when
-he told about it, but he owned up he shivered wuss that night when he
-thought he heard something pantin’ off to the right. What with the old
-shawl over his ears he wa’n’t quite sure; but, anyhow, he stepped out
-livelier’n ever, and then plunk! he bust through a bush and into a
-clearin’. And in the clearin’ was a big black spot that meant a house
-o’ some sort.
-
-“Wallowby made for that house same’s a woodchuck makes for his hole
-when there’s a dog after him. He went round the corner of it so fast
-that he couldn’t stop, when, all of a sudden, he saw waddlin’ ’round
-the other corner something big and black, and loomin’ like a mountain.
-And he heard that pantin’ so loud it sounded like a steam engine. And
-then, not bein’ able to clap on the brakes quick enough, he butted
-fair into the thing. His hands hit the thing’s body, and he could feel
-thick fur. He tried to yell, but all that’d come out of his throat was
-a hoarse growl. And then what was like a big claw raked his arm, and
-laid open three-four deep gashes across the back of his hand.
-
-“’Twas a mutual surprise party all right. Wallowby turned, and headed
-for the bush, as if he was more like a scared jack-rabbit than a
-woodchuck. But he didn’t go far. He fell over a root, and before he got
-up it broke on him that the bear was makin’ for cover on the other side
-o’ the house.
-
-“Wallowby told me he didn’t lose sight of the argyment that, if he
-didn’t get into that house, he’d freeze. With the blood tricklin’ from
-his hand he wa’n’t anxious to risk old Bruin changin’ his mind and
-comin’ back, so he sneaked round to the back o’ the place. He had no
-weapon but a jack-knife with a broken blade, but he got it out.
-
-“‘And would you believe it?’ he says to me. ‘It was like Tophet for
-darkness, but, jest as I got to the house, that miserable critter came
-pantin’ at me! He let drive with that murderin’ claw of hisn, and I dug
-into him with the knife. And then, somehow, each of us was reminded
-of his own business, and done accordin’. I got back into the brush,
-and sot there thinkin’. I was all of a sweat, and freezin’ at the
-same time; for the chill was gettin’ into the very marrow of my bones.
-And, pooty soon, studyin’ that lump of a house like it was a chicken
-pie Thanksgivin’ mornin’, I managed to make out the chimney against
-the sky. It was a whoppin’ big chimney, big enough for a man to drop
-through. And the roof sloped ’most to the ground.
-
-“‘Wal,’ says Wallowby, tellin’ the story, ‘I didn’t need two hints. I
-got holt of the edge of that roof, and I wriggled up and clumb to the
-chimney. And then I heard that pantin’ ’tother side o’ the stack, and
-next minute me ’n’ that fool bear was buttin’ our heads together. I
-rolled down the slope and over the edge, and ’most druv the breath out
-o’ my body. But, all the same, I heard an awful thud as the bear fell
-off ’tother side.
-
-“‘Wal, I sat there a minute or two gettin’ my wind back and my mad
-up. I couldn’t stay where I was--I’d ‘a’ froze stiff. And if I’d got
-to bet by a bear, I’d be something better’n a cold lunch, anyhow.
-And, besides, all my life I’d been helpin’ sufferin’ humanity dirt
-cheap; but I drew the line at sellin’ my life anything but dear to
-a wuthless old he-bear. So up I got, grippin’ the knife, and started
-full tilt for the front door. If that bear interfered, he’d take his
-chances o’ gettin’ hurt. But would you believe it? Just as I dove for
-the door he riz up in the darkness ahead o’ me and done the same thing,
-simultaneous. We whanged away at each other, and then, sir, sure as I’m
-standin’ here! we jammed through that door together; and fell over a
-stool; and he went one way, and I went another. And the knife flew out
-o’ my hand, and hit a log smoulderin’ on the hearth, and a flame shot
-up. And there on his hands and knees, glarin’ at me and wheezin’ like a
-broken bellows, was the ornariest old codger in a buffalo coat you ever
-set eyes on!
-
-“‘“Wal,” says I; “wal, but you got a mighty peculiar way o’ treatin’
-company! Ain’t you got no better manners?”
-
-“‘“Why--why”--Calleck gasps--“I--I took ye for--for a bear.”
-
-“‘“Same here,” says I; “only vicy versy. And what you want to go
-pantin’ like one for?”
-
-“‘“It’s the--the asthmy,” says he. “And what for do you go--go
-traipsin’ ’round with--with that mess o’ shawl disguisin’ the human
-figger?”
-
-“‘I stuck out my bleedin’ hand. “Anyhow, I ain’t grown claws,” says I.
-
-“‘“Huh! neither have I,” says he, and shows what he’s carryin’. And
-it’s a little rake he uses to dig for his roots.’
-
-“And that,” Lon concluded, “is old Wallowby’s own yarn o’ the biggest
-bear fight that ever was pulled off in these parts, I guess.”
-
-There was a roar of applause and laughter, led by the cheery boss of
-the camp; even Tom Orkney was grinning. Sam sent a grateful glance at
-the breaker of the social ice. And then, as Mr. Kane prepared to match
-one bear story with another, he saw Peter Groche get upon his feet and
-lounge clumsily to the door.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV PETER GROCHE SCORES AGAIN
-
-
-Sam had found his bunk-bed of spruce boughs amazingly comfortable and,
-snuggling under the blankets, had promptly dropped asleep. He was
-healthily tired from his day’s travels; it was odd, therefore, that
-distressing dreams came to disturb his rest. He began to toss and turn,
-and writhe and groan. A giant’s hand, clutching at his throat, seemed
-to be about to strangle him. There was a crushing weight upon his
-chest; a trip-hammer was beating furiously in his head. Then some vague
-monster had seized him, and was bearing him away with appalling speed.
-
-The boy cried out in terror, and struggled desperately. Of a sudden he
-was free of the monster’s grasp; he was falling from a dizzy height,
-and about to be dashed to pieces. And then, just as destruction
-impended, the dream passed, and he awoke to a reality sufficiently
-perilous.
-
-He was lying, half in, half out of the bunk. The camp was full of
-smoke, dense, acrid, stifling. His eyes smarted and his throat was
-parched and burning. At his side lay Poke, breathing stertorously.
-Sam made him out by a flickering light, which came from the direction
-of the cook’s quarters. Beyond him was Step, raised on an elbow and
-coughing chokingly.
-
-“Fire! Fire!” A startled voice raised the alarm, and others repeated
-the cry. Men began to stagger by him, stumbling as they went and
-groping wildly. Then three or four, led by Mr. Kane, charged the other
-way. The boss was shouting orders. There was the crash of an axe
-vigorously plied. The glass fell from a shattered window, and a draft
-of cool air fanned his face.
-
-Sam, fully awake at last, sprang from the bunk. Step, too, had gained
-the floor. Between them they dragged Poke from his blankets, and put
-him on his feet.
-
-“Take him out, Step!” Sam directed, and set himself to the task of
-rousing the Trojan, who appeared to be in the half unconscious
-condition in which Poke was. The Shark, having very calmly adjusted his
-spectacles on his nose, was tugging at Herman Boyd’s shoulder. Sam lent
-a hand, and with his aid Herman was started for the door.
-
-Tom Orkney overtook them. He was breathing with difficulty, but managed
-to gasp out that the ell was all ablaze. Then came the foreman and a
-lumberjack, carrying a helpless form.
-
-“Cook--right where smudge was thickest--overcome,” Tom explained
-hoarsely.
-
-Through the doorway they pressed into the cold, still air of the
-starless night. Mr. Kane touched Sam’s arm.
-
-“All your crowd out? Good! Keep ’em out till we get the fire under.
-’Twon’t be long, what with unseasoned logs and the snow on the roof.”
-
-Then he was dashing back into the camp, and shouting orders to his men.
-Tom Orkney bent over the cook, who was lying in the snow.
-
-[Illustration: “HE’S COMING ’ROUND ALL RIGHT”]
-
-“He’s coming ’round all right,” he reported. “We’ll bring out some
-blankets----”
-
-Sam and Step rushed into the camp, and emerged with their arms filled
-with heavy coverings. Tom made use of two, while the others were
-distributed among the boys. Luckily they had turned in “all standing”
-and were fully clothed except for their shoes, which Step recovered by
-a second trip into the building.
-
-“Lon’s safe--saw him in there,” said he. “When he heard we were all
-right he stayed to help fight the fire. Gee, but the kitchen’s a
-furnace!”
-
-“I know--I saw it, and I don’t understand it,” Orkney declared. “There
-was some grease about, of course--can’t help that with all the frying.
-Still, the way the blaze ran----”
-
-There he checked himself. “You mean you suspect----?” queried Step.
-
-“I mean it spread mighty fast,” said Orkney drily.
-
-“Think it caught from the stove, don’t you?”
-
-“Huh! Cook’s a very careful man.”
-
-A bucket brigade was forming to bring water from a hole chopped in the
-ice of the stream, and the boys volunteered their services. Somebody
-had found a ladder, and now the fire was being attacked from the
-roof as well as below. Mr. Kane had plenty of men, and employed them
-skilfully, though, of course, his equipment was limited. The roof of
-the ell fell in, and for a few minutes flames shot through the opening
-thus left, but their inroads upon the main camp were quickly checked,
-the heavy logs of the walls, the snow, and the lack of wind all
-contributing to the result. In half an hour the fire was under control,
-and in another Mr. Kane officially declared it out.
-
-Two or three men were told off to build a new partition, temporarily
-filling the gap caused by the fire, and the rest of the crew and the
-boys gathered about the big stove in the main camp. Garments drenched
-in the bucket brigade service were hung up to dry; the cook, now quite
-recovered, brewed a great can of steaming tea. Then there was a sort
-of informal roll call. None of the boys appeared to be the worse for
-his adventures, and the lumberjacks seemed to find the break in the
-monotony of life rather enjoyable. But the foreman, “counting noses,”
-as he put it, made a startling discovery.
-
-Peter Groche was missing!
-
-Nobody could recall seeing the man after the alarm was given. Anxious
-search of the ruins of the ell, conducted by the aid of lanterns,
-revealed no charred evidences that he had perished. It led, however, to
-the discovery of a half-burned cloth, smoked and discolored, and giving
-forth the unmistakable smell of kerosene.
-
-The cook rushed out of the camp, returning presently with a five-gallon
-can.
-
-“See this!” he cried excitedly. “And this!” He held the can upside
-down, but no stream poured from its open neck. “Nigh full ’twas
-yesterday, and now it’s dry as a bone! That’s why the fire went through
-my place in jumps. He must ’a’ sneaked in and soused everything with
-the stuff after I went to sleep.”
-
-“Huh! He might ’a’ done it with a waterin’ cart for all you’d knowed
-it, once you got to snorin’!” jeered one of the choppers.
-
-The cook hotly insisted that he had full right to sleep soundly after
-feeding a “gang of two-legged wolves,” but the foreman stopped the
-controversy.
-
-“Steady there, all around!” he commanded. “This is a crazy job, but
-it’s a bad job and a state’s prison job. But sure’s my name’s Kane,
-I’ll land the scoundrel that done it!” He glanced at his watch. “It’ll
-be gettin’ light in half an hour. Dayton and ‘Stub’ Cyr, I want ye!”
-
-Two of the men--stout fellows both--stepped forward.
-
-“You take after Groche. You know the woods. He’ll have left a trail----”
-
-From the background somebody spoke. “My snow-shoes are gone. He’s stole
-’em!”
-
-“Like enough! And that’ll mean Groche won’t stick to the tote road.
-He’ll strike out ’cross country--Canady way, mebbe.”
-
-Lon pushed to the front. “See here!” said he. “Let me in on this, will
-you? Guess I’ll toddle along with your two.”
-
-“Eh?” said Mr. Kane in surprise.
-
-Lon’s expression was determined. “Sure’s I’m risin’ two-year old, this
-is my party, as you might be sayin’. I got a sorter runnin’ account
-with that critter. And I can tell you this: he wa’n’t aimin’ to singe
-your hair, Mr. Kane, so much as he was layin’ for me and some other
-folks. I oughter tackled him last night, but I didn’t; and now I’ve got
-all the more reason for tacklin’ him good and plenty. And I’m makin’
-no brags, but if I lay paws on him, I’ll bring him in, and don’t you
-forget it! So, if you’ll jest fit me out with snow-shoes and one or two
-other trinkets, I’ll be a heap obleeged to you.”
-
-The foreman inclined his head. “All right--jest as ye say, Gates.
-’Nother pair o’ long legs like yourn won’t do no harm to the hunt.
-We’ll outfit ye.”
-
-Lon crossed to Sam.
-
-“You see how ’tis,” he said, lowering his voice. “I jest plain got a
-call for this job. Your father’d say ’twas all right if he was here.
-But if I take my eye off you for a while, Sam, you’ve got to give me
-your word you’ll keep out o’ mischief and keep the rest out of it. I
-guess you can do it--you’ve been toein’ the mark like a major lately.”
-
-Sam’s eyes twinkled. “Like Major Bates, for instance?”
-
-“Yep--seein’ as how he’s the only real, blown-in-the-bottle major I
-know. And that reminds me: this trip I’ll be a genooine Shylock Holmes.”
-
-“Sherlock Holmes,” Sam corrected.
-
-“No,” Lon insisted; “Shylock’s better. Chap, wa’n’t he, that stood out
-for his pound o’ flesh? Well, that’s me--only I’m goin’ to bring in
-nigher two hundred. And I’m goin’ to bring it in on the hoof--Peter
-Groche’s hoof, at that!”
-
-So matters were arranged. As soon as the light strengthened
-sufficiently, Lon and Stub Cyr and Dayton set out. Meanwhile, the cook
-had contrived breakfast. The bill of fare was that of supper, but
-Sam observed that the tin plates were not heaped so lavishly. And,
-observing, he was stricken by doubts.
-
-At the first opportunity he drew Mr. Kane aside.
-
-“I wish you’d tell me something,” he said. “The fire has left you short
-of supplies, hasn’t it?”
-
-“Wal, kinder,” the boss admitted. “Most of the grub, ye see, was stored
-in the ell. But ye needn’t worry; we won’t starve. I’ve started a team
-for Coreytown for supplies. It ought to be back by night.”
-
-Sam meditated for a moment. “Look here, Mr. Kane! We’re half a dozen
-extra mouths to feed, and we can’t help being more or less in your way.
-And there isn’t any reason why we should stay. All of us brought our
-snow-shoes, and it’ll be just as much sport--yes, more--to be marching
-out on them as to be tramping about the camp. Father’ll understand.
-With the early start we’ll make, we can reach Coreytown long before
-dark. It isn’t over a dozen miles----”
-
-“Call it fifteen.”
-
-“Well, fifteen, then. It’ll be bully fun for us.”
-
-It was the foreman’s turn to deliberate. “Wal, I dunno. Hate like time
-to be seemin’ to throw ye out! Only we can’t make ye extry comfortable,
-mussed up the way we be. And goin’ out would be safe enough. Track’s
-plain, and the road’s broke. I dunno, I dunno.”
-
-“I think we’d better not stay, sir.”
-
-“Wal, suit yerself, of course. There’s kinder a feel o’ more weather in
-the air, but likely’s not it’ll hold off a spell. And the road’s in
-good shape. Then, too, there’s the short cut. If ye knew the lay of the
-land it’d save you a lot o’ distance. The road’s the long way ’round,
-ye know--makes jest about a right-angle.”
-
-The Shark and Step, who had come up, overheard this.
-
-“You mean, then,” queried the former, “that we could lessen effort by
-taking the hypothenuse?”
-
-The foreman smiled. “Or words to that effect, sonny.”
-
-“I comprehend the proposition perfectly,” the Shark solemnly assured
-him. “It may be regarded as elementary.”
-
-“I’m for the march,” Step declared. “Say, it’ll beat old Xenophon’s
-Anabasis to a frazzle!”
-
-“I’m for anything that’ll do that!” cried Poke, who had joined the
-group. “_Enteuthen exelaunei_ on snow-shoes, by Jiminy!”
-
-“Umph! Never did get the hang o’ French myself,” quoth the boss. “But
-you fellers’d better talk over things in plain English. Then let me
-know what ye decide on.”
-
-Herman Boyd, called to the conference, added his vote to those of his
-friends. Tramping out on snow-shoes would be the greatest kind of a
-lark. The Trojan was of the same opinion.
-
-Tom Orkney and Mr. Kane were in consultation in a corner. When the
-foreman moved off, Sam joined Orkney.
-
-“The boys are unanimously for tramping down to the settlements,” said
-he.
-
-“I know. The boss told me how you felt,” Tom answered.
-
-“Seems wisest. Grub’s short here, and the trip will be easy. Lon can
-come out when he’s ready. Most likely my father will pick him up.”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-There was a pause, not free from embarrassment.
-
-“I--I hope you’ve been thinking things over,” Sam ventured. “You said
-you would, you know.”
-
-“I have thought them over,” said Orkney stolidly.
-
-“You’ll come with us?”
-
-Orkney hesitated. “I--I--well, I’ve laid the facts before Mr. Kane.
-And he--he’s a mighty square man, Parker!”
-
-“He’ll release you? And you’ll come?”
-
-“Yes,” said Orkney very soberly; “yes, I’ll come.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV THE BLIZZARD
-
-
-The youthful adventurers were on the march, and were tramping along on
-their snow-shoes in high spirits. Long-legged Step led, followed in
-order by Poke, Herman Boyd, the Trojan and the Shark. Then came Orkney,
-lagging a little, with Sam at his heels. All were warmly clothed, but
-their luggage was of the lightest, being limited, indeed, to a small
-axe, carried in a holster, attached to Herman’s belt.
-
-For a half mile the tote road led through a growth of pine and spruce;
-but then, at the crest of a little hill, they came to a more open
-tract. The road bent to the left; but straight before them was an
-inviting slope.
-
-Sam saw the leaders halt and put their heads together. When he came up
-to them Step was speaking eagerly.
-
-“Why not, fellows? Gee, but we might as well have all the fun that’s
-going! Who wants to go poking along an old sleigh track when he might
-be cutting across country? And think of what we’d save! Mr. Kane said
-the road made a right angle--you figure it out, Shark.”
-
-“Huh! No given quantities,” snapped the Shark.
-
-“Why not? Call it fifteen miles to Coreytown. Say the angle is
-half-way. What’s the answer, Old Skeesicks?”
-
-“Nine-decimal-point-two-plus,” answered the Shark promptly.
-
-Step was exultant. “What did I tell you! Six miles to the good!”
-
-“But what’s the direction?” demanded Sam.
-
-“Why, straight ahead,” said Step, and pointed down the slope.
-
-“How do you know?”
-
-“Must be.”
-
-“I don’t see why.”
-
-Poke took a hand. “Look here, Shark! Can’t you figure out the course?”
-
-The Shark frowned. “You never heard of the word ‘exact,’ did you? You
-want me to treat a wiggling road like two straight lines meeting at a
-right angle. But if you’ve got to assume everything, you might as well
-pile it on. So, if you assume that there is a right angled, isosceles
-triangle--two sides equal, understand?--then each of the acute angles
-will be of forty-five degrees. And so, to travel to the hypothenuse,
-you’d steer forty-five degrees from the line of the road.”
-
-“Oh, sure!” said Step hastily. “Sure you would! But I haven’t a
-compass, or dividers, or--or whatever it is you use.”
-
-“Got a watch, haven’t you?” snorted the Shark. “Well, use that! Fifteen
-minutes on the dial equals ninety degrees. Forty-five degrees is the
-same as seven minutes, thirty seconds. There’s your angle for you. Hang
-it! don’t you fellows know anything?”
-
-Step pulled out his timepiece. “Fine! Just as I said--straight ahead.
-And say! See that big hill--way off--pointed top! It’s a bit misty, but
-it’s right on our line, and it makes a cracking landmark. Come on, you
-chaps!”
-
-“Suits me,” said Poke.
-
-“Ditto,” declared the Trojan.
-
-“Here also,” chimed in Herman Boyd.
-
-The Shark, scornfully indifferent, said nothing. Tom Orkney also was
-silent. It was a trifle, but significant: he was with the club, but not
-of it.
-
-Sam’s expression was dubious. The “weather,” forecasted by the camp
-boss, seemed to be threatening to break. The low lying clouds had
-grown denser in the last quarter hour, and the wind was rising. In
-the shelter of the pines its strength had not been manifest, but once
-beyond the edge of the woods, nobody could fail to heed the force of
-the chilling blasts. Still, it would be as keen along the tote road as
-anywhere else. Sam was not losing sight of his motto of “Safety First”;
-but at the moment it did not occur to him that harm was likely to
-befall half a dozen active, able-bodied youngsters. Yet he hesitated.
-The plan had been to follow the road, and it had been approved by Mr.
-Kane.
-
-Step, confident in the support of a majority of the club, started down
-the hill. After him trailed the Trojan, Poke, Herman Boyd, and the
-Shark. There was nothing for Sam to do but to follow, in company with
-Tom Orkney.
-
-At first progress was easy. The snow was smooth, and though the wind
-increased it was at their backs. Presently there was a brisk snow
-squall, the tiny flakes driving in a blinding cloud. Step quickened his
-pace, and led the party to the shelter of a clump of trees.
-
-The squall passed, but left a narrowed horizon. The peak of the big
-hill, which was to have served as a guide-post, had vanished. There
-was even a good-natured dispute as to the general direction in which
-it lay. Step, insisting that he was certain of its bearings, set off
-again, leading in a détour about the grove. Then came a hill, not
-lofty but so steep that he circled its base. Down upon the squad swept
-another squall, fiercer than the first. The boys struggled through it,
-enjoyed a moment’s respite, and again found themselves in the midst of
-swirling, stinging clouds of icy particles.
-
-Orkney was having trouble with the snow-shoes he had borrowed from Mr.
-Kane; the Trojan took a header over a fallen tree; Poke slipped down
-a bank. None of the mishaps was serious, but together they served to
-bring the party to a halt.
-
-When the savage gusts subsided for a little the boys moved on. Step,
-as guide, did his best to hold a straight line, but failed signally.
-The country was broken, irregularly wooded, full of hummocks and
-tiny valleys as confusing as a maze. Moreover, the snowfall was
-becoming heavier, being so dense at times that it shut off the view as
-completely as if it were a fog.
-
-An over-tight thong made Herman Boyd fall out of line to readjust the
-fastenings of one of his snow-shoes; and he was so long in rejoining
-the party that Sam passed a word or two of caution. “Don’t straggle”
-was his advice. Its effect was seen in a closing of the gaps. By this
-time there was no shouting or joking. Nobody was frightened, but it had
-dawned upon the most heedless of the club that they had their work cut
-out for them. Halts became more frequent; in them there was a tendency
-to huddle.
-
-According to Sam’s reckoning the trail leading from the branch railroad
-to the camps crossed the district in which they were, but they had not
-stumbled upon it. Still, it could be missed easily; for it was little
-traveled, and such drifts as were forming would quickly hide its
-traces. Orkney thought that Peter Groche might have taken the short-cut
-on his last trip from Plainville, but did not believe that it had been
-used by anybody else in a week. Presumably the tote road was to their
-left, but its distance was indefinite. As for turning back--well, Sam
-considered the idea but briefly. It would involve not only a hard tramp
-in the teeth of the storm but also confession of failure. Besides, to
-find the camp would be no easy matter; for in many places the party’s
-own tracks undoubtedly had been blotted out.
-
-In a general way Step, as well as Sam, had counted upon keeping the
-wind at their backs; but in one of the pauses for rest the Shark called
-attention to the fact that his spectacles were dimmed by a thin layer
-of snow on the lenses.
-
-“Been driving straight in my face for the last three minutes,” he
-declared. “We’re utterly twisted, or the gale’s shifting every which
-way.”
-
-“Well, I’m doing my best,” Step insisted. “Say, though! If you’re so
-clever in turning a watch into all sorts of things, make it a compass,
-won’t you? Seems to me I’ve heard it can be done.”
-
-“Certainly it can,” said the Shark. “Very simple method. Only you’ve
-got to be able to see the sun. No chance of that now.”
-
-There was dismal murmur of assent. Overhead there was no break in the
-dark clouds.
-
-When the next halt was made, debate on the direction of the wind was
-resumed. It led to agreement that, as the Shark’s phrase was, it was
-shifting every which way. There was agreement, too, that its force was
-waxing. And, having reached these not very cheering conclusions, they
-could do nothing but trudge on.
-
-Half an hour later they had impressive evidence of the danger of
-their plight. Herman Boyd, falling out again to retie his snow-shoes,
-had such difficulty with the stubborn rawhide that he lost sight of
-his companions, and, when he tried to overtake them, discovered that
-their tracks, made but a few minutes before, had been obliterated by
-the driving snow. Meanwhile the others, alarmed by his absence, had
-turned back, in open order, at Sam’s suggestion; but, even with this
-precaution, covering as much ground as possible, they nearly missed
-Herman. Luckily the Trojan, on the extreme left of the line, finally
-heard a faint shout, and answering lustily, had the relief, presently,
-of seeing the wanderer flounder out of the heart of a blinding cloud of
-flakes.
-
-Then came a council of war. There must be no more straggling. Whatever
-happened, all must keep in touch.
-
-Poke was the next to be found in trouble. Down he slumped in the
-snow, and feebly resisted when Sam and Orkney tried to raise him. The
-web of one of his snow-shoes had pulled away from the frame, and,
-incidentally, had wrenched his ankle. All this involved a halt, while
-the Trojan and Step repaired the damaged shoe with a spare strip of
-rawhide--it was a slow and painful job for numbed fingers--and Sam
-argued zealously with Poke on the exceeding folly of dropping into a
-doze.
-
-When they went on, a change had been made in the procession. Step now
-kept close to the crippled Poke, giving over the leadership to Sam,
-who, on his part, brought the Shark to the second place in the line.
-The Shark, as has been said, was physically the weakest of the club,
-but so far had fared better than some of his stouter friends. As before
-Orkney acted as rear guard.
-
-Sam’s plan was simple, but perhaps as wise a plan as he could have
-made in the conditions. It was to find the valley of some stream and
-follow it out of the hill country. In the lowlands there would be the
-chance of reaching some farm, if not a village. Shelter was coming
-to be the first great need. The storm was getting worse and worse.
-The snow was falling as heavily as ever, the wind blew with almost
-hurricane fury, and the cold was intense. It penetrated the heaviest
-coats and mufflers. The boys shivered even as they toiled on, pluckily
-if weariedly following their guide.
-
-For a little, Fortune seemed to be kinder. They came to what may once
-have been a woods road, which for half a mile gave them a clear, if
-winding, path. Then the road ended in a tangled, upland swamp, through
-which there was no passage.
-
-While they slowly circled the obstacle Sam’s brain was busy. It was his
-business, evidently, to search for the brook draining the swamp; but
-so great was the extent of the marshy tract that at last he gave up the
-task, and turned into a ravine leading between low hummocks. After him
-trailed a slow procession, its pace regulated by the limping Poke.
-
-Sam turned to the Shark.
-
-“How far have we come--if you had to guess?” he asked.
-
-“Don’t know.”
-
-“Guess, anyway.”
-
-The Shark took thought for a moment or two. Then he glanced at his
-watch.
-
-“We’ve been out six hours and----”
-
-Sam groaned. “Six? I feel as if it was nearer twenty-four!”
-
-“It’s six. We traveled fast at the start, but we’ve been crawling
-lately. Call it twelve miles, all told.”
-
-“Oh, more than that!”
-
-“Huh! Guess yourself, then!”
-
-“But even twelve ought to bring us somewhere. And the farms stretch
-some distance this side of Coreytown.”
-
-“Umph!” was the Shark’s non-committal comment.
-
-Sam glanced ahead. They were nearing the mouth of the ravine, beyond
-which the ground appeared to fall sharply. Again he turned to the Shark.
-
-“Never saw a fiercer storm,” said he.
-
-“Blizzard!”
-
-“May last a couple of days.”
-
-“They do,” said the Shark grimly, and burrowed deeper in the upturned
-collar of his coat.
-
-“Well, we can’t stand much more like this. We’ll have to stop and try
-to do something--rig a windbreak, maybe.”
-
-“And freeze?”
-
-Sam’s eye rested for an instant on the laboring Poke.
-
-“Perhaps we can get a fire going. Anyway, we’ve got----”
-
-There he broke off, amazed by the eagerness with which the Shark was
-rubbing his glasses with gloved fingers.
-
-“What is it?” Sam asked in haste.
-
-Out shot the Shark’s arm. “Look yourself! There’s something yonder! Oh,
-if only----”
-
-But his speech was drowned by a jubilant shout. In spite of the
-driving snow, and in spite, too, of a veil of intervening branches, Sam
-had made out a chimney and the shoulder of a steep roof.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI OLD FRIENDS MEET
-
-
-Down the slope rushed the boys like charging troops bursting into an
-enemy’s stronghold. Cold and weariness were forgotten. They dashed
-through drifts; they broke through thickets; they swung themselves over
-the ruins of an ancient rail-fence. Then they were in a clearing, and
-hurling themselves at the door of a little house, against which the
-snow lay banked to the window sills.
-
-Sagging hinges and rusted bolt gave before the attack. The door
-yielded, and in poured the club like an irresistible tide. Once within
-the shelter, however, the boys pulled up abruptly, glancing about them
-with expressions portraying wonder and disappointment.
-
-At a glance it was plain that the house had not been tenanted for a
-long time. The room in which they found themselves was fairly large,
-but bare of furnishings, unless a broken chair, an empty box and a
-strip of ragged carpet in one corner could be so described. A great
-fireplace at one end yawned cold and empty. Dust and cobwebs were
-everywhere, and such light as sifted into the place came through breaks
-in the windows rather than through the grimy panes remaining intact.
-Overhead was a ceiling of rough boards, through whose cracks much snow
-had sifted, testifying to the condition of the roof; while beneath
-each window a considerable bank of snow had formed. The walls gave
-protection, in a measure, from the blasts, but the air had a damp chill
-more paralyzing than the cutting wind.
-
-Sam was the first to rise to the situation.
-
-“Here, fellows, we’ve got to have a fire!” he sang out. “Herman, take
-that axe of yours and go for the old rails in the fence. Step and
-Trojan, go with him, and mind you lug in the driest stuff you can
-find--if there is anything dry. Shark, help Poke out of his snow-shoes.
-Now, Orkney”--he turned to the silent Tom--“you and I’ll tackle the
-fine work. Got any matches?”
-
-Orkney drew a handful from his pocket. “Lucky I was cookee at No. 1,”
-said he. “Had to look after the fires, you know.”
-
-Sam had torn a board from the old box, and with his knife was ripping
-off long, curling shavings. He had built them in a neat pyramid on
-the hearth, when Step and the Trojan staggered in, their arms full of
-billets. They stood, watching Sam closely, while he made careful choice
-of their offerings. As he had feared, none of the wood could be called
-dry, though some of it was not quite so wet as the rest.
-
-Poke and the Shark were beating their arms against their bodies.
-
-“Guess I’ve got a few frosted fingers, all right!” Poke announced
-ruefully.
-
-“Then don’t get too close to the fire at the start,” Sam counseled.
-“Now a light, Orkney! Touch her off!”
-
-Tom’s chilled hands threatened to bungle the task, but Sam, for reasons
-of his own, did not offer to assist. He wished Orkney to feel that he
-was to be counted a full companion in the adventure.
-
-Orkney, sheltering a flickering match in his palm, knelt by the
-fireplace. Most cautiously he thrust the match into a crevice in the
-pile of shavings. A tiny flame shot up. It spread swiftly, the yellow
-tongues licking the heavier wood stacked above the kindling. Sam sprang
-to the box, and ripped off pieces of the sides. These he deftly placed
-on the blazing shavings. Steam and smoke began to rise, and, caught in
-a down-draft from the long unused chimney, belched into the room in a
-choking cloud.
-
-Sam again raided the broken box, and Orkney followed his example. One
-on each side of the hearth, they fed the fire with strips of board,
-till at last the heavier wood was fairly ignited. The chimney by this
-time was warming to its work, and drawing fiercely.
-
-The Shark, rubbing his nose in curiously experimental fashion, was
-surveying Poke intently. Suddenly he bent; picked up a handful of snow
-from a drift under a window; crossed to Master Green, and without
-warning fell to scrubbing that young man’s nose. Poke with a howl
-shrank back.
-
-“What the dickens do you think you’re trying to do?” he demanded
-indignantly.
-
-The Shark shook his head reprovingly. “That’s it--spoil everything!
-They say that’s the way to treat a frosted nose, but how am I going to
-find out if you won’t stand still?”
-
-Poke tenderly caressed the feature under discussion. “What do you want
-to know for?” he inquired.
-
-“Because I guess my nose is nipped, too,” said the Shark calmly. “So I
-thought I’d see how the treatment worked.”
-
-Herman Boyd entered, fuel bearing. He brought a report, too, that
-between the old fence and a fallen tree near by there need be no lack
-of fire-wood.
-
-Sam cut pieces from the old carpet, and stuffed them into the holes in
-the windows. Orkney, taking a hint, replaced the door in position.
-
-“Say, you two!” Step called out. “You act as if you thought we were
-going to make a regular visit.”
-
-“Maybe we are,” Sam told him. “We’d be crazy to go on while the
-blizzard lasts.”
-
-“Right you are!” Step agreed, but drew a long face.
-
-For a moment the boys listened to the howl of the gale. Then Poke
-settled himself on the floor near the fire.
-
-“Might as well make yourselves comfortable, fellows,” he remarked. “I’d
-rather be here than outside, I tell you!”
-
-The Shark followed his example, and so did the Trojan and Step. Orkney
-and Sam took opposite ends of the semicircle. Poke was smiling a sickly
-smile.
-
-“I believe in making the best of things,” he announced. “I’m not
-exactly happy--my ankle hurts and my nose’ll never be the same to
-me that it was--but I’m not kicking. I’m glad to be here, as I’ve
-explained. But how long do you expect to linger in this bower, Sam?”
-
-“I think we’ll have to stay all night, anyway.”
-
-“Huh! Any idea where we are?”
-
-“Not an idea.”
-
-“I scouted around a bit,” said Herman. “No sign of a road or other
-houses.”
-
-Sam nodded. “My notion,” he said, “is that we’ve tumbled on some
-way-out, back-of-nowhere abandoned farm. It’s been abandoned so many
-years that the brush has sprung up all about it. Somehow I don’t
-believe it’s near any village. And now that we’re here--well, Safety
-First, you know.”
-
-“That’s right!” chimed in the Trojan.
-
-“We’ll be safe enough,” Sam went on. “We’ll lay in plenty of wood, and
-keep the fire going--and that’s about all we can do.”
-
-Poke laid a hand on his stomach. “That’s well enough,” said he. “Only
-do I hear anybody suggest dinner or supper? If it’s just the same, I’d
-like to have ’em both right now.”
-
-The Shark pulled out a big camp doughnut. “The cook gave me this, bless
-him!” he remarked.
-
-“I ate mine, worse luck!” sighed Herman.
-
-“And I also,” groaned Poke. “It went ages ago.”
-
-“Same here!” declared the Trojan.
-
-Both Sam and Orkney, it proved, had been provident. Each produced a
-doughnut.
-
-“Share and share alike,” Sam ruled. There was some demur from Poke, but
-the division was made. In a few moments the last crumb had vanished.
-
-“My! but that’s just an appetizer!” sighed Poke.
-
-It occurred to Sam that diversion was needed. “You firemen, rustle in
-more wood--a lot of it!” he directed. “Orkney, it looks as if there
-were a back room. Let’s explore!”
-
-The “back room” proved to be a shed-like extension, in worse condition
-than the house itself. It yielded, however, a number of mildewed sacks,
-a wooden bucket, and a battered iron pot, in which, hung from a crane
-in the fireplace, snow could be melted.
-
-Herman, Step and the Trojan brought in huge armloads of wood. They
-declared that it would be needed; that the temperature was falling, and
-that the night would be Arctic.
-
-“Whoof! but it’s awful outside!” Herman avowed. “Bet it’ll hit thirty
-below!”
-
-This, as the boys knew, was by no means improbable. In Plainville
-thermometers now and then showed such readings in cold snaps, while
-even lower marks had been recorded in the hills.
-
-Sam built up the fire with generous hand. Its light as well as warmth
-was welcome, for the early dusk was closing in. The boys ranged
-themselves before the hearth. Coats were stripped off; shoes were
-removed, and toes were toasted comfortably. After all, the adventurers
-could count themselves lucky. If they had doubts on the point, they had
-but to listen to the shriek of the wind and the crackling sound of the
-snow driving against the windows.
-
-There was little talk. Now and then one or two of the party uneasily
-shifted position, but the others seemed to be content to sit quietly,
-gazing thoughtfully at the fire. The Shark especially was absorbed in
-reflections.
-
-Step, his right hand neighbor and one of the more nervous of the
-brotherhood, wriggled his long legs, stretched his arms, turned, and
-peered at the impassive Shark.
-
-“Oh, I say!” he broke out impatiently. “What’s the use of being a
-graven image? Come to life, Shark!”
-
-Very deliberately the youth addressed gave his attention to Step.
-
-“Huh! I’m very much alive,” he remarked calmly. “I’m doing something
-with such brains as I happen to have.”
-
-“How? What?”
-
-“I’m thinking.”
-
-“How we’ll get out of this fix?”
-
-The Shark frowned. “That would be wasted effort. There’s nothing we can
-do till the storm ends. Meanwhile, I entertain myself sensibly.”
-
-“But how?” Step insisted curiously.
-
-An instant the Shark hesitated. “I--I don’t know that you’d be
-interested.”
-
-“Hang it! I’d be interested in anything.”
-
-“Very well, then,” said the Shark. “Visualize a cube!”
-
-Up went Step’s hands. “Don’t shoot! I’ll come down. Also I’ll bite.”
-
-“What do you mean?”
-
-“It’s a catch, isn’t it? Go ahead! Spring your joke!”
-
-The Shark looked disgusted. “Joke nothing! See here, Step! You know
-what a cube is, don’t you? Well, visualizing one means just picturing
-it in your mind. Remember the formula, don’t you, for A + B, cubed?
-It’s A cubed + 3A squared, B + 3AB squared + B cubed. Now, take numbers
-instead of letters--take easy numbers. Call A + B fifteen.”
-
-“Er--er--all right. It’s fifteen. I don’t object.”
-
-“Likewise, we’ll call A ten and B five. Therefore the block
-representing the cube of A + B will be made up of a cube of A--say,
-we’ll call the units inches----”
-
-“I’m willing.”
-
-“Then the cube of A,” the Shark went on, “will be a rectangular block,
-ten inches in each direction. On three of its faces we place what I may
-term flat blocks, each ten inches square and five inches thick--they’re
-the A squared B fellows. Then come what we’ll describe as the long
-blocks, five inches two ways and ten inches the other. Finally, there’s
-the cube of B, a block five inches high, five inches wide, five inches
-thick. Putting these together, and picturing each clearly in mind----”
-
-Step’s long arm shot out. His hand fell on the Shark’s shoulder.
-
-“You villain! You traitor! Doing stunts like that--in vacation! You
-ought to be----”
-
-But the Shark didn’t wait to hear the punishment he deserved. He shook
-off Step’s hand. He glared at the critic.
-
-“Course I’m not fooling with any kindergarten fifteen!” he cried hotly.
-“Just mentioned that to try to get down to your understanding. But I
-have been working ninety-seven, and I tell you----”
-
-But what the Shark had to tell was to remain his secret. From without
-the house came sounds, clearly to be distinguished from the tumult of
-the gale.
-
-Blows were falling upon the door. The boys sprang to their feet, but
-before they could respond to the summons the door was thrust back, and
-into the room reeled a man, covered with snow from head to foot. After
-him hobbled a second man, like the first plainly in sore straits from
-his battle with the blizzard, but holding fast to the end of a rope,
-which was passed about the leader’s body and knotted securely below his
-shoulder blades.
-
-From the club rose a shout, which mingled wonder and welcome. For the
-man who held the rope was Lon Gates, and the man he drove before him
-was Peter Groche.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVII PETER’S GRUDGE
-
-
-Groche, stumbling forward, pitched in a heap on the floor. Lon,
-staggering to the wall, clung to it for support.
-
-“You--you fellows--here--all of you!” he gasped.
-
-“All of us--safe and sound,” cried Sam, and tried to lead him toward
-the fire. Lon resisted.
-
-“No, no! Take--take it easy. I--I’m better off here for a while.
-But--but what you doin’--doin’----” his voice trailed weakly.
-
-In a dozen sentences Sam told him. Lon’s eyes opened wide.
-
-“Wal, wal! And the storm catched you! And such a whopper of a howler of
-a storm, gee whillikens!”
-
-“We know about it. But where did you come from?”
-
-Lon pulled off his cap, and bending down, scooped up a handful of snow
-from the drift under the window.
-
-“Wait a minute--fust aid treatment fust!” said he; and began to rub his
-face and ears. “No; lemme be! You--you can’t help me. I’m like--like an
-old cat--got to lick my own scratches.”
-
-Perforce Sam desisted. Lon, working deliberately and carefully, winced
-now and then.
-
-“Got through the hide in places,” he admitted. “This ain’t no night for
-a polar bear to be out. Wow! but that wind did sting and cut!”
-
-Sam laid finger on a clean gash in Lon’s coat. “Wind didn’t do that,
-did it?”
-
-“No,” said Lon; but he limped to Groche and studied the prostrate
-figure for a moment before he went on:
-
-“No; knife done it--’twas his only good jab at me.”
-
-Lon drew a little nearer the fire, but kept a wary eye on Groche. His
-voice was gaining strength, though he still spoke huskily.
-
-“Wal, three of us started from the camp, you know. Stub picked up the
-trail. It led north. That meant the critter was steerin’ for the
-Canady line. But the storm turned him back--that’s how I got him.”
-
-“You alone?” asked Sam eagerly.
-
-“I’m comin’ to that. One time it seemed ’sif the blow was goin’ to
-spoil our chances, for it drifted the trail over; but it headed
-Groche off, too. He knew he couldn’t buck a blizzard. So, finally, he
-give up and made a ’bout face. We three’d separated--spread out, you
-know--lookin’ for his tracks. So there wa’n’t nobody with me when,
-all of a sudden, I clumb over a little rise, and there was Mr. Peter
-leggin’ it before the wind for all he was wuth. And I was right atop of
-him, ’most. And then I got this.” And Lon touched the cut in his coat.
-
-“But you had a pistol, hadn’t you?”
-
-Lon’s smile was grim. “Kane had seen that I was heeled proper, but I’d
-sot my heart on roundin’ up my man without makin’ a sieve of him. Why,
-I’d even took a rope along to hog-tie him. So I didn’t shoot. I jest
-clubbed the revolver and patted him over the head with it till the butt
-broke off. By that time, though, he was ready to quit.”
-
-“Great Scott, but what a fight it must have been!”
-
-“Wal, ’twas quite some. What with him tryin’ to carve me up, and me
-doin’ a bass drum solo on his head--oh, wal, you can figger out as well
-as I can what happened. I was too busy to be takin’ picters. But I’ll
-say this for him: he fit like a wildcat.”
-
-“How about your end of it?”
-
-Lon shook his head. “Sam, I’m a man o’ peace. And I got enough of the
-other thing to-day to last me till I’m ninety-eight and come into my
-second wind. But that’s all I know about the scrap.”
-
-For a space nobody spoke. Every one of the boys was picturing for
-himself that desperate grapple of two strong men, struggling for
-mastery in the midst of the raging storm.
-
-“But afterward--after you’d downed him--what happened?” queried Sam at
-last.
-
-“Mighty little--for a while. I was hopin’ the lumberjacks, missin’ me,
-would scout back and pick us up, but they didn’t come. Reckon they
-were havin’ troubles o’ their own. Finally, seein’ as how keepin’
-still meant freezin’, I tried to work toward the camp. But bless you,
-boys! it wa’n’t no use; I couldn’t find my own tracks. And I’d got all
-tangled on direction. So I reasoned with Groche for a spell--he knows
-them woods better’n he knows any book. I roped him the way he’s fixed
-now, and told him, ‘Giddap! Le’s go somewhere.’”
-
-“And then----?” Sam urged.
-
-“Yes; tell us!” chimed in two or three of the others.
-
-Thus encouraged, Lon told his story, and a strange story it was of
-captive forced to guide captor; of slow and painful plodding through
-growing drifts; of halts in the lee of wood or hill, while the storm
-increased, and the wind blew more fiercely, and the cold deepened.
-After a time he felt sure that Groche, while avoiding the camp, had
-some other refuge in mind.
-
-“He’s brute enough,” Lon explained, “to have the brute’s instinct for
-makin’ for a burrow. So I give him his head, and let him go it.”
-
-How long they toiled on, or how many miles they covered, Lon had no
-notion. The feeble light of afternoon faded into the gloom of night.
-Yet Groche seemed to be sure of his course. Lon even fancied that there
-was a slight increase in the pace. And then, of a sudden, he saw the
-flicker of the fire through a window of the old house.
-
-“Then you’ve no more idea than we where we are?” said Sam.
-
-“No more idea than----” Lon began, but broke off abruptly, as his
-glance, ranging the room, fell upon something which caught his
-attention. He stepped close to one of the walls, peered at it sharply,
-and gave an odd laugh.
-
-“Wal, I’ll be jiggered! Who’d ’a’ thought it? Lookee here, boys! Stone
-work part way up, then wood! Say, but it beats cat fightin’!”
-
-“What do you mean?”
-
-Lon turned to the group by the fire. He was grinning in spite of his
-weariness.
-
-“I mean this is the house old Calleck built up in the woods, the house
-where old Wallowby fit the bear. So that’s proof of the story--see?”
-
-“Proof!” cried the Shark skeptically.
-
-“Why not? Said there was such a house, didn’t I? Sure I did, and now I
-go and produce it. Rest follows as a matter of course.”
-
-“Rats!” snapped the Shark in disgust.
-
-“Rats nothing!” jeered Step. “All you’ve got to do, Shark, is to--to
-visualize it--yes, that’s the scheme. Take a dose of your own medicine
-for keeping the brain clear, can’t you?”
-
-“Bosh!” growled the Shark; and in high dudgeon turned his back on
-the company. It happened that, as a result of the movement, he faced
-Groche, upon whom unwittingly he trained his gaze, while he meditated
-darkly upon the extreme unreason of his clubmates.
-
-Groche had been lying like a log on the floor, but now he stirred
-restlessly. He raised himself on an elbow. For a moment he tried, as he
-had tried once before, to stare down the unblinking Shark; and failed
-as completely as he had failed on the former occasion. He struggled to
-a sitting position. He raised an arm, as if to ward off the hypnotic
-influence of the steady eyes behind the big glasses. And he broke into
-speech, incoherent, savage, and terror-stricken.
-
-Lon limped forward, but Sam was before him, catching Groche’s arm. At
-this the ruffian turned upon him.
-
-“You--you, I’ll get ye, if I hang for it!” he shouted. “You’re at the
-bottom of it all! You lied about me, and you set that old bloodhound,
-Bates, on me!”
-
-“But you’re mistaken; I didn’t,” Sam said earnestly.
-
-“You done it, you done it!”
-
-Sam glanced at Lon. “I guess you reasoned out the truth of it,” said he.
-
-Groche swore viciously, tried to rise; groaned, and sank back to the
-floor.
-
-“You lied about me, and threw that job o’ yourn on me!” he snarled.
-“I’ll get even with ye, I’ll get even with ye yet, if I die for’t!”
-
-Lon wagged his head sagaciously. “Jesso, Sam, jesso! Them’s the
-undoubted sentiments o’ Peter Groche, Esq. Once--twice, comin’ along,
-I tried to talk with him, but all I could make out was that he’d got
-it in for you for keeps. And as for the why of it--wal, I dunno’s
-you’re ready to have that talked over in open meetin’.” And Lon winked
-meaningly.
-
-“Oh!” Because Sam understood, his tone was startled. “Oh! That?”
-
-“Exactly! The beginnin’ o’ the trouble,” said Lon, and winked again.
-
-“The be--the beginning----” Sam repeated doubtfully.
-
-Perhaps Lon felt himself justified in dwelling on his own shrewdness.
-
-“Fact is, Sam,” said he, “you’re kind o’ bothered, because you’re still
-half calculatin’ on what a reasonable bein’ would ’a’ done. But Groche,
-as I’ve told you, ain’t reasonable--not our kind o’ reasonable. Jest
-bear that in mind. Allow that he got it into his crooked brain that he
-hated you--hatin’s his long suit, I reckon. Now, you’re thinkin’--bein’
-what you are, you can’t help thinkin’ it--that when nothin’ much
-happened to Peter, and they let him go, he ought to have realized
-he’d been mistaken, somehow, in draggin’ you in. But that ain’t Peter
-Groche’s method. He’d got you in his bad books, and there you stayed.
-It’s all plain as print to me, son. It’s one idee at a time for Peter,
-and he ain’t the sort o’ feller to go seekin’ further light, or askin’
-the questions a decent man would ask. What if he was let out? He’s
-been put in, and that was all he thought about. So he ’tended to all
-the sculduggery about our place--which was bad enough. But he hated a
-mite too hard, and went a mile too far, when he played firebug; and now
-we’ve got him for something that’ll spell state’s prison for him. And
-that’s why I was so dead sot on bringin’ him in alive.”
-
-“I see,” said Sam gravely.
-
-Now, to this conversation there had been a group of eager, if
-puzzled, listeners. Save for Groche’s reference to Major Bates as a
-“bloodhound,” and the discussion of his brief confinement, no clue to
-the mystery had been given to the boys; and these matters carried a
-suggestion so unexpected and so surprising that none of them readily
-grasped it. When Sam said, “I see,” two or three of the others moved
-uneasily.
-
-“Jiminy! I don’t!” cried Poke explosively. “I don’t want to seem prying
-or inquisitive, but you’ve got me guessing. It’s worse than Greek; for
-that I can dig out, if I have to. But there’s no vocabulary to help
-here.”
-
-Sam’s glance went from one to another of his friends. He read in the
-face of each something very like the thought Poke had put into words.
-He drew a long breath.
-
-“Fellows! I’ll tell you. I meant to keep it a secret, but I guess
-you’re entitled to know. What Lon referred to as the beginning of the
-trouble was--well, it was the--er--er--the accident to Major Bates. I
-shot at what I thought was a deer in Marlow woods, and I hit the Major!”
-
-“Whew!”
-
-“You did that, Sam!”
-
-“Shot the Major!”
-
-“Jupiter crickets, but I wouldn’t have been in your shoes for a farm!”
-
-So the club voiced its astonishment. Sam waited for the hubbub to
-subside. Then said he:
-
-“I intended to say nothing to anybody, but when Groche was
-arrested--why, there was only one square thing to do. The old Major was
-bully; so was my father. Groche was turned loose, and I supposed that
-was the end of the story. But then things began to happen--you know
-well enough what they were, and how we explained ’em.”
-
-Two or three nodded; as many more stole repentant glances at Tom Orkney.
-
-“We made a bad mistake,” Sam went on. “I won’t dwell on all the
-mistake led to; but I will say that it seems to me a clear case of one
-blunder brought about by another. If I hadn’t shot the Major, there
-wouldn’t have been any raids on our barn--and we’re certain Groche
-was the raider: so far Lon’s theory is backed by facts. I blundered
-by believing somebody else did the tricks, and that led to the third
-blunder in jumping to the conclusion that the somebody smashed the club
-window that night. Wait a minute, though!” He turned to Orkney. “You’re
-following this, aren’t you? You get the combination all right?”
-
-“Yes,” said Orkney simply.
-
-“There was a complication that night. Remember the cap of yours that
-Step threw over Mrs. Benton’s fence?”
-
-“I remember it--but I never saw it again.”
-
-“Well, we found it outside the club. What we thought about it was
-another of the mistakes. Not till a good while later did we learn that
-Mrs. Benton had put it in her rubbish can, and somebody prowling
-through the alley had carried it off.”
-
-“Groche--sure’s you’re a foot high!” commented Lon. “He’s always
-skulkin’ through the back-streets. Pinched it, didn’t you, Peter?”
-
-But Groche, though stirred by Lon’s toe to make answer, merely growled
-inarticulately.
-
-“Well, I think we can safely assume Groche did take it,” Sam continued.
-“Even at first the Shark raised a doubt----”
-
-“Doubt!” broke in the Shark. “Huh! Don’t you fellows know an absolute
-demonstration when you see one? What I proved was that that stone was
-thrown by a grown man, and a strong man, to boot!”
-
-“Well, it’s all part of the chain,” said Sam. “One thing is linked with
-the next. If I hadn’t shot the Major, Groche wouldn’t have had a grudge
-against me, you fellows wouldn’t have been mixed up in the trouble, we
-wouldn’t have had reason to make a trip to the camp, we wouldn’t be
-here storm bound. And--and”--he glanced at Orkney--“and things that
-have happened wouldn’t have happened.”
-
-A readier fellow, a more tactful fellow, might have found in Sam’s
-words something very like an overture for full reconciliation. More or
-less clearly everybody understood the situation. All eyes were upon
-Orkney, some openly, some covertly; but even in the flickering light of
-the fire Tom’s face bore a curiously set and stolid expression.
-
-Poke relieved the tension.
-
-“Ha, ha!” he laughed. “Jiminy! but I can’t get over it, Sam! Think of
-you going out and potting Major Bates, of all men! And then think of
-you keeping it a secret from the crowd! That’s funnier yet. But the
-funniest thing of all is that we didn’t dope it out. Why, there hasn’t
-been one of us that didn’t feel you were acting as if you had something
-on your mind. Yet with all the Shark’s calculations and with all my
-good common sense, we were as unsuspecting as babes in the woods!”
-
-“Common sense! Poke’s common sense!” roared Step. “Say, that’s the
-richest joke sprung in a hundred years!”
-
-Peter Groche, aroused by the shout which met this sally, lifted his
-head. He stared evilly at Sam, and his features were contorted as
-grotesquely as a gargoyle’s.
-
-“He tried to plant the job on me, I tell ye!” he growled hoarsely.
-“Boy, I’ll get ye for that--I’ll get ye if I swing for’t!”
-
-“Wal, I guess you’ll have to wait and do a little time fust in a cell,”
-quoth Lon.
-
-Peter Groche made no reply. His head had sunk to the floor.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVIII SAM MAKES CHOICE
-
-
-The long night had dragged to an end. A pale glimmer at the windows
-told of the coming of a clouded dawn, while outside the old house the
-storm raged in unabated violence.
-
-Sam, awakening from a doze, replenished the fire. The other boys were
-still sleeping, each in the posture which, to his notion, minimized
-the hardship of a bed of rough planks. The Shark was rolled up like
-a ball; Step lay flat on his back, his long arms and legs sprawling;
-the Trojan had pillowed his head on Herman Boyd’s shoulder; Poke, his
-forehead resting on his arm, was breathing very regularly and audibly;
-Tom Orkney, a little apart from the others, was stirring restlessly.
-
-Lon was sitting beside Peter Groche, for whom the remnants of the old
-carpet and the bags from the shed served as a mattress. Peter was
-either ill or shamming artfully. Lon and the boys had had a hard time
-with him during the night; for though at intervals he lay in what
-seemed to be a stupor, these had been separated by quarter-hours and
-half-hours in which he writhed and struggled and cried out deliriously.
-They had done the little they could for him; and Lon had remained on
-duty as combined guard and nurse.
-
-Sam dropped beside his ally.
-
-“Well, how is he?” he whispered.
-
-“Dunno,” Lon answered dubiously. “If he was anybody else, I’d call him
-a mighty sick man. Bein’ Peter Groche, mebbe he’s soldierin’. He’d be
-powerful glad to get away--don’t lose sight o’ that.”
-
-Sam bent over the suspect. Groche’s face was flushed; his breathing was
-labored.
-
-“Certainly he’s feverish, Lon. And he couldn’t feign that, could he?”
-
-“Umph! I ain’t no doctor.”
-
-“Wish you were!”
-
-“So do I,” said Lon. “As ’tis, I dunno--the pair of us went through
-enough to send some folks to hospital, what with that rassle and then
-the tramp through the drifts. And I did hammer him up--had to, or
-he’d ’a’ done for me. Clear case o’ survival of the fittest--feller
-that fit hardest, you know. And I ain’t in what you’d call the pink
-o’ condition myself. Sam, I’m as stiff as a bunch o’ ramrods, and I
-ain’t got a j’int that feels as if it had been greased in a coon’s age.
-That’s one trouble--I don’t dare take chances with him. If he got two
-jumps’ lead, I’d never catch him. And for all his takin’s on, and his
-wild yellin’, and them fever signs--wal, jest remember he’s as tough as
-an oak knot and as crafty as a fox. And he’s got the biggest kind o’
-cause to bolt, if he can. Arson’s a state prison job, sonny.”
-
-“So I suppose. Only”--Sam hesitated--“only that wouldn’t be ground for
-failing to call a doctor or--or carrying him to one.”
-
-Lon listened for a moment to the shriek of the gale.
-
-“You’re right enough, Sam,” he admitted. “But he can’t be took out--not
-in a blizzard like this, ’specially as we don’t know where to take him.
-And as for tryin’ to go for a doctor--wal, it’d be risky, mighty risky.
-I ain’t in shape, but I wouldn’t dare leave that wildcat with you boys,
-anyhow. And as for sendin’ any of you, that’d be a big risk, too.
-’Tain’t ’sif we knew where we were, you know; and I’d hate to take
-chances o’ losin’ worth-while youngsters for the sake o’ that critter.”
-
-“But can’t anything be done?”
-
-“We can wait for the storm to blow itself out.”
-
-“But how long will that be?”
-
-“Dunno. The big blizzard of ’88 done business for three days.”
-
-Sam rose. He tiptoed to the door, and peered through a yawning crack
-beside it. Then he came back to Lon.
-
-“I can’t see much change, except that the clouds are not quite so low
-or so heavy. And it’s colder than ever.”
-
-“Like enough! Nor’easter shiftin’ to nor’wester.”
-
-Sam took thought, and while he deliberated, Step awoke, sat up, yawned
-loudly. Poke followed suit, and in a moment more Herman Boyd and the
-Trojan were rubbing their eyes. Then the Shark uncoiled himself. Last
-of all Orkney shook off his slumbers.
-
-Sam turned again to Lon.
-
-“Look here!” he said in a low tone. “We can’t stay here three days.”
-
-“Probably we won’t have to.”
-
-“That’s too uncertain. We’ll have to do something. We haven’t a crumb
-of food, and we’re half starved.”
-
-Lon nodded sympathetically. “I know, I know! If I had a hedgehog here,
-right now, I’d eat him raw, quills and all.”
-
-Again Sam studied the flushed face of Peter Groche.
-
-“Lon, there _is_ something to do!” he said. “We’ve got to do it. We’ve
-got to send out an expedition for help.”
-
-“But, Sam, I tell you I ain’t fit, and----”
-
-“You’re to stay here, and watch Groche.”
-
-“But who’ll go?”
-
-“Two of the crowd.”
-
-“Countin’ yourself one of ’em?”
-
-“Certainly! And I’ll pick the other.”
-
-With an effort Lon got upon his feet. He limped across the room and
-back again.
-
-“No use, Sam!” he groaned. “I’d stall worse’n a balkin’ mule in the
-fust forty yards. No; you’ll have to give up the notion.”
-
-“But my notion is that you’re to stay here, and watch Groche.”
-
-“All right--but you’ll stay, too. I’d be plumb crazy to let you go.
-’Tain’t ’sif we had the lay o’ the land. If we had, ’twouldn’t be so
-much like startin’ from nowhere for nowhere, in a blizzard, and with
-the thermometer ’way below zero.”
-
-“But we do know where we’ll start from--that is, we have a general
-idea.”
-
-“Eh?”
-
-“Wait a minute!” said Sam. “This is Calleck’s house, isn’t it?”
-
-“Ain’t any doubt o’ that, but----”
-
-“But Calleck’s house stands near the South Fork. Don’t you remember
-what the lumberman said? Don’t you know he told us Calleck started to
-build with stone, but finished the house any way he could? And doesn’t
-that description fit this place?”
-
-“It sure does. This is Calleck’s cabin, fast enough. Still----”
-
-Again Sam interrupted: “You know--in a general way, as I say--how the
-South Fork runs?”
-
-“Y-e-s,” Lon admitted reluctantly. “Empties into Blake’s River right at
-Coreytown.”
-
-“Exactly! And the lumberjack said the house was about ten miles from
-the camp. Now, I’ve been trying to figure out the map, as the Shark
-would figure it, and I don’t believe we’re three miles from the
-village.”
-
-The Shark had caught the mention of his name; also he had grasped the
-problem presented.
-
-“Three miles?” he repeated. “Huh! good enough--as a guess. Of course, I
-don’t call that figuring. If you’ll give me the true distances----”
-
-“Never mind, Shark!” said Sam promptly. “We’ll waive decimals and let
-it go at three miles, more or less. Then all we’ll have to do will be
-to find the South Fork, and follow the valley down-stream. And there’s
-a doctor at Coreytown, I’m sure; and the people won’t have to be asked
-twice to help us out.”
-
-Lon rubbed his chin. “Umph! There is a grain o’ sense in the scheme.
-Say, though, Sam! Where’s that Safety First idea you uster have on your
-mind?”
-
-“It’s there now--Safety First for the whole crowd!”
-
-Lon glanced at Groche. The light was strengthening, and the alarming
-appearance of the man’s face was undeniable. A very sick man was Peter
-Groche, at least to the eye of a layman.
-
-“Jiminy, but something’s got to be tried!” Lon confessed. “And
-followin’ the South Fork would be different from stragglin’ aimless. I
-dunno, I dunno!”
-
-Sam pressed his advantage. “I do know, then. And Lon! The quicker I
-start, the better.”
-
-“I reckon that’s true,” said Lon slowly. “Yes; if you’re dead sot to
-go, there’s no good in lingerin’. And you’re as husky as any of the
-boys. But who’ll you be takin’ with you?”
-
-As one the club stepped forward, and volunteered.
-
-“Choose me, Sam!”
-
-“No; I’m the one!”
-
-“Here, I’m your man!”
-
-“Say! I’ve got a right to go!”
-
-“Cut it out! He wants me, I tell you!”
-
-They rained their appeals upon him, the Shark last but not the least
-earnest:
-
-“Take me, and I’ll figure out anything you want. I don’t care if the
-thing’s all guesses and unknown quantities!”
-
-But Sam met the eager glances of none of his friends. His eyes were on
-Orkney, standing aloof and gravely observant.
-
-There was a tense pause. Then said Sam, very quietly, yet with a ring
-in his voice:
-
-“Sorry I can’t say yes to everybody. But--but whenever you’re ready,
-Orkney, we’ll make the plunge.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIX SQUARING THE ACCOUNT
-
-
-Imagine a winding valley, sparsely wooded, deeply banked with snow; a
-valley through which the gale sweeps with unchecked fury, whipping the
-bare limbs of the trees, catching up the crest of one shifting drift
-and sending it, a swirling mass of white, to build up another snowy
-ridge, in its turn to be leveled by the caprice of the storm; a valley
-bare of habitations, as lonely and deserted, apparently, as if it were
-buried in the depths of a great forest. Such was the course along which
-Sam and Tom Orkney fought their way. The cold was intense. The wind
-cut like a knife. Its force was so great that, when the windings of
-the valley forced them to face it, they could make progress but at a
-snail’s pace.
-
-By Sam’s reckoning they had made about a mile of their journey. How
-long a time it had taken he did not know--an hour certainly, perhaps
-much more. There had been frequent halts, both for consultation and
-rest; for here and there thickets were obstacles to the advance, while
-both boys felt the weakening effect of their fast. They were not
-acutely hungry, but each was aware of a dully persistent sense of a
-void beneath his belt.
-
-Studying the storm, however, Sam had caught a gleam of encouragement.
-Surely the clouds were riding higher, and were showing signs of
-breaking. The wind was not increasing. It was unlike the rising and
-falling squalls of the day before; for it was now a steady, hard blow.
-This change, along with the drop in temperature, convinced him that Lon
-had been right in assuming that the gale had hauled into the northwest,
-with a promise of clearing, if not warmer, weather. Though the air was
-full of flakes, caught up by the wind, the snowfall had almost ceased.
-
-Sam put his mouth close to Orkney’s ear.
-
-“Guess it’s blowing itself out!” he shouted.
-
-Orkney nodded. “My notion, too. But it won’t quit for a while yet.”
-
-“Sure! Nothing for us but to plug ahead.”
-
-And they “plugged.” The slang fitted the case. Orkney’s foot caught
-on a hidden root, and he pitched forward on hands and knees. The snow
-yielded under his weight; an unsuspected bank revealed itself; and Tom,
-the center of a small avalanche, slid a dozen yards toward the frozen
-surface of the South Fork.
-
-Sam, hurrying after him, helped him to regain his feet. “Thanks!” said
-Orkney, and shook himself like a Newfoundland emerging from a swim.
-
-In five minutes he had his chance to reciprocate. Sam caught a bad fall
-over a boulder, barely hidden by a drift.
-
-“Glory! That shook me up!” Sam confessed. “’Twouldn’t be a good thing
-for a fellow to be out here alone and get hurt, eh?”
-
-“No,” said Orkney.
-
-“But, pulling together, we’ll pull through!” cried Sam, and clapped him
-on the shoulder.
-
-They went on, but only to share a mishap. The snow had bridged a brook
-running down to the Fork; and the arch caved under them. Down they went
-to their armpits in the snow. They scrambled out of the hole uninjured
-but breathless.
-
-“We--we’ll look out for those places,” Sam panted; but in spite
-of their watchfulness he soon was caught in a worse trap. Another
-gully--and deeper--lay beneath a smooth surface. Sam, being slightly
-in the lead, vanished almost at the feet of the astonished Orkney, who
-dropped to his knees, groped in what was like a white whirlpool, and
-was lucky enough to lay hold of Sam’s collar. Then, by dint of much
-tugging and hauling, aided from below by the victim of the accident, he
-at last succeeded in rescuing his companion from the depths.
-
-This time both boys were glad to lie on the drift for a time, while
-they were regaining wind and strength. Sam was the first to speak.
-
-“Good turn you did me then. Regular cavern down there. Rather think
-there was water at the bottom of it.”
-
-“Might be,” said Orkney. “Maybe rapids in the brook--they don’t freeze
-up often.”
-
-Sam gave his companion a friendly dig in the ribs.
-
-“Guess that came near evening up a little thing I did for you
-once--that pond business.”
-
-“Nonsense!” said Orkney gruffly. “Come on! Let’s move!”
-
-He got upon his feet, and Sam followed the example.
-
-“Right! Mustn’t let ’em get tired waiting back at Calleck’s old house.
-Wonder what they’re doing now.”
-
-“Envying me the chance you gave me!” said Orkney sharply; and plowed
-ahead without waiting for a reply.
-
-Sam trudged after him. No doubt Orkney had spoken no more than the
-truth. The members of the club, tarrying with Lon and Peter Groche,
-would envy the adventurers. Some of them, Sam feared, might find it
-hard to forgive the preference he had shown Orkney; but he did not
-repent his choice. Physically, neither Poke nor the Shark was fit
-for such a forced march; Step was not a powerful fellow; Herman Boyd
-and the Trojan were sturdy chaps, with plenty of grit, but somewhat
-dependent upon good leadership. Orkney, on the other hand, not only
-had dogged resolution and persistence, but also worked well in “double
-harness,” as Sam phrased it. He was as far from yielding too much
-as from claiming too much. Though he might lack certain agreeable
-qualities, he was showing sound mettle under strain.
-
-If Sam did not regret his selection of a companion, still less did he
-question the venture they were making. As he reasoned out the plight of
-the party, there was more than the condition of Peter Groche to warrant
-the expedition. As things were, two or three days might pass before
-anybody realized that the club had gone astray in the woods. Mr. Kane
-would suppose the boys had followed the tote road to Coreytown, and had
-reached the village; while the people there had had no warning that the
-party was on the way, and so would have no cause to send out searchers
-for the wanderers.
-
-“Clear case of having to help ourselves,” Sam reflected; and pressed on
-determinedly.
-
-But it was slow work, exhausting and taking toll of brain as well as
-muscle. Sam was no longer reckoning time or distance. Sometimes he led;
-sometimes Orkney. Often both halted, and, dropping in the snow, lay
-there till one or the other staggered to his feet, and gave a hand to
-his comrade.
-
-They still kept to the valley, but by degrees were drawing away
-from the stream and climbing the right bank on a long diagonal.
-This resulted not so much from intention as from various obstacles
-encountered along the lower slope. The higher ground seemed to be
-clearer, the drifts not so deep. Once they came to a long stretch,
-where the gale had almost swept away the snow. Here they made easier
-progress, though it was far from rapid. In spite of their exertions the
-cold had laid numbing hold upon them, and their limbs were heavy as
-lead.
-
-It had come to be a question of endurance, of tenacity as well as
-courage.
-
-Their danger was great. In their plight they had to fight a constant
-temptation to pause over-long in the partly sheltered hollows among the
-drifts. There was another temptation to close their eyes and burrow
-deeper in the snow; but always one or the other roused to the fatal
-peril of yielding. Now it was Sam, and again it was Orkney, who shook
-off the numbing spell of the storm, and dragged the other from his
-resting place in the snow.
-
-There could be no turning back. Each understood that they must push on
-at all hazards.
-
-Both Orkney and Sam had heard tales of lives lost in the great blizzard
-of 1888, and other tales of men perishing in storms by no means so
-furious or prolonged as that famous tempest. Hardly a winter passed
-without claiming its victims even in the thickly settled region about
-Plainville; and though these unfortunates for the most part were thinly
-clad, poorly nourished tramps or human derelicts, there were not
-lacking instances of able-bodied men losing their way and succumbing to
-exposure. And here was a storm, not quite equaling the great blizzard,
-perhaps, yet accompanied by quite as bitter cold.
-
-So, at least, the boys were misled by no false estimate of their
-desperate straits. Dulled though their senses might be, they did not
-lose grasp of the truth that they must struggle on and on, so long as
-strength remained to put one foot before the other.
-
-Yet, though they but vaguely perceived it, a slight change for the
-better was taking place in the weather.
-
-Overhead there were rifts in the clouds. To the northwest a patch of
-pale blue sky showed for a moment; was lost; reappeared, and grew in
-size. But the gale still blew strongly, if not with quite its earlier
-savage fury; and there was no rise in temperature.
-
-They toiled on doggedly. Still veering slightly to the right, they came
-closer and closer to the summit of the ridge. Finally they gained it.
-Beyond was a broader valley.
-
-Sam clutched Orkney’s arm.
-
-“Look!” he gasped. “Yonder--a house! See it? Not a mile away!”
-
-“There’s another--nearer--lower down!” cried Tom.
-
-Sam gazed hungrily in the direction in which the other pointed.
-
-“I see it! We can make it! Hur-hurrah!”
-
-“Hur-hurrah!” echoed Orkney; but he caught at Sam’s arm, as Sam had
-caught at his. For a moment they clung to each other, swaying with
-weakness, dazed a little, it may be, by the sudden brightening of their
-hopes.
-
-“Let--let’s rest a bit,” said Sam unsteadily. “Then--then we’ll go
-ahead. Noth-nothing can stop us now!”
-
-“Not when we can see smoke whipping from that chimney!”
-
-“Sure! Smoke means fire--and people--and everything!”
-
-“And almost within arm’s reach!”
-
-In fact, the house with the smoking chimney was a weary distance from
-them; but unexpected help was nearer at hand. For, while they still
-stood gazing into the broad valley, a curious procession emerged from a
-clump of woods at the bottom of the hill. It was a long line of yoked
-oxen, pair following pair through the snow, while about them floundered
-shouting men, urging them on with whip and goad.
-
-Sam’s voice rose in an exultant cry. “See that! Whole neighborhood
-turned out to break roads! Come on, Tom; come on!”
-
-But Orkney, clutching his arm the tighter, held him back.
-
-“Wait a minute! I’ve got to tell you something. I want to tell it
-now--while we’re alone.”
-
-“Oh! another time----”
-
-“There’ll be no other time as good,” Tom insisted. “Look here, Parker!
-I’ve never hit it off with you, with your crowd. We’ve jarred each
-other. You didn’t like me; I didn’t like you. But now I’ve seen your
-bunch in trouble, and I’ve seen how you stick together through thick
-and thin. And your fellows have been fair to me.... I’ve never had a
-crowd like that. I didn’t believe there could be such a crowd.... No;
-don’t try to pull away! You’ve got to hear me! I started back with
-you, because that seemed to be the sensible thing to do. I expected
-the fellows would roast me, snub me, rub it in that I’d been a fool
-to bolt. I meant to stand it and say nothing; but back in Plainville
-I’d get even, fast enough.... Well, if I kept quiet, I saw things. It
-just forced itself on me, after a while, that maybe I hadn’t got along
-with you because I didn’t know how to get along with anybody.... I
-heard what you said about your mistakes and the crowd’s mistakes, and I
-understood. Bother all that, though! I know I’ve made enough mistakes
-of my own.... Hold on! There’s one thing more, and it’s the biggest
-thing of all--to me. Every one of your fellows wanted to come with you
-on this trip, but you chose me. It was the biggest thing you could
-have done for me. It squared the account--and more.... And that’s all
-I’ve got to tell you, except that the slate’s clean, so far as I am
-concerned; and that I won’t worry you or your crowd. I’m going back to
-Plainville, and I’m going to take my medicine. And I reckon you won’t
-hear me whine.”
-
-Sam, genuinely embarrassed yet honestly pleased and relieved, tried to
-escape the restraining hand.
-
-“You--you bet I won’t, Tom!” he said awkwardly but kindly. “No danger
-of that! You’ve proved the stuff that’s in you--the gang knows it as
-well as I do. And--and after this day--I don’t believe you’ll find
-things in Plainville so hard, after all.”
-
-Then he freed himself, and started down the hill. The men in the road
-caught sight of the figures on the ridge, and raised a welcoming hail.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXX IN FULL SETTLEMENT
-
-
-Plainville was on the last day of the nine traditionally allotted to
-discussion of affairs of high interest or importance.
-
-The town had been stirred by the story of the adventures of Sam and
-his friends, and the boys, a good deal to their surprise, had found
-themselves treated like heroes. Plainville had had a taste of the big
-storm--huge drifts still rose in many places--and was ready to give
-full credit for plucky endurance of the hardships, both of the club’s
-wanderings to the old Calleck house and of the forced march of Sam and
-Orkney to the settlements; while the dash of a rescue party to the
-stone house and its return with the other members of the club, and Lon
-and the stricken Peter Groche, formed another chapter which caught the
-public fancy.
-
-Groche was still in Coreytown, under treatment by doctors and guard
-by officers. The event proved that he had not been shamming that night
-when Lon watched him with suspicious eye. A very sick man, indeed, was
-Peter for a few days; but now tidings had come that, thanks to a rugged
-frame and a vigorous constitution, he was beginning to rally, with
-every prospect that, presently, he would be well enough to stand trial
-on the very grave charge of arson. Some doubt was expressed, to be
-sure, of his mental condition; but the chances were strongly in favor
-of his retirement behind the walls either of prison or asylum. At all
-events, Plainville heartily endorsed the opinion of Major Bates, and
-counted itself well rid of its least desirable citizen.
-
-The Major, it is to be related, took keen delight in Sam’s version
-of the happenings in the woods, and learning, incidentally, that
-the secret of his wounds had become public property--at least, the
-property of the club--invited the boys to dinner, in order, as he
-explained, that he might present his side of the case. For the club it
-was an occasion of impressive state and ceremony, but the Major was
-a delightful host, quickly put them at their ease, told lively tales
-of war and peace, and finally made a speech which brought out three
-rousing cheers for Sam Parker and three times three for the orator.
-
-Tom Orkney was at the dinner. The Major invited him, along with the
-rest and quite as a matter of course. And Tom, though his manner was
-reserved, didn’t fail to enter into the spirit of the occasion.
-
-To tell the truth, his reception, in general, had been beyond his
-expectations. Had he been older and more experienced, he might better
-have understood that little heed is given to an old story when a new
-story is being told. Tom Orkney, runaway, was an old story; Tom Orkney,
-joint adventurer with the club, was a new story. Moreover, Little
-Perrine had been singing his praises, and Sam and his friends were
-losing no opportunity to proclaim his pluck and grit. So, when school
-opened after the holidays, Orkney, to his bewilderment, found himself
-enjoying a degree of favor in curious contrast to the chill reception
-for which he had nerved himself.
-
-Lon Gates still limped slightly, but otherwise appeared to be none
-the worse for his battle with Peter Groche. Lon was not boastful. He
-pretended to make a joke of his capture of the desperado; and, in
-private, confided to Sam that he felt a bit like a fellow who had been
-able to bring in a stolen horse, but hadn’t known enough to lock the
-stable door before the horse was stolen.
-
-“So I reckon I ain’t quite so much of a genooine Shylock Holmes as I
-let on to be,” he added. “Course, as the old lady said when she broke
-her false teeth on a hick’rynut but didn’t swallow ’em, things might
-be wuss, but then again they might be better. I ought to ’a’ had that
-Groche locked up for stealin’ the wrench, when I had him dead to
-rights; but I didn’t know enough. If I’d foreseen what was comin’----
-Oh, wal, if I’d been able to do that, folks’d been dragging me off to
-be President of the United States, instead o’ lettin’ me stay here to
-help your father try to keep you in order.”
-
-Mr. Parker, weather bound in No. 3 camp by the blizzard, had had
-his first intimation of the club’s peril and escape when he reached
-Coreytown on his way out. He came home to find Sam comfortably
-settled. The father listened attentively to the son’s narrative, but
-made no comment. Sam was puzzled a little by this, and not a little
-disappointed. He would have given much to know precisely his father’s
-opinion of his conduct throughout the episode.
-
-But Mr. Parker reserving judgment, Sam went about his own affairs, and
-was very busy. There was school, with study and recitations; coasting,
-sleighing and snow-shoeing filled the afternoons; then there was a club
-question, which brought him into frequent conference with the other
-members. And at last this question was decided; and it was the evening
-of the ninth day; and he was hurrying through his supper because,
-decision having been reached, the club was to meet that night in full
-session.
-
-Sam had made his excuses, and was rising from the table, when his
-father detained him.
-
-“I wish you’d give me a few minutes, Sam,” he said. “It’s something
-which may interest you. Step into the library, and I’ll join you
-presently.”
-
-Sam, at once curious and impatient, had not long to wait. Mr. Parker
-seated himself at his desk, glanced at a memorandum, turned to the boy.
-
-“Well, Sam,” he said slowly, “about time we took account of stock and
-balanced the books, isn’t it?”
-
-“I--I suppose so, sir,” his son answered uncertainly.
-
-“Let’s see! Some weeks ago we reached an understanding. There had
-been an untoward incident, due to your--er--er--well, call it your
-precipitancy. At the time it seemed wise to put you on probation. Well,
-how have you behaved?”
-
-“Why--why”--Sam stammered--“why, I--I’ve----”
-
-Mr. Parker’s glance was searching, but his lips were smiling.
-
-“To the best of my information, you’ve behaved remarkably well!” said
-he emphatically.
-
-“Oh!” It was all Sam could say.
-
-“Yes,” his father went on. “I’ve been at some pains to inquire into
-your conduct. I’ve examined and cross-examined Lon and the boys who
-were with you at the camp and afterward. By the way, two of them were
-unusually excellent witnesses.”
-
-“Yes, sir?” said Sam questioningly.
-
-Mr. Parker’s smile broadened. “One was Willy Reynolds, who----”
-
-“What! The Shark?... That’s a nickname we have for him, you know.”
-
-“Ah! The Shark?”
-
-“Yes, sir--he’s a bug on mathematics.”
-
-“A bug, therefore a Shark--I don’t quite master the sequence of ideas,
-but never mind that! Master Reynolds struck me as a quaint person, but
-instructive. He seems to seek precision of statement, and begrudge
-unnecessary words. Then there was young Orkney--very intelligent
-fellow, and a very good friend of yours, isn’t he?”
-
-“I hope so!” said Sam with sincerity.
-
-“They were the star witnesses, but all testified to the same
-effect--that you acquitted yourself creditably. Now, I don’t say that
-you displayed the wisdom of age--I’ve told you that I do not look for
-the head of sixty on the shoulders of sixteen--but you do seem to have
-combined a degree of prudence with resolution and resourcefulness in
-emergencies. All the boys say you were practically in command of the
-party. If that is true, even if you didn’t keep your friends from
-trouble, you brought them out of it. And that brings me from past to
-future. Once I told you I hesitated to let you go to St. Mark’s because
-I feared you couldn’t take care of yourself. Now what shall I say when
-I find you caring for others as well as yourself?”
-
-Sam drew in his breath sharply. “Oh! St. Mark’s! Why--why, sir, I--I
-haven’t thought of it lately.”
-
-“Well,” said his father quietly, “you are at liberty to think of it
-now.”
-
-Sam tried to utter his thanks--and failed. There was a lump in his
-throat which forbade speech.
-
-“It happens,” said Mr. Parker, “that I have had some talk recently with
-Mr. Jones and Mr. Green. Both seem to be willing to have their boys go
-to the school if you go, too; though Mr. Jones favors the change next
-September rather than at the close of this term.”
-
-Then Sam found tongue. “Hurrah! Step and Poke going, too! And
-September’ll suit me just as well. I’ll be glad to finish out the year
-here. And--and it doesn’t have to be kept a secret, does it?”
-
-“Not unless you so desire.”
-
-“Whoop!” shouted the delighted Sam, and rushed out of the library.
-Thirty seconds later he was out of the house, and running toward the
-club.
-
-All the other members were present when he burst in upon them; but
-before he could recover breath to spread his news, the Shark interposed.
-
-“Don’t you try to start anything, Sam, till we’ve ’tended to business.
-Look here!” He pulled out his watch. “Seven-twenty-eight--and the time
-set’s seven-thirty.”
-
-“Bother your watch, Shark!” cried Step. “Likely’s not it’s ’way off.”
-
-The Shark frowned upon the doubter. “This watch,” he said severely,
-“has an average gain of twenty-two seconds, plus, a month. It was set
-by a jeweler’s chronometer four days ago. If you will take the trouble
-to compute the error which has arisen since then, and subtract----”
-
-“Hold on! No rough work like that goes!” jeered Poke. “Twenty-two plus
-nothing! What’s the fraction? If we’re going to be accurate, let’s be
-accurate!”
-
-For an instant the Shark stared at Poke.
-
-“You--you talking of accuracy! Holy smoke!” he growled in disgust. “You
-couldn’t tell a vernier from a vulgar fraction!”
-
-Sam thought he saw a chance to break in.
-
-“Listen, you fellows----” he began; but this time the Trojan stopped
-him.
-
-“Put it off till the show’s over, Sam. We want this thing done right,
-you know.”
-
-“Sure! And you’ve got to make the speech, Sam!” chimed in Herman Boyd.
-
-Sam’s jaw dropped. “Speech? Oh, thunder! but I can’t!” he protested.
-
-“All the same, you’ll have to. It’s got to be put straight--the way we
-feel about it--all that.”
-
-Poke wagged his head knowingly. “It’s the proper caper,” said he, in
-his philosophical fashion. “People always make speeches when they’ve
-got to break the ice and don’t know exactly how to go about it.”
-
-Here was American common practice, if not the soundest of doctrine.
-The club was impressed.
-
-“That’s so,” said two or three together.
-
-“But----” Sam’s objection was cut short by a knock at the door.
-
-The Trojan pushed him forward. Plainly there was no escape from the
-rôle his friends were forcing upon him.
-
-Sam opened the door. Then, rising to the occasion, he caught the hand
-of a youth who stood on the step, and drew him into the room. Back of
-him the other boys formed a smiling semicircle.
-
-“Tom Orkney,” said Sam very earnestly, “you don’t know how pleased I am
-to see you here. But I want you to understand that your election was
-unanimous, and that every one of us is mighty glad to have you a member
-of the Safety First Club!”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Transcriber’s Notes:
-
-Illustrations have been moved to paragraph breaks near where they are
-mentioned, except for the frontispiece.
-
-Punctuation has been made consistent.
-
-Variations in spelling and hyphenation were retained as they appear in
-the original publication, except that obvious typographical errors have
-been corrected.
-
-The following change was made:
-
-p. 339: hand changed to land (the land. If)
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE SAFETY FIRST CLUB ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
-Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the
-Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work
-on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the
-phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project
-Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg™ License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format
-other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
-Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-provided that:
-
-• You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.”
-
-• You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
- works.
-
-• You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-• You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
-of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you “AS-IS”, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™
-
-Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™'s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/69935-0.zip b/old/69935-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 4b8a30e..0000000
--- a/old/69935-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69935-h.zip b/old/69935-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index ab2756e..0000000
--- a/old/69935-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69935-h/69935-h.htm b/old/69935-h/69935-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 9cb2993..0000000
--- a/old/69935-h/69935-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11920 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html>
-<html lang="en">
-<head>
- <meta charset="UTF-8">
- <title>
- The Safety First Club, by W. T. Nichols—A Project Gutenberg eBook
- </title>
- <style>
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2 {
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- clear: both;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
-}
-
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tb {width: 45%; margin-left: 27.5%; margin-right: 27.5%;}
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
-@media print { hr.chap {display: none; visibility: hidden;} }
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
-.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;
- padding-top: 0;}
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
-}
-
-/*Table of Contents format*/
-table.toc { max-width: 30em;}
-td.tocchapter{ text-align: right; vertical-align: top; padding-right: 1em;}
-td.toctitle { text-align: left; vertical-align: top; text-indent: -1.3em; padding-left: 1.3em;}
-td.tocpage { text-align: right; vertical-align: bottom; padding-left: 1em;}
-
-.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
- /* visibility: hidden; */
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
-} /* page numbers */
-
-/*fractions*/
-.fnum, .fden { font-size: .7em; }
-.fnum { vertical-align: text-top }
-.fden { vertical-align: text-bottom }
-
-.nowrap {
- white-space:nowrap;
- word-spacing:-0.2em;
-}
-/* end fractions */
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.caption {font-weight: bold;}
-
-/* Images */
-
-img {
- max-width: 100%;
- height: auto;
-}
-
-img.w100 {width: 100%;}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-/* Transcriber's notes */
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- padding:0.5em;
- margin-bottom:5em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
-/*CSS to set font sizes*/
-/*font sizes for non-header font changes*/
-.xxlargefont{font-size: xx-large}
-.xlargefont{font-size: x-large}
-.largefont{font-size: large}
-.smallfont{font-size: small}
-.cheaderfont{font-size:medium}
-
-/* Illustration classes */
-.illowp40 {width: 40%;}
-.illowp50 {width: 50%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp50 {width: 100%;}
-.illowp51 {width: 51%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp51 {width: 100%;}
-.illowp54 {width: 54%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp54 {width: 100%;}
-.illowp55 {width: 55%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp55 {width: 100%;}
-
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Safety First Club, by W. T. Nichols</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: The Safety First Club</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: W. T. Nichols</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Illustrator: F. A. Anderson</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: February 2, 2023 [eBook #69935]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: Demian Katz, Craig Kirkwood, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (Images courtesy of the Digital Library@Villanova University.)</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE SAFETY FIRST CLUB ***</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp50" style="max-width: 107.5em;">
- <img id="coverpage" class="w100" src="images/cover.jpg" alt="Cover.">
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp55" id="i001" style="max-width: 40.625em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i001.jpg" alt="">
- <div class="caption"><p class="center"><a href="#BRef_001">HE DESCENDED THE SLOPE</a></p></div>
-</div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h1 class="nobreak">THE<br>
-SAFETY FIRST<br>
-CLUB</h1>
-
-
-<p class="center" style="line-height:1.5">BY<br>
-<span class="xlargefont">W. T. NICHOLS</span></p>
-
-<p class="center p2">Illustrated by<br>
-<span class="smcap largefont">F. A. Anderson</span></p>
-
-<p class="center p2 xlargefont"><span style="word-spacing:0.75em">THE PENN PUBLISHING</span><br>
-<span style="word-spacing:0.25em">COMPANY PHILADELPHIA</span><br>
-1916</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="center xlargefont">COPYRIGHT<br>
-1916 BY<br>
-THE PENN<br>
-PUBLISHING<br>
-COMPANY</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp40" style="max-width: 12.5em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i003.jpg" alt="Publisher logo.">
-</div>
-
-<p class="center p2">The Safety First Club</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="center"><em>To<br>
-M. H. M.</em></p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>A youthful critic with the precious art of<br>
-combining frankness and friendliness,<br>
-this book is appreciatively dedicated</em></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[5]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">Introduction</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The Safety First idea, along with some
-other sound rules of conduct which have been
-hammered out by hard experience of the race,
-is often easier to put into words than into
-practice. Like other brakes on machines or
-men it sometimes seems to cause too much
-friction, with resulting protest, especially from
-youngsters impatient of warnings of dangers
-possible rather than presently pressing.</p>
-
-<p>The fact is, however, that these objectors
-fail to recognize the true spirit of the rule.
-Nobody expects active boys and girls to be
-wrapped in cotton wool and stored away out
-of all harm’s reach. They have their work to
-do in the world, and in doing it must take
-certain risks as the rest of us do. But there
-are unnecessary risks, just as there are other
-risks which are not to be avoided; and it is
-in shunning these unnecessary risks, in learning
-that reasonable caution is not cowardice,
-that recklessness is no proof of bravery, and<span class="pagenum">[6]</span>
-that the way to redeem a mistake is not to
-repeat it, that the rule is to be truly honored.</p>
-
-<p>In “The Safety First Club” and the volumes
-which are to follow it are set forth certain
-adventures of boys who have to deal with
-problems such as confront healthy young
-Americans, boys well intentioned but not
-wise beyond their years, fond of the open,
-restive under restraint. It is the author’s
-hope that in their haps and mishaps they
-may be found likably human.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[7]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">Contents</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<div class="center">
-<table class="toc" style="border:0em; padding:0em; border-spacing:0em">
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">I.</td><td class="toctitle">“<span class="smcap">Hedgehog Day</span>”</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_I">11</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">II.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Sam Takes Chances</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_II">23</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">III.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">The Luck of a Long Shot</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_III">34</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">IV.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">The Club Gets a New Name</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_IV">43</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">V.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Sam Faces the Music</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_V">61</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">VI.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Dealing with the Ogre</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_VI">72</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">VII.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">The Reckoning</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_VII">87</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">VIII.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Beginning the Test</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_VIII">96</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">IX.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Poke and Step Put Their Heads Together</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_IX">111</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">X.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Queer Troubles</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_X">124</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XI.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">The Club Gets a Clue</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XI">135</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XII.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Punishment Postponed</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XII">146</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XIII.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Not On the Program</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII">159</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XIV.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Sent to Coventry</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIV">173</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XV.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">The Club Endorses Itself</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XV">182</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XVI.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Sam Has a Rude Awakening</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVI">194</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XVII.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">More Surprises</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVII">202</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XVIII.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Lon Discusses Crooked Thinking</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVIII">211</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XIX.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Of Duels and Conscience</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIX">222</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XX.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Sam Makes a Speech</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XX">230</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXI.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Lon Plays Detective</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXI">239</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXII.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Tom Orkney Changes His Intention</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXII">252</a><span class="pagenum">[8]</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXIII.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Lon Gates Entertains</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIII">266</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXIV.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Peter Groche Scores Again</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIV">281</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXV.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">The Blizzard</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXV">294</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXVI.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Old Friends Meet</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVI">307</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXVII.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Peter’s Grudge</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVII">319</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXVIII.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Sam Makes Choice</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVIII">334</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXIX.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">Squaring the Account</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIX">343</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tocchapter">XXX.</td><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">In Full Settlement</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXX">355</a></td></tr>
-</table></div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[9]</span></p>
-<h2 class="nobreak">Illustrations</h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<div class="center">
-<table class="toc" style="border:0em; padding:0em; border-spacing:0em">
-<tr><td class="toctitle"></td><td class="tocpage"><span class="smallfont">PAGE</span></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">He Descended the Slope</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#i001"><em>Frontispiece</em></a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="toctitle"><span class="smcap">His Finger Trembled on the Trigger</span></td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#i038">37</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="toctitle">“<span class="smcap">You’re Looking for Trouble</span>”</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#i160">156</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="toctitle">“<span class="smcap">Hold Hard, There!</span>”</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#i222">216</a></td></tr>
-<tr><td class="toctitle">“<span class="smcap">He’s Coming ’Round All Right</span>”</td><td class="tocpage"><a href="#i290">283</a></td></tr>
-</table></div>
-
-<p class="center p2">The Safety First Club</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[11]</span></p>
-<p class="center xxlargefont nobreak" style="margin-bottom:1em" id="CHAPTER_I">The Safety First Club</p>
-
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER I
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">“HEDGEHOG DAY”</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Sam Parker stepped out upon the side
-porch of his father’s house, closing the door
-behind him with a slam. There was a frown
-on his face, which by no means became it;
-and the corners of his mouth drooped sulkily.
-He was, as a matter of fact, in a fit of temper,
-which did not lessen as he surveyed the dull,
-gray sky, and saw its promise of a dismal day.</p>
-
-<p>“’Nother spoiled Saturday!” he grumbled.
-“Nowhere to go and nothing to do—oh, thunderation!”</p>
-
-<p>Now, to tell the truth, it may be that the
-weather had much to do with Sam’s pessimism,
-just as it often influences persons a great
-deal older and wiser than this boy of sixteen.
-Sam, commonly, was good-natured enough.<span class="pagenum">[12]</span>
-This day, though, things had seemed to go
-wrong from the very start. He had overslept;
-one of his shoes had contrived to hide
-itself under the bureau; his necktie stubbornly
-had declined to slip into a smooth
-and even knot; he was late at breakfast, and
-the oatmeal was cold, and the eggs were as
-hard as the Fate which he was beginning to
-suspect was pursuing him. He had attempted
-criticism, and his father had checked him
-rather sharply with the reminder that the
-breakfast hour was 7:30 and not 7:50. His
-mother had not hastened to his defense; and
-even Maggie, the cook, frequently his ally
-and dispenser of consoling doughnuts and
-cookies, had failed him when he sought
-sympathy in the kitchen.</p>
-
-<p>“You got up wrong foot foremost,” she told
-him. “Get along with you now! This is
-bakin’ day, and I can’t be bothered.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam, thus repulsed, had clumped out of the
-kitchen; stormed into the hall; snatched up
-his cap and reefer; stamped across the dining-room,
-and flung himself out of the house,
-without visible improvement in his spirits or
-his condition. If it was dark within, it was<span class="pagenum">[13]</span>
-gloomy without. He looked up the street
-and down; nobody was in sight. He buttoned
-his coat to the neck, and thrust his
-hands into his pockets: the world, he perceived,
-was chilly as well as lonely. Then,
-of a sudden, he grinned, fleetingly and reluctantly,
-at vagrant memory of the old story
-of the child that threatened to go out and eat
-two smooth worms and three fuzzy fellows because
-nobody loved it. The baby’s troubles
-were ridiculously like his own, and for a trying
-second he realized the resemblance. Then
-he was frowning harder than ever, with mouth
-drooping still more sulkily.</p>
-
-<p>In sunnier moods Sam Parker was a good-looking
-boy. Nobody would have called him
-pretty; he wasn’t of the “pretty” type, being,
-indeed, rather wholesome and hearty, with
-plenty of color in his cheeks—and not a few
-freckles. For a youth who was rapidly adding
-to his inches, in the process known as
-getting his growth, he carried himself well;
-though, as everybody knows, this period in a
-boy’s life is not that at which grace of figure
-or movement is most marked. In other words,
-there were times when Sam did not know<span class="pagenum">[14]</span>
-what to do with his hands or his feet, and
-impressed the painful fact upon all beholders,
-especially because of a certain impulsiveness,
-which led him now and then into embarrassing
-ventures.</p>
-
-<p>Standing on the porch and glowering at all
-he beheld, Sam was not attractive. Hannibal,
-his bull terrier, trotting from the barn,
-noted the storm signals his master was flying,
-and halting at a safe distance, made great
-pretense of scratching for a flea which did
-not exist. Sam whistled, and Hannibal grew
-busier than ever. The boy took an impatient
-step, and the dog stopped scratching and
-bolted for the barn.</p>
-
-<p>Sam, striding after him, pulled up abruptly.
-A thick-set man in cap, and overalls, and
-boots, and with a carriage rug in one hand
-and a brush in the other, appeared in the big
-doorway.</p>
-
-<p>“H’lo, Sam!” was his greeting. “Good
-day, ain’t it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Good for nothing!” snapped the boy.
-“Rotten weather!”</p>
-
-<p>The man’s eyes twinkled. They were
-pleasant eyes, with little fans of fine wrinkles<span class="pagenum">[15]</span>
-at the corners, and they lighted up his smooth-shaven,
-weather-beaten face amazingly.</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! Guess you ain’t looked at the calendar
-lately. This ain’t June; it’s the fust
-day of December. And I’m tellin’ you this
-is pretty good weather for December. What
-if there ain’t no snow? The wheelin’s all
-right—your daddy took the car out this
-mornin’.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam nodded. “I know—he went over to
-Epworth.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why didn’t you go along?”</p>
-
-<p>“What’d be the use?”</p>
-
-<p>Now, this was not strictly ingenuous. Possibly
-because of his sulks, Sam had not been
-invited to accompany his father.</p>
-
-<p>“Sure enough! What’d ’a’ been the use?”
-said the man with an odd grin.</p>
-
-<p>Sam reddened. “Look here! Bet you I
-could have gone if I’d wanted to, Lon!”</p>
-
-<p>Lon, otherwise Alonzo Gates, hired man
-and general factotum, made no response to
-the challenge, but fell to dusting the rug
-vigorously. Sam, gloomy browed, drew
-nearer.</p>
-
-<p>“Tell you, Lon, I could have gone. No<span class="pagenum">[16]</span>
-fun, though—ride’s too cold. That’s the
-trouble with this weather—no coasting, no
-skating, no football, nothing!”</p>
-
-<p>“So?” said the man non-committally.</p>
-
-<p>Hobe, the barn cat, sauntered out of the
-door. Sam kicked at the animal, which took
-refuge behind a wooden bucket standing just
-inside the sill, and from this cover snarled
-defiance. Whereupon Sam kicked again.
-This time his foot struck something—the
-bucket. Over it went, and out shot a gallon
-or two of soapy water. Hobe darted back
-into the barn. Lon moved aside nimbly, but
-not nimbly enough. Splash! went the water
-upon his boots.</p>
-
-<p>“Wal, now, but you have gone and done
-it!” he ejaculated. “Nice mess to clean up,
-ain’t it?”</p>
-
-<p>In Sam’s perverse mood the one thing he
-cared for was to hide the regret he felt.</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! Oughtn’t to have stuff standing
-round like that. Why didn’t you tell me?”</p>
-
-<p>Lon paused in his labors. “My! but this
-world’s awful crowded this mornin’, ain’t it?”
-he remarked. “First there wasn’t room for
-you ’n’ Hobe; then you jest couldn’t stand for<span class="pagenum">[17]</span>
-that bucket treadin’ on your toes. Wal,
-wal!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam snorted wrathfully. What wouldn’t
-he have given for speech so cuttingly sarcastic
-that Lon must throw up his hands and beg
-mercy! But, effective words failing him, he
-could do no better than offer sounds which
-were disagreeable rather than intelligible.</p>
-
-<p>Lon chuckled; then grew serious. “See
-here, Sam!” said he. “I kind o’ guess this
-is hedgehog day for you, ain’t it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh?”</p>
-
-<p>“When you come to think it over,” Lon
-went on, “a hedgehog’s about the one critter
-you can’t think of as ever snugglin’ up nice
-and cozy to anything or anybody. Now, I
-knew a feller once that had a tame woodchuck
-that liked to be patted; and I’ve seen the tigers
-and big cats in circuses purrin’ round
-their trainers; but I never heard tell of a
-hedgehog actin’ real sociable and wantin’ to
-sit in anybody’s lap. And, so far’s I can
-rec’lect, I never run across a hedgehog that
-you’d call all-around popular with the neighbors.
-Whenever one gets close to anybody,
-he sticks his spines into him. And when a<span class="pagenum">[18]</span>
-human gets to actin’ like a hedgehog—why
-that’s when he’s havin’ a hedgehog day—see?”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh!” said Sam again.</p>
-
-<p>Lon gave the rug another flick with the
-brush.</p>
-
-<p>“By and large, son,” he remarked, “it ain’t
-good business to have hedgehog days. I
-know, I know! When you’re feelin’ that
-way, that’s the way you feel, as the fox said
-to the bear in the trap. But you ain’t doin’
-yourself no good, and you ain’t any perticular
-help to the rest of the community.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hang the community!”</p>
-
-<p>“Jest what the hedgehog says,” quoth Lon
-tranquilly. He carried his rug into the barn;
-brought out another; brushed skilfully for a
-minute.</p>
-
-<p>“Hunt up some of the boys, Sam,” he advised.
-“Try lowerin’ your spines, and see if
-they won’t keep down after a while.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t want to.”</p>
-
-<p>“Bad as that, eh?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam disdained to make reply. Lon pursed
-his lips.</p>
-
-<p>“Sonny, this won’t do. It’s bad medicine.<span class="pagenum">[19]</span>
-Say, where’ll you be at if you behave like
-this when you go to St. Mark’s?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll get along all right.”</p>
-
-<p>Lon brushed furiously for a little. “I—I
-dunno’s there’s but—but one way—for some
-folks to learn things,” he said jerkily. “When
-you’re there—jest one among two-three hundred
-boys—it’ll be different, now I tell you!
-We put up with you; they won’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! Who’s afraid?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’d be—if I was you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Bah!”</p>
-
-<p>Lon shook his head. “Sam,” he said, “if
-I thought this was a real in-growin’ attack,
-I’d be worried a heap wuss than I am. But
-I’m worried enough as it is. Now, I’ll give
-you a good tip. If you don’t want to see the
-other boys, go for a good, long tramp. Walk
-it off! That’s jest what the real hedgehog
-can’t do—his legs ain’t long enough.”</p>
-
-<p>“No fun walking—day like this.”</p>
-
-<p>Lon was a patient soul. “Wal, why don’t
-you go huntin’, then?”</p>
-
-<p>“What for? Rabbits?”</p>
-
-<p>“If you can’t get anything bigger. But
-you might land a shot at a deer. ’Member<span class="pagenum">[20]</span>
-what day this is? First of December! Law
-on deer goes off, and stays off till the fifteenth.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Sam. In the new interest he
-almost forgot, for an instant, that he had a
-grievance against the universe. But it was
-only for an instant. “But I wouldn’t have
-the luck to get a shot at a buck, or a doe,
-either. The crowd will have started out early,
-and scared every deer within ten miles of
-town,” he concluded pessimistically.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t be too sure of that.”</p>
-
-<p>“’Tis sure!” Sam insisted. “Then what’ll
-I do for a gun?”</p>
-
-<p>“Got your own, haven’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“What! Try for a deer with a ‘twenty-two’?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why not? It’s big enough, if it gets to
-the right spot.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam fell back to his second line of defense.
-“Well, there’ll be no deer anywhere near
-town.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who says so?”</p>
-
-<p>“I do!” snapped the boy.</p>
-
-<p>Lon bent toward him, and lowered his
-voice. “Sam, a feller was tellin’ me last night<span class="pagenum">[21]</span>
-about a herd that’s been feedin’ in close—right
-back of old Bill Marlow’s barn—big
-buck and three-four more. Old orchard in
-there, you know. And that’s so nigh to
-town most folks won’t look for ’em there.
-But there they be—or there they were as
-late as yesterday, anyhow. And, by gum! if
-I was you, I’d scout out that way on the
-chance—that is, if your mother says it’s all
-right,” he added hastily.</p>
-
-<p>In spite of himself, Sam’s ambition was
-fired. A shot at a deer! That would be
-worth while.</p>
-
-<p>“You—you’re certain they were there
-yesterday?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Bill Marlow told me himself. And you
-can be sure of one thing—he didn’t tell many
-other folks. Bill ain’t no gossip.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam nodded. He knew something of
-Mr. Marlow’s habit of taciturnity. Doubter
-though he might be, the prospect was brightening.
-He had heard old hunters tell stories
-of cases in which deer had been killed almost
-in the outskirts of the village, while sportsmen
-ranging farther afield had been rewarded
-with sight of neither buck nor doe.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[22]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, I suppose I might as well have a
-look,” he said not too graciously.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course you might!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam took a step toward the house. “Of
-course, with my luck——”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you never can tell,” Lon reminded
-him.</p>
-
-<p>“Still, I might as well be wasting time
-that way as any other,” said Sam sourly, and
-quickened his pace.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t forget to tell your mother!” Lon
-called after him.</p>
-
-<p>Sam waved a hand in reply, and went on
-to the house.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[23]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">SAM TAKES CHANCES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>In simple fairness it should be said that
-Sam Parker meditated no breach of parental
-authority. Indeed, as he was permitted to
-own a little rifle, and to hunt for small game,
-it was possible that no serious objection
-would have been raised to his quest for deer,
-though there might have been scant faith in
-his success. But Sam, as it was fated, was
-not to secure permission for his expedition.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Parker was not in the dining-room.
-Sam saw that the room was unoccupied, and
-went on to the library. It, too, failed to
-reward him for his search. So did the living-room.
-He strode into the hall, and took
-station by the foot of the stairs.</p>
-
-<p>“Mother! Oh, Mother!” he called. “Say,
-Mother! Mother!”</p>
-
-<p>There was no reply from above stairs or
-below.</p>
-
-<p>“But I say, Mother!” His voice rose<span class="pagenum">[24]</span>
-shrilly in his impatience. “Where are you?
-Oh, Ma, Ma, Ma!”</p>
-
-<p>A door at the back of the hall opened, but
-the head which appeared was that of Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t make such a racket, Sam!” she
-cautioned. “What do you want, anyway?”</p>
-
-<p>“Where’s Mother? I’ve got to see her—right
-off!”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, she ain’t here.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why not?” demanded the boy hotly.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie tossed her head. “Because she
-can’t very well be in two places at once. And
-she’s run over to see Mis’ Lake for a minute.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam stamped his foot. “Minute—nothing!
-I know what that means. She’ll stay half an
-hour.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, why shouldn’t she, if she wants
-to?” said Maggie coolly. And then, being
-busy, she closed the door and went back to
-her work.</p>
-
-<p>Sam scowled; hesitated briefly; reached
-resolution; marched into the library. His
-little rifle stood in its appointed place against
-the wall, beside his father’s double-barreled
-gun. “The armory corner” of the library
-was a family joke; for though Sam’s rifle was<span class="pagenum">[25]</span>
-frequently in use, the shotgun had not been
-taken out of the room in years. It was a fine
-weapon, of a noted make, and highly prized
-by its owner, who, however, had not hunted
-for many seasons; though regularly he
-planned expeditions in the woods, and bought
-a fresh stock of ammunition.</p>
-
-<p>Sam laid eager hold upon his rifle; then, of
-a sudden, seemed to be seized by scorn of it.
-After all, it was never meant for big game.
-Why, with its short cartridges and light
-charges of powder, it was hardly more than a
-toy! Really, it was intended for target
-practice.</p>
-
-<p>“Yet, for all that, it’s a rifle,” said the boy
-to himself. It was odd how, once his prejudice
-was aroused, arguments presented themselves
-to strengthen his objections. “And the
-law says you can’t hunt deer with rifles.”</p>
-
-<p>Here he was speaking by the book. The
-statute, which provided an open season from
-December 1st to December 15th, also forbade
-the use of rifles by sportsmen. Possibly a
-very lenient judge might have held that
-Sam’s “pop-gun” hardly classed with the
-high-power, long-range weapons against which<span class="pagenum">[26]</span>
-the law was aimed, and might have deemed
-it annoying rather than dangerous to two-footed
-or four-footed creatures; but Sam, at
-the moment, was not disposed to be liberal in
-his interpretation. He restored the piece to
-its place. He picked up the shotgun.</p>
-
-<p>Temptation was strong upon him. Wasn’t
-it true that if he had not been told that he
-could use the gun he also had not been expressly
-forbidden to lay hands upon it?
-Nothing had been said about it either way.
-And didn’t his father wish him to have some
-knowledge of firearms? Of course he did!
-Oh, but it was a wonderfully persuasive
-voice, which seemed to be whispering in his
-ear! It was so seductive that it frightened
-him—a very, very little.</p>
-
-<p>Sam hastily put down the gun. Yet he
-lingered in its neighborhood. Half absently
-he opened a drawer in his father’s desk.
-There, in a corner, was a paper box, labeled
-“<span class="nowrap">3 <span class="fnum">1</span>/<span class="fden">4</span></span> drams, smokeless; shot 00.” Cartridges
-for deer shooting! Surely here was Fate’s
-own finger pointing the way.</p>
-
-<p>The boy drew a long breath. He lifted the
-cover of the box; took out half a dozen of the<span class="pagenum">[27]</span>
-cartridges; thrust them into a pocket. Then
-he caught up the shotgun, and strode out of
-the library.</p>
-
-<p>There was nobody to halt him or question
-him. Maggie was fully occupied in the
-kitchen, and his mother had not returned.
-Leaving the house by the front door, he
-avoided chance of observation by Lon Gates,
-who still was at work in the barn. Not that
-Lon would have stopped him; for the hired
-man would have supposed him to be sallying
-forth with his mother’s permission. Nevertheless,
-Sam preferred to have his going unnoted.
-He turned the corner of the house—the
-corner away from the barn; stole back
-through the yard; climbed a fence, and found
-himself in a narrow lane. It led to a side
-street, which, in turn, brought him to a road
-running into the country.</p>
-
-<p>His gun tucked under his arm, Sam walked
-briskly; and as the Parker house happened to
-be on an edge of the town, it was but a very
-few minutes before he had open fields on
-either hand. Ahead of him was the low hill
-on which the Marlow farmhouse stood; and
-farther on were loftier wooded summits. In<span class="pagenum">[28]</span>
-summer the scenery of the region was pleasantly
-picturesque, but on an overcast December
-day a stranger might have found the
-prospect somewhat dreary. Sam, cheered by
-the spirit of adventure, and the better for the
-exercise, began to shake off his sulkiness; and
-he was whistling almost blithely when, at a
-bend in the road, he saw two boys approaching.
-Physically, they were in marked contrast.
-One was tall and thin, with a peculiarly
-angular effect at elbows and knees; the other
-was short and plump, with a round, good-humored
-face. Both hailed Sam eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>“Hi there! Where are you going? What
-you doing with that artillery?” sang out the
-tall lad.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t fire! I’ll surrender,” chuckled his
-companion.</p>
-
-<p>Sam halted. He brought his gun to parade
-rest. An onlooker might have suspected that
-he was not seeking secrecy regarding errand
-or armament in the case of these two friends.</p>
-
-<p>“Hullo, Step!” said he. “Same to you,
-Poke! And what am I doing? Oh, just
-looking around on the chance of bagging
-something.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[29]</span></p>
-
-<p>The tall youth was carrying a package,
-wrapped in a newspaper. He laid it on the
-ground, and took the gun from Sam’s hands,
-balancing the weapon lovingly and finally
-raising it to his shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>“Gee, but what a daisy!” he exclaimed.
-“Whose is it? Yours?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, it isn’t exactly mine, Step, but I’m
-using it,” said Sam.</p>
-
-<p>Any boy could have told how Clarence
-Jones came by his nickname. “Step” was an
-abbreviation of “Step-ladder”; and undeniably
-Master Jones did bear a resemblance to
-that valuable, if not graceful, article of household
-equipment.</p>
-
-<p>“Here, let me take the shooting-iron!” the
-plump youth urged. His name was Arthur
-Green, but he was called “Poke,” because one
-so easily could dig a finger into his fat sides.
-Having placed the basket he had been carrying
-beside Step’s bundle, his hands were free
-to lay hold upon the gun. There was a little
-tussle, and Poke captured the prize.</p>
-
-<p>“My eyes! but this is a crackerjack!” was
-his comment. “Jiminy, but you’re the lucky
-chap, Sam! What are you after?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[30]</span></p>
-
-<p>Sam did his best to appear blasé. “Oh,
-thought maybe I might get a shot at a buck.”</p>
-
-<p>The reception of the remark was not flattering.
-“You!” jeered Step; Poke laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Why not?” Sam demanded, indignantly.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s ri-right; why not?” Poke was
-quivering with amusement. “All you’ve got
-to do is to hold the gun and pull the trigger;
-and if only a deer happens to walk in the
-way, the gun’ll do the rest.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam snatched the weapon from the jester.
-“Oh, cut the comedy!” he snapped. “There’s
-nothing funny about it. I’ll bet you fifty
-men and boys are out for deer to-day, and
-I’ve just as good a chance as any of them can
-have of running into a herd. And if I want
-to take a chance——Come, now! what’s
-ridiculous in that?”</p>
-
-<p>Step was disposed to side with Sam.
-“There’s sense, Poke. Stop your kidding. I
-want to ask Sam something.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, what is it?” queried Master Parker
-guardedly.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s about St. Mark’s. Are you sure you’re
-going there?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why—why——” Sam hesitated. “Why,<span class="pagenum">[31]</span>
-I’m practically sure, I guess. Father and I
-were talking it over last week; and I gathered
-that if I passed the mid-year examinations
-here he’d let me transfer.”</p>
-
-<p>Step was rubbing his chin. “Well, that’s
-what I wanted to know. I’ve been campaigning
-to get my folks to send me, but they’re
-hanging off till they learn what your father
-will do with you.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s petulance had vanished. “Great
-Scott, Step, but it would be cracking if we
-could go together!” he cried. “Say, Poke,
-get after your family! We three have been
-pals ever since we can remember. It’d be
-bully to take the gang to St. Mark’s.”</p>
-
-<p>Poke shook his head. “Too bad, but there’s
-no hope for me. Little old High School has
-got to be good enough for Yours Truly.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, the school’s all right,” said Sam.
-“Only—as my father puts it—it’s case of
-general versus special. We can fit for college
-here, but the preparatory course is but one
-of several, while at St. Mark’s it’s the whole
-thing. That ought to mean a better ‘fit.’
-And you know the fun the fellows have there,
-and the athletics, and all the rest of it.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[32]</span></p>
-
-<p>Poke’s expression was uncommonly serious.
-“You’ve set your heart on going, Sam,
-haven’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“It’ll be broken if I don’t go.”</p>
-
-<p>Poke gave a funny little sigh. “Oh, well,
-they’ll need some of us to stay home and run
-the errands, I reckon. And I guess I’m
-unanimously elected. Here’s one, for instance.”
-And he picked up his basket.</p>
-
-<p>“What have you got there?” Sam asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Eggs! Two dozen—all Mrs. Trask could
-spare. And fifty-five cents a dozen! Say,
-when I’m carrying this basket, I feel like a
-walking cash register!”</p>
-
-<p>Step had resumed possession of his package.
-“And here’s one of Mrs. Trask’s roosters—five
-and a half pounds, dressed. I’m some
-plutocrat myself.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam shouldered his gun. “We’re all pretty
-richly loaded to-day,” said he. “I suppose
-if I kill an eight-point buck you won’t care
-to have me send a haunch to either of you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, well, I’ll take it—as a favor to you,”
-quoth Step.</p>
-
-<p>“Same here!” chimed in Poke. Then he
-was seized by an idea. “Look here, Sam!<span class="pagenum">[33]</span>
-If you shoot anything—short of a heifer calf—bring
-it down to the club this afternoon, and
-we’ll have a feed. Both of us are going to be
-there.”</p>
-
-<p>“But come, anyway,” urged Step. “If you
-don’t hit bird or beast, you’ll have a story to
-tell of the big ones that got away.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam nodded. “All right; I’ll be there,”
-he promised readily.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[34]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">THE LUCK OF A LONG SHOT</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>At the base of the hill crowned by the
-Marlow house the woods came close to the
-road. Years before the pines had been cut
-off, and in their place had come in a second
-growth of hard wood, scrubby, tangled and
-dense. On many of the trees, especially the
-oaks, dead leaves still were thick, affording
-cover for game and adding considerably to the
-difficulties of hunting novices.</p>
-
-<p>Sam climbed the fence, and plunged into
-the thickets to the right. It was his intention
-to work around the base of the hill, and
-thus reach the old orchard, of which Lon
-Gates had spoken; but he quickly discovered
-that the plan was more easily made than carried
-out. There was a good deal of underbrush,
-and the ground was rough, stony in
-places and swampy in the tiny valleys. Moreover,
-as he tried to advance as silently as possible,
-and to keep a keen, if limited, lookout,<span class="pagenum">[35]</span>
-his progress was slow as well as wearisome.
-With all his vigilance, however, he
-saw nothing and heard nothing to indicate
-the presence of anything which would serve as
-target for his aim. No rabbit scurried away,
-and there was no whir of wings among the
-branches. As for deer—why, there was nothing
-to hint that buck or doe was to be found
-thereabouts.</p>
-
-<p>He had slipped a couple of cartridges into
-his gun, and felt prepared for any emergency;
-but an emergency declined to present itself.
-Even when he reached the little brook, which
-skirted the hill, the silence of the woods was
-unbroken, except by the subdued murmur of
-the stream. He paused for a moment, listening
-intently but vainly; then moved on, following
-the course of the brook. The going
-was now a trifle easier, though clumps of
-trees and bushes still narrowed the view.</p>
-
-<p>For perhaps a quarter of an hour his progress
-was absolutely uneventful, and unrelieved
-by even a false alarm. A turn in the
-brook warned him that he had passed the
-farmhouse, and was nearing the old orchard.
-More cautiously than ever he changed his<span class="pagenum">[36]</span>
-course, and began to climb the slope on his
-right, the first, as he knew, of a series of low
-ridges. He reached its top without mishap,
-and halted to reconnoiter.</p>
-
-<p>From somewhere, afar off, the wind brought
-a sound to his ears, which set his pulse bounding
-and made him tighten his hold on his gun.
-It was a sound he could not mistake, faint
-though it was. Some other hunter had found
-something to fire at; perhaps the lucky fellow
-had sent a charge of buckshot into a deer!</p>
-
-<p>Just in front of Sam, and on the verge of
-the farther slope, was a mass of tangled
-bushes. He dropped to his knees, and slowly
-tunneled a way through the barrier. From
-its shelter he could look down into a ravine,
-beyond which rose the second ridge.</p>
-
-<p>For several minutes he lay motionless in
-his burrow, peering into the gully and
-straining his ears for the rustle of branches
-or the crack of dried twig. Once he thought
-he heard both from the lower ground to his
-left; but he could not be sure, and the disturbance
-was not repeated.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp54" id="i038" style="max-width: 40.625em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i038.jpg" alt="">
- <div class="caption"><p class="center"><a href="#BRef_038">HIS FINGER TREMBLED ON THE TRIGGER</a></p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Suddenly, from another direction—straight
-across the ravine and near the top of the ridge—came<span class="pagenum">[37]</span>
-sounds of movements in the undergrowth.
-Instinctively, Sam brought the gun
-to his shoulder; its muzzle barely protruded
-from the branches. <a id="BRef_038" href="#i038">His finger trembled on
-the trigger</a>. And then his eager eye had a
-glimpse of a darker patch amidst the dried
-leaves, a patch which seemed to be moving
-very, very slowly.</p>
-
-<p>Sam had heard tales of “buck fever,” and
-had laughed at the plight of its victims; but
-now he could sympathize with them. His
-heart was pumping furiously; he was trembling
-from head to foot; every muscle seemed
-to be relaxed and helpless. And, as if to
-mock him, that dark spot across the ravine
-grew clearer and more distinct. It was too
-high from the ground to suggest the presence
-of any of the smaller animals likely to be
-found in the woods.</p>
-
-<p>“That—that’s a deer over there!” Sam
-told himself desperately. “It—it can’t be
-anything else!”</p>
-
-<p>With an effort he summoned all his will.
-The swaying barrels along which he glanced
-steadied. His finger pressed the trigger. There
-was a roar which seemed to him as loud as<span class="pagenum">[38]</span>
-thunder. His right shoulder ached under
-what was like a smart blow from the butt of
-the gun. A thin wisp of smoke blew away
-from the muzzle, and was lost in the
-branches.</p>
-
-<p>On the other side of the gully was violent
-commotion. The dark spot vanished. In its
-stead appeared the bare head of a man!</p>
-
-<p>Sam uttered a queer, faint, choking cry of
-horror. The gun dropped from his hands.
-His head sank to the ground, and he lay, face
-downward, for the moment utterly overcome.
-Through his recklessness and folly he had
-shot a fellow being. Terrible certainty was
-his that he had not missed his aim, and that
-he had wounded, perhaps fatally, the victim
-of his criminal carelessness. There flashed
-upon him all the possible consequences of his
-act—arrest, imprisonment, disgrace; sorrow
-and suffering for his parents; pain and anguish
-for the stranger, even if he survived
-his wounds.</p>
-
-<p>For a little Sam closed his eyes, but he
-could not keep from his ears the ominous
-sounds from the other ridge. The man had
-not cried out; but there was a wild crashing<span class="pagenum">[39]</span>
-of brush, as if he were writhing convulsively
-in the thicket. Presently the sounds grew
-less distinct. The man must be weakening
-from loss of blood! Sam’s imagination pictured
-him lying in a crimson pool, and the
-boy shuddered at the thought. Yet it nerved
-him to the duty which he knew was his to do.</p>
-
-<p>Sam had faults enough, but lack of courage
-to face the music, as the saying goes, was not
-among them. Plainly, the way for retreat
-was open for him, if he chose to take it; there
-was nobody to interfere. But Sam, once he
-had recovered somewhat from the shock of his
-disaster, set himself resolutely to the task of
-making such amends as he might.</p>
-
-<p>He crawled out of the protecting bushes,
-and got upon his feet. For a moment or two
-he stood, listening intently; but now there
-was no sound from beyond the ravine. Then,
-with a sort of grim and unhappy determination,
-<a id="BRef_001" href="#i001">he began to descend the slope</a>. At the
-bottom he paused again, but heard nothing
-either to lessen or to increase his anxiety.
-Then he went on, climbing doggedly and
-steadily to the clump where first had appeared
-the dark spot, and then the head of a man.<span class="pagenum">[40]</span>
-The quiet of the place was unbroken. A
-new and terrible fear laid hold upon him:
-perhaps the wounded man had already succumbed.
-It needed all his grit and courage
-at last to part the branches and look in at the
-spot where the man had stood.</p>
-
-<p>Sam looked, and looked again; and felt
-that he could not believe the evidence of his
-eyes. For three or four feet in each direction
-the brush had been trampled down, but there
-was nobody there!</p>
-
-<p>A great sense of relief filled the boy. At
-all events, he had not killed anybody! There
-was even a second in which he cherished
-wild hope that what he had seen had been
-merely a vision raised by some trick of over-taxed
-nerves. But the hope was doomed to
-swift dismissal. There was blood on the dried
-leaves on the ground—not much blood, to be
-sure, but enough to make a fresh, dark stain.</p>
-
-<p>Kneeling, Sam examined the sanguinary
-traces very carefully. As he rose, his expression
-curiously combined satisfaction and bewilderment.
-It was manifest that the stranger’s
-wound had neither bled copiously nor
-crippled him; and that he had been able to<span class="pagenum">[41]</span>
-make off. But whither had he gone? Why
-had he not charged across the gully? And
-why had he not raised a warning shout to
-prevent a second shot?</p>
-
-<p>“Jiminy!” said Sam to himself. “Jiminy!
-but I don’t believe he got sight of me at all!
-I was covered by the bushes, and there was
-hardly any smoke, and if he were looking another
-way—why—why——” He broke off,
-frankly unable to weigh and decide the probabilities
-of the strange affair.</p>
-
-<p>There still remained the possibility of finding
-and following the man’s trail; but Sam
-was not especially skilled in such matters.
-He fancied that for a few yards he could make
-out evidences of somebody forcing a way
-through the undergrowth, but then he came
-to a sort of woods path along the backbone of
-the ridge, and there lost the slender clews
-upon which he had depended. Certainly he
-could discover no more drops of blood.</p>
-
-<p>Sam went back to the trampled space, and
-searched it minutely from end to end, and
-from side to side. He had his trouble for his
-pains. He found nothing to throw light upon
-the mystery.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[42]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, this does beat me!” he confessed,
-and shook his head in perplexity. “I never
-heard of anything like it. And I don’t want
-to hear of anything like it again—ugh!” He
-gave a little shiver. “I know when I’ve had
-enough—and too much. I’m going home,
-and I’m going to get there, and put up this
-gun, as quick as my legs will carry me to the
-house. And you can bet I’m going to keep
-quiet about this. And—and I hope the other
-fellow will keep quiet, too. Come now, Sam
-Parker! Brace up! Forward march!”</p>
-
-<p>Thus encouraging himself, Master Sam set
-off at a round pace for the highway, but when
-he reached it his speed lessened. He had a
-new sense of merciful escape from perils
-when he was out of the dark woods and in
-the open road; and with it came a peculiar
-weakness and uncertainty in his knees. He
-was glad to sit down on a boulder beside the
-ditch and rest for what seemed to him a long,
-long time. Finally he rose, and trudged
-toward the town. He went slowly, and his
-face was thoughtful.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[43]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">THE CLUB GETS A NEW NAME</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>It was well after noon when Sam came up
-the narrow lane behind the Parker place, and
-scaled the back fence. Hasty observation
-from its top showed him that the coast was
-clear. He stole through the yard, kept the
-house between himself and the barn, and let
-himself in at the front door.</p>
-
-<p>The house was as quiet as well ordered
-homes generally are at that hour, when dinner
-has been disposed of, and supper is still afar
-off. Sam tiptoed into the library. With
-feverish haste he put his father’s gun in its
-place, first removing the cartridges from the
-breach. Then he opened the desk drawer, and
-restored his stock of cartridges to their box.
-He hesitated a moment over the empty shell,
-being, indeed, tempted to slip it in with the
-rest. At a casual glance the box would then
-seem to be full. But Sam, with all his imperfections,
-was not given to tricks and deceits.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[44]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I won’t do it!” he said, with decision,
-and slipped the shell into his pocket.</p>
-
-<p>As he stepped into the hall, Maggie hailed
-him from the top of the stairs.</p>
-
-<p>“Is that you, Sam?” she called. “I thought
-I heard the front door open, and I wondered
-who ’twas.”</p>
-
-<p>So she hadn’t seen him enter the house;
-therefore she could not know that he had been
-carrying the gun. Thus was another danger
-of investigation avoided.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; I came in that way,” he said.
-“Father home yet?”</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where’s Mother?”</p>
-
-<p>“Lon’s drivin’ her over to see old Mis’
-Hardee at Webster Mills.”</p>
-
-<p>There are times when things do seem to
-have been arranged most fortunately. Sam
-could have thrown up his cap and cheered.
-But Maggie was beginning to descend the
-stairs.</p>
-
-<p>“Look here, Sam Parker! Why didn’t you
-come home to dinner?” she demanded.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I’m all right. I don’t want anything
-to eat.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[45]</span></p>
-
-<p>Maggie continued to descend the stairs.
-“Don’t, eh? Where’d you get dinner? Did
-the Joneses invite you?”</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>“The Greens, then?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why—why—no; they didn’t.”</p>
-
-<p>Maggie had reached the foot of the flight.
-“So you come traipsin’ home after everything’s
-cleaned up and put away, and expect
-me to muss up my kitchen for you? I like
-that! Well, you can just guess again, Sam
-Parker!”</p>
-
-<p>“But I don’t want anything, Maggie!” Sam
-said pacifically. “Honest, I don’t. I’m not
-hungry.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s lucky—seein’s there ain’t anything,”
-said Maggie drily. However, she was
-moving toward the kitchen. “Come along
-with you, though!” she flung over her
-shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>Sam followed her meekly. “You don’t need
-to bother,” he insisted.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie paid not the slightest heed to his protests.
-“Don’t see how folks can expect to
-keep a house decent, with all the overgrown
-boys in town runnin’ in for snacks between<span class="pagenum">[46]</span>
-meals,” she grumbled. “Well, now you’re
-here, you might as well sit down.” She
-pointed to a table, bare but spotlessly clean.
-“S’pose I’ll have to give you some dry bread
-or a cracker, maybe. And the water from the
-faucet’s cold enough to drink at this time of
-year.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam sat down. “Oh, anything’ll do,” he
-said humbly.</p>
-
-<p>“Umph!” said Maggie, and opened the door
-of the oven. “Well, I do declare! How’d
-that happen?” And from the oven she took
-a plate, on which was a generous slice of steak,
-also a big potato. “Goodness gracious! but I
-must be gettin’ flighty! I’d ’a’ said for sure
-I put those things in the ice chest. Don’t it
-beat all how things happen! Course, the
-meat’s cooked hard as a rock, but you might
-as well have it as Hannibal.” She set the
-plate on the table with a bang. “Well, now
-the stuff’s before you, what are you goin’ to do
-with it?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam showed her. In spite of the morning’s
-adventures he had an excellent appetite.
-Maggie, observing, brought a glass of milk and
-a large piece of pie from the pantry. Then,<span class="pagenum">[47]</span>
-standing before him, she studied the youth
-closely.</p>
-
-<p>“Sam, what you been doin’? What mischief
-you been up to?”</p>
-
-<p>“Noth—nothing,” mumbled Sam.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie shook her head. “Don’t you try to
-tell me, Sam Parker! I ain’t known you
-years and years for nothing. Where you
-been?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam took thought. Maggie was his sworn
-ally and help in time of trouble, but he feared
-she couldn’t be brought to look kindly upon
-the incidents of his morning.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I—I went for a—for a walk—out in
-the woods,” he stammered.</p>
-
-<p>“Then what?”</p>
-
-<p>“Then I came home,” said Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“So I see!” quoth Maggie drily. “But go
-on! As you were sayin’——?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam wriggled. “This—this is bully pie,
-Maggie,” said he, in an effort to change the
-topic.</p>
-
-<p>Her severity of expression deepened.
-“Mebbe it is, Sam. But you can’t have
-another piece ’less you ’fess up.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I—I can’t confess.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[48]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Bosh!” said Maggie tartly.</p>
-
-<p>Sam, in his turn, regarded her gravely. He
-had no intention of confiding in his old friend,
-but plainly it was a point of interest to learn
-if he struck people as one who was burdened
-with a terrible secret.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I got awfully tired, for one thing,”
-said he. “And it was chilly and—er—er—and
-lonesome. And so I show it, do I?”</p>
-
-<p>“You show something fast enough—I ain’t
-sure what.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Sam, and pushed back his
-chair. He got upon his feet, and crossed to
-the door. His hand on the knob, he looked
-at Maggie, whose brow was furrowed.</p>
-
-<p>“Say, it was mighty clever of you to save
-my dinner. Thank you a lot!” he cried.
-Then he opened the door, and went out hurriedly.</p>
-
-<p>The talk in the kitchen had given him
-warning. If he would not rouse suspicion, he
-must increase the gaiety of his air and manner.
-As he strolled down the street, he was
-whistling shrilly; and he shifted to a merrier
-tune when he turned in at the gate of the
-Joneses’ place, and walking up to the door of<span class="pagenum">[49]</span>
-a small and very trim outbuilding, knocked
-thrice.</p>
-
-<p>A few months earlier Mr. Jones, disposing
-of a pony, whose legs had become a good deal
-shorter than Step’s, had turned the pony’s
-quarters over to his son, with the understanding
-that the little house was to be used
-for a club, which the boys were forming.
-Step and his chums at once took possession.
-They worked like beavers, cleaning, sweeping,
-painting and furnishing the building, and
-succeeded in making for themselves a very attractive
-meeting place. The club—it was
-called the Adelphi—had flourished mightily,
-and membership in it was highly prized.</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s triple knock brought no response,
-being, indeed, somewhat of an empty form
-and ceremony; and after waiting for a moment—this,
-too, was part of the accepted
-program—he opened the door and walked in.
-Step and Poke were in the lounging room,
-recently the space given to the pony cart. Its
-walls were gay with college pennants, photographs,
-and pictures cut from magazines and
-newspapers; in one corner was a lounge, worn
-but still useful; the chairs represented contributions<span class="pagenum">[50]</span>
-from the attics of several families;
-there was a serviceable table, on which stood
-a shaded lamp; and an oil heater effectually
-dispelled the chill of the afternoon air.</p>
-
-<p>“Hi there, fellows!” Sam sang out. “What
-are you doing to kill time?”</p>
-
-<p>It had been his desire to impress them with
-his ease of mind, but neither betrayed much
-interest in his mood. Step, huddled in an old
-steamer chair, was a picture of depression and
-angles, with his knees almost on a level with
-his ears, and his long arms sagging till his
-hands touched the floor. Poke was standing
-before a blackboard, which hung on the wall.
-As he turned to regard the newcomer, his
-round face was puckered in a frown.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you, Sam?” he said absently.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you?” croaked Step like a dismal
-echo.</p>
-
-<p>Sam glanced from one to the other. “What’s
-the row?” he inquired. “You two look like
-chickens with the pip.”</p>
-
-<p>“Chickens? Ugh!” Step fairly shuddered.</p>
-
-<p>“Huh!” snorted Poke; and turning to the
-blackboard, dabbed viciously at it with the
-eraser which he had in his left hand.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[51]</span></p>
-
-<p>“What are you doing?” queried Sam. He
-moved nearer to Poke, and glanced curiously
-at the board. It had borne, in bold lettering:</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>Adelphi Club<br>
-Rules and By-laws.</em>
-</p>
-
-<p>Now, however, there was only a chalky
-smear to show where the lines had been.
-“What are you doing?” he repeated. “Say,
-you’ve spoiled it!”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! This club needs a new name,”
-growled Poke. “I’m trying to think of one
-that’ll fit.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam wheeled and addressed the youth in
-the chair. “Step, what ails him? What
-ails you? What’s the matter, anyway?”</p>
-
-<p>Step clasped his hands about his knees.
-“What ails us? Guess you wouldn’t be asking
-if you knew!”</p>
-
-<p>“Course I wouldn’t!” Sam agreed rather
-testily to what might be called a fairly self-evident
-proposition.</p>
-
-<p>“Hang the luck!” groaned the doleful
-Step.</p>
-
-<p>Poke whipped about. “Confound it, but<span class="pagenum">[52]</span>
-there’s more than luck!” he cried. “You’re
-letting us off too easy, Step. Oh, I know—I
-know what you’d say! We didn’t mean to
-have it happen, but it did happen; so what’s
-the use in talking? And it was just like a
-lot of other things that keep happening to us,
-and will keep on happening till we have more
-sense.”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh!” came from the depths of the chair.</p>
-
-<p>Sam dropped a hand on Poke’s shoulder.
-“Translate, won’t you? You’re worse than
-old Cæsar when he tells about building his
-bridge.”</p>
-
-<p>“Darn that dog!” wailed Step.</p>
-
-<p>Sam tightened his grip on Poke’s plump
-shoulder. “So there was a dog, was there?”
-said he. “That’s a start, anyway. Go on!”</p>
-
-<p>Poke wriggled free. “Yes; there was a
-dog, and it was that big hound of Mr. Mercer’s.
-And it came along, and smelled Step’s
-chicken, and grabbed for it, and gobbled it,
-and knocked over my basket of eggs, and ran
-away. And we chased it, but couldn’t catch
-it. And Step lost his chicken, and every one
-of my eggs was smashed. And ain’t that
-trouble enough for one day?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[53]</span></p>
-
-<p>“But I don’t quite understand. It—it’s
-sort of complicated. I don’t see how the
-hound could grab the chicken and upset your
-basket all at once.”</p>
-
-<p>Poke shifted weight from one foot to the
-other. “Well—well, you see, we—we’d sort
-of stopped to look at a knife Tom Appleton
-had bought; and we’d set the bundle and the
-basket on a stone wall; and the dog hit both
-when he jumped for one. That was the way
-of it. And say! did you ever hear of anything
-worse?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s smile was bitter. “Anything worse!”
-he repeated scornfully. What was a poor tale
-of broken eggs and looted chicken to one who,
-by pure mischance, had shot a man?</p>
-
-<p>Poke resented his friend’s tone. “Huh!
-Much you know about it! Dollar and ten
-cents’ worth of eggs gone—just like that!”</p>
-
-<p>“And a five-and-a-half-pound rooster—five
-and a half pounds dressed!” chimed in Step.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, well, that was hard luck,” Sam admitted.
-It had occurred to him that it was
-not wise to withhold sympathy if he would
-avoid suspicion of cherishing some terrible
-secret of his own.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[54]</span></p>
-
-<p>Poke was one of those ordinarily cheery
-souls who, on occasion, take melancholy consolation
-in contemplation of misfortunes.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve been thinking things over,” he declared.
-“I’ve got an idea. It isn’t the thing
-itself that bothers, but the consequences.
-Look here, now! Mother had promised to
-make two angel cakes—takes eleven eggs for
-each cake. And she’d promised one for the
-church supper, and Jennie was to have the
-other for her club. And now Mother has got
-to disappoint the supper committee, and they’d
-told her they set ’special store by her angel
-cake. And she’s hot! And Jennie—say, Sam,
-if you had a sister, you’d know the fix I’m
-in. Jennie’s just sizzling. So I’m keeping
-away from the house. Gee, I’d never go home
-if I could help myself!”</p>
-
-<p>Step waved a long and pitiful hand. “Company
-for dinner to-morrow!” he said simply.
-“I’m lying low myself.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam meditated briefly. Since that terrible
-moment on the ridge he had gone through
-half a dozen phases of emotion. He had
-ranged from terror to exultation. His plans
-had varied from full confession to absolute<span class="pagenum">[55]</span>
-silence. Now he was disposed to follow a
-course of inaction, based on a belief that the
-man had not been badly hurt, and that perhaps
-nothing ever would be heard of the
-affair. Of course, if report should be made;
-or if it should prove that the wounds were
-serious; or if the victim should turn out to
-be a poor man unable to pay a doctor’s bill—well,
-he wouldn’t cross bridges till he came to
-them. And, meanwhile, he would try to bear
-himself as if nothing untoward had happened—and
-thank his lucky stars that he could
-keep his secret, even for a time.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, that was hard luck!” he said again,
-and put more heart in the speech.</p>
-
-<p>Poke returned to the blackboard. “Might
-as well learn a lesson when there’s a lesson to
-be learned,” he rumbled. “Struck me, too,
-we ought to post something here to remind
-us that it pays to keep out of trouble. I’d
-like to give the club a name that’d mean
-something—see? I can think of mottoes
-enough—‘Look before you leap, and then go
-’round,’ and ‘You never can tell when it’s
-loaded,’ and a lot of others—but I’m stumped
-for a name. Now, if I——”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[56]</span></p>
-
-<p>There he broke off. Sam, elbowing him
-out of the way, stood before the board. For
-a second young Parker hesitated. Then he
-caught up a piece of chalk, and scrawled in
-big letters:</p>
-
-<p class="center"><em>The Safety First Club</em>.
-</p>
-
-<p>Poke clapped his hands. “Jiminy! but
-that’s just the idea I was groping for. Prime,
-ain’t it, Step?”</p>
-
-<p>Step nodded gloomily. “Fa-fair,” he admitted.</p>
-
-<p>Sam laid down his chalk. He dusted his
-hands a trifle theatrically.</p>
-
-<p>“Like the name, do you?” said he. “Came
-to me all of a sudden.”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a crackerjack!” declared Poke warmly.
-“Hits the nail right on the head. But that
-makes me think, Sam—where’s that deer you
-were going to hit? Haven’t got that haunch
-in your pocket, have you?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Sam curtly.</p>
-
-<p>“Bet you didn’t see a deer!”</p>
-
-<p>“I—I didn’t.”</p>
-
-<p>Poke was beginning to recover his spirits.
-“Huh! Knew you wouldn’t,” said he, and<span class="pagenum">[57]</span>
-chuckled fatly. “This country’s hunted to
-death. Why, so many men with guns were
-out to-day that one of ’em had to let drive at
-another, just for something to shoot at.”</p>
-
-<p>“What!” gasped Sam. “What’s that?
-What do you mean?”</p>
-
-<p>“Just what I say.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam pulled out his handkerchief, and wiped
-drops of cold sweat from his forehead. “But—but——”
-he faltered.</p>
-
-<p>“It isn’t a case of ‘but’ or ‘if.’ Step there
-knows all about it. He saw them bringing
-him in.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s brain was reeling. “Bring-bringing
-him in?” he quavered. “Then—then he
-was badly hurt, after all! And who—who
-was he?”</p>
-
-<p>Poke was staring in bewildered fashion at
-Sam. “What’s upsetting you? Why, you’re
-white as a sheet!”</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind me! Who—who was it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Peter Groche.”</p>
-
-<p>“Pe-Peter Groche? And—and he—he’s
-wounded—maybe dying?”</p>
-
-<p>Poke laughed explosively. “Not he! Old
-rascal was never born to be shot.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[58]</span></p>
-
-<p>“But you said they—they were bringing
-him in?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes—to the lock-up!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam dropped into the nearest chair. “I
-don’t—don’t under-understand,” he said
-weakly.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s clear enough. Peter shot somebody
-else—or tried to.”</p>
-
-<p>Step joined in the conversation. “Well,
-he did wing him,” was his contribution.</p>
-
-<p>“Where?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, grazed his head, and plunked him in
-one hand,” said Step.</p>
-
-<p>Sam dug his finger-nails into his palms.
-“I don’t mean that—at least, that wasn’t what
-I tried to ask about. Where did the shooting
-take place?”</p>
-
-<p>“Out beyond Marlow hill somewhere. But
-you steered that way, didn’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“In that general direction.” By a mighty
-effort Sam controlled his voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Then you may have been within a half
-mile of Peter Groche,” Step went on. “Maybe
-you heard his gun. Well, if you didn’t, he
-fired it, anyway. And he ’most got his man
-for keeps. But the Major wasn’t hurt badly,<span class="pagenum">[59]</span>
-and he had had a glimpse of Peter a little
-earlier, and knew about where he was. So he
-beat it through the woods after him, and
-overtook him near the back road. And just
-then, by luck, along came Sheriff Whaley.
-So the sheriff and the Major asked Mr. Peter
-a question or two; and, getting no satisfaction,
-loaded him in the Whaley wagon and brought
-him in. And there’s going to be a trial
-Monday morning. And I guess it’s going to
-go hard with Groche. You see, he’s had a
-quarrel with the Major, and there are witnesses
-to testify that he made threats to get
-even. Then, too, there was an empty shell in
-one barrel of his gun, and he wouldn’t give
-any explanation of how it happened to be
-there. So I reckon he’ll get all that’s coming
-to him. The Major’s a bad man to have
-on your trail—hardest man in town, by
-thunder!”</p>
-
-<p>“Maj-Major——?” Poor Sam’s tone was
-that of one whose hopes are dwindling fast.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes siree! Hardest man in Plainville is
-Major Bates!” declared Step. “Anybody
-that harms him’ll be put through the works,
-I tell you!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[60]</span></p>
-
-<p>Sam got upon his feet. With trembling
-limbs he moved to the door.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, what’s the matter?” Step called
-after him.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s your burning hurry?” asked
-Poke.</p>
-
-<p>Sam opened the door. “That stove makes
-it too stuffy in here,” he told them. “I—I’ve
-just got to have fresh air.” And out he went,
-closing the door behind him with a force suggesting
-that he did not care for company in
-his rambles.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[61]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">SAM FACES THE MUSIC</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Almost every town has the misfortune to
-include among its residents a few persons
-perhaps best described as “undesirable citizens.”
-In the case of Plainville by far the
-most undesirable of these was Peter Groche,
-idler, sot, brawler, and petty thief. On several
-occasions vigorous efforts had been made to
-rid the community of his presence; but Peter,
-unchastened by thrashings or jail sentences
-for robbing hen roosts or clothes-lines, persisted
-in turning up like the worst of bad pennies.
-There was, therefore, general satisfaction in
-the town when news spread that, at last, he
-had been caught in an offense so serious that
-Plainville reasonably could hope to be relieved
-of him for a term of several years;
-especially as the irascible, determined and
-energetic Major Bates was directly interested
-in his prosecution.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker, returning from his trip to<span class="pagenum">[62]</span>
-Epworth, heard the news down-town, and
-brought it home with him. Across the supper
-table he discussed the matter with his
-wife, and found her quite of his opinion that
-a shining example should be made of Peter
-Groche. The topic, in fact, fairly shared their
-attention with the annoying absence of the
-son of the house. Sam had not been home
-for dinner, Mrs. Parker announced; and now
-he appeared to have forgotten the supper
-hour.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know what has come over the
-boy,” she said. “He went out right after
-breakfast, and nobody but Maggie has seen
-him since. She says he came in about two
-o’clock and had lunch; and then went out
-again. I think you’d better talk to him
-seriously. He doesn’t understand how important
-it is to a growing boy to have his meals
-regularly.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well; I’ll take him in hand,” said
-the father.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Parker gave a little sigh. “Ah! I
-feel, sometimes, as if Sam were growing away
-from me. He’s getting to be such a big fellow,
-you know. Now and then I can’t but<span class="pagenum">[63]</span>
-have my doubts that I’m capable of managing
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Still, you’ve done very well so far,” her
-husband assured her. “Sam’s a pretty good
-boy, as boys go. I don’t happen to think of
-any other youngster for whom I’d care to
-exchange him. But if he’s getting beyond
-you—well, I’ll try my luck. Only”—he
-hesitated—“only, when I do, perhaps you’d
-better make it a strictly masculine session. I
-may have to lay down some rather rigid
-rules, and—well, it will be just as well not to
-have an over-merciful court of appeal too conveniently
-at hand. Send him to me when he
-comes in, and Master Sam and I will reach an
-understanding.”</p>
-
-<p>So they arranged it; and so it came to pass
-that when Sam walked into the library—the
-clocks were striking eight as he entered—his
-mother, after gently chiding him for his tardiness,
-slipped out. The shaded light, by which
-his father was reading, left the ends of the
-room in shadow, and Sam lingered for a moment
-by the door. At last he came forward,
-halting directly in front of his father.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker looked up. “Well, young<span class="pagenum">[64]</span>
-man——” he began, but suddenly his tone
-changed sharply. “What in the world have
-you been doing, Sam? You look as if you’d
-been dragged through a knot-hole!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s wan smile was more eloquent than
-his speech. “I shouldn’t wonder if I did, sir.
-I’ve been walking around and—and thinking.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where have you been walking?”</p>
-
-<p>“Around town, sir—up and down the streets—anywhere.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thinking all the while?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir; thinking hard.”</p>
-
-<p>“Been alone?”</p>
-
-<p>“All alone.”</p>
-
-<p>“Umph!” said Mr. Parker.</p>
-
-<p>Sam licked dry lips. “I’ve been thinking,
-and I’ve thought it out,—what I ought to do,
-sir. And—and I’m here to make a clean
-breast of things.”</p>
-
-<p>The father studied the boy’s face for a moment.
-“Sam,” he said slowly, “Sam, I can
-see that you’re greatly exercised about something
-or other. What it is I don’t know. I
-had intended to have you on the carpet for
-being late for dinner and supper, but I’m<span class="pagenum">[65]</span>
-afraid this is something more serious. But
-whatever it is, I hope you’ll do just what you
-say you wish to do—make a clean breast of it.”</p>
-
-<p>“And face the music!” There was a new
-note in the boy’s voice, a firmer note.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s part of the game of life, Sam—if
-you play the game fairly and squarely.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam drew a long breath, and made his
-plunge. “Father, you’ve heard about the arrest
-of Peter Groche? They say he shot at
-Major Bates. Well, he didn’t—but I did!”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker bent forward; he was looking
-into the boy’s eyes, and the boy did not quail
-under his scrutiny.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t ask you if you’re in earnest, Sam.
-I know that you are. Go on!”</p>
-
-<p>“I took your gun this morning, and went
-out to the Marlow woods. I’d been told there
-were deer there. I was crouching under some
-bushes, and looking across a hollow, when I
-saw something dark on the other side. It
-moved, and I fired. Then a man’s head
-showed. I didn’t recognize him. I was so
-scared that I burrowed deeper in the bushes—hid
-for a while, sir. Then I realized I ought
-to do something. So I crossed the hollow. I<span class="pagenum">[66]</span>
-found blood spots, but the man had gone
-away. It seemed as if he couldn’t have been
-badly hurt. Then I came home. I hoped I
-wouldn’t have to tell anybody, but—but now
-they’ve locked up Peter Groche for what I
-did.”</p>
-
-<p>“When did you learn of the arrest?”</p>
-
-<p>“This afternoon.”</p>
-
-<p>“And since then?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve been thinking it over—fighting it out
-with myself, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker rose and crossed the room. He
-picked up the gun, threw open the breach,
-peered into the barrels.</p>
-
-<p>“You fired only once?”</p>
-
-<p>“Only once, sir. Here’s the empty cartridge.”
-Sam took the shell from his pocket.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker put the gun in its place, and
-went back to his chair. There was a little
-pause; then said he:</p>
-
-<p>“You had your mother’s permission, did
-you, to take that gun?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, sir,” said Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“Or to go hunting?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did you seek it?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[67]</span></p>
-
-<p>Sam shook his head. “She was out, and I—well,
-I didn’t wait for her to come home.”</p>
-
-<p>“I see. By the way, were you under an
-impression that I had ever authorized such an
-expedition?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, sir,” said Sam frankly. “But, then,
-you’d never forbidden it,” he added.</p>
-
-<p>“There are several things it has never occurred
-to me to forbid you to do,” said his
-father drily.</p>
-
-<p>Sam nodded. “That’s so, sir. I don’t think
-much of the excuse.”</p>
-
-<p>“There we are of a mind. So you must have
-realized that you were doing wrong.”</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t bother—think, I mean—about
-that part of it; that is, I didn’t seem to comprehend
-how wrong the thing might be. Of
-course, I understood that it wasn’t exactly—exactly
-proper.” Sam had difficulty in picking
-the word, and did not appear to be over-pleased
-with his choice.</p>
-
-<p>“Go on,” said his father. “Tell me just
-what you did when you reached the Marlow
-woods.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam obeyed. Very carefully he went over
-the incidents of the morning. He described<span class="pagenum">[68]</span>
-his cautious advance through the thick growth,
-his ascent of the first ridge, his discovery of
-the dark object across the ravine. In detail
-he explained how he had conquered his attack
-of “buck fever”; how he had taken aim and
-fired; how he had been overcome by consternation
-when the head of a man appeared. He
-did not deny that he had been slow in crossing
-the gully. In fact, he made no attempt
-to present his case in a more favorable light
-than it deserved.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker did not interrupt the story.</p>
-
-<p>“Sam,” he said, at its close, “this is an extraordinary
-yarn of yours. It is borne out in
-part by the empty cartridge shell. I can see,
-too, that one barrel of the gun has been discharged.
-Also I am fully convinced that you
-have tried to present the exact truth about the
-shooting. I shall assume that the facts are
-as you have stated them. I don’t need to add
-that they make the case very serious.”</p>
-
-<p>“I—I’m afraid it is, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yet you haven’t hesitated to make confession?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam moved uneasily. “I—I—oh, but I did
-hesitate, sir. It was a hard pull to bring myself<span class="pagenum">[69]</span>
-up to the point. I guess I walked miles
-and miles before I was ready to come back
-and tell you everything.”</p>
-
-<p>“I wonder,” said Mr. Parker meditatively,
-“I wonder if it occurred to you that you might
-run away from all the trouble.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy reddened. “It did occur to me,
-sir. And—you may think it a funny way to
-put it, but it’s true—my legs just seemed to be
-determined to carry me down to the railroad
-station. And they did! I was there a long
-time, looking at time-tables.”</p>
-
-<p>“But finally they lost interest?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir. I’d reasoned it out that there
-could be no use in bolting; it wouldn’t help
-anybody.”</p>
-
-<p>“It very seldom does help anybody, Sam.”</p>
-
-<p>“I guess that’s so, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a long pause, which Mr. Parker
-ended.</p>
-
-<p>“Sam, we’ve got to consider the next step—no
-doubt you have considered it; for it necessarily
-follows your statement. You’ve declared
-your faith, so to speak; now you’ve got
-to supplement faith with works.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy nodded. “I know, sir. They’ve<span class="pagenum">[70]</span>
-locked up Peter Groche. We—I, that is—have
-got to get him out; for he’s innocent.”</p>
-
-<p>“Precisely.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam could not repress a shudder. “He’s in
-the police station for something I did. When
-they release him, I suppose I’ll have to take
-his place. I don’t know much about law, but
-that would seem to be—er—er—to be——”</p>
-
-<p>“Essential justice?” queried his father.</p>
-
-<p>“That—that’s my idea, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“I see. But how do you plan to bring it
-about?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam squared his shoulders. “By going
-down to the station and telling the officers
-what I’ve told you—everything. Then they’ll
-have to let Peter Groche go. And they—they
-can keep me.”</p>
-
-<p>“That would be a simple method; but
-there may be a better one—not so direct, but
-probably more effective.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam stared at his father. “More effective?”
-he repeated.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. The officers might be slow to act.
-You have to remember that they think the
-case against Groche is pretty strong.”</p>
-
-<p>“But they’d have to believe me,” Sam urged.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[71]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Not so fast, son! Don’t forget that there
-is a good deal of circumstantial evidence
-against Groche. Your story would certainly
-create a doubt—and a strong doubt—in his
-favor; but with his reputation for evil doing,
-they would be reluctant to let him go and
-risk making a mistake. No; there is a surer
-way to achieve the result.”</p>
-
-<p>“And that is——?”</p>
-
-<p>“To go straight to Major Bates and give
-him your version.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” gasped Sam, and blanched at thought
-of confronting the redoubtable Major, by long
-odds the most terrifying, overbearing and truculent
-person in all Plainville. “Oh, I—I’d
-rather not, Father! They can put me in a
-cell if they want to, but——”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker rose to his feet. “We’ll go to
-the Major—at once!” he said, with decision.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[72]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">DEALING WITH THE OGRE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Major Bates lived in a big, brick house,
-made gloomy and forbidding by tall evergreen
-trees growing close to its walls. It had
-been, in its day, one of the noted mansions of
-the town, and still maintained much of its
-former state. Its hedges were trimmed to a
-nicety; its graveled walks were straight of
-edge and free of encroaching grass; its lawn
-was the smoothest to be found for miles
-around; the brass rails beside the steps
-shone with frequent polishing. Yet, with
-all this care, there was something cheerless
-about the place, something suggesting an institution
-rather than a home. To his few
-cronies the Major admitted that he liked to
-keep his premises “well policed,” as he termed
-it, in memory of his army days; but the townspeople
-generally were of opinion that the verdict
-of a clever woman hit the case perfectly.</p>
-
-<p>“Wonderfully kept up; marvelously well<span class="pagenum">[73]</span>
-ordered; excellent for everything—except
-comfortable living.”</p>
-
-<p>Such was her summary. Perhaps nobody
-but the Major would have taken serious objection
-to it. He was quite sure that things
-were as he wished to have them; and it did
-not occur to him that anybody else was called
-upon to consider the matter.</p>
-
-<p>This evening he was sitting alone in the big
-room he called his den, a room whose walls
-were lined with bookcases, gun racks and
-cabinets, and decorated with antlered heads
-of moose and deer. The pictures were few
-but good. Each hung as if its top had been
-adjusted with the aid of a spirit-level. The
-books on the shelves were like soldiers on
-parade.</p>
-
-<p>The master of the house, seated before his
-open fire, curiously matched the room. He
-was very neat and precise in dress; he held
-himself stiffly, and after a fashion which
-caused careless observers to credit him with
-greater height than he possessed. As a matter
-of fact, he was rather short in stature and thin
-to gauntness; though it seldom occurred to
-anybody to speak of him as a little man.<span class="pagenum">[74]</span>
-Perhaps this was due to his domineering
-manner and striking face. The Major was a
-person to attract attention in any company.
-He had a shock of iron-gray hair, bushy eyebrows,
-a fiercely beaked nose, and a bristling
-moustache and goatee. His eyes were keen
-and piercing, and not often inclined to friendliness.</p>
-
-<p>It need hardly be said that he was not on
-terms of intimacy with the youth of Plainville.
-Not that they ventured to annoy him—far
-from it! Two-thirds of the boys in
-town would cross the street to avoid meeting
-him, no matter how clear might be their consciences
-of recent offense against him. But
-the Major, striding along, swinging his cane
-and grumbling to himself as he advanced, was
-just the sort of figure to which peaceful folk
-involuntarily yield the crown of the way.
-And this evening, though he was not marching
-belligerently through the town, but was
-sitting before his cheery fire, he looked even
-more warlike—and war-worn—than in his
-public appearances. There was a patch of
-court-plaster on his cheek, and his left hand
-was wrapped in a bandage.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[75]</span></p>
-
-<p>There was a deferential knock, and the
-door of the room opened. In stepped a man
-servant, severe of countenance. He advanced
-to the Major, and halting, stood at attention.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Parker—to see you, sir,” he reported.
-“Yes, sir; Mr. Parker and Master Parker.”</p>
-
-<p>The Major scowled. “What! Parker and
-that boy of his? What’s he here for? But
-show Parker in, of course. If the boy doesn’t
-want to come, don’t urge him. Perhaps he’ll
-wait in the parlor.”</p>
-
-<p>But Master Parker, albeit he gladly would
-have lingered behind, was not to be permitted
-to escape his ordeal. With dragging foot he
-entered the den at his father’s heels, and stood
-unhappily clutching his cap, while his elders
-shook hands somewhat formally.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, Mr. Parker, glad to see you!” said the
-Major. “Be seated, I beg you. And come up
-to the fire. Chilly evening, sir; chilly,
-though seasonable.”</p>
-
-<p>“Major Bates, permit me to present my son,
-Samuel,” said Mr. Parker.</p>
-
-<p>Sam stepped forward with a resigned hopelessness
-like that of a condemned criminal.
-He felt himself quailing before the Major’s<span class="pagenum">[76]</span>
-eye; but felt a surprising—and vaguely encouraging—heartiness
-in the grip the old
-soldier gave his timidly extended hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Samuel, I trust you are well,” quoth the
-Major, courteously enough. Then, not being
-impressed with the importance of minors in the
-scheme of the universe, he turned to the boy’s
-father, after suggesting to his youthful caller
-that he, too, take a chair near the fire.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker cleared his throat. “Ahem,
-ahem! Major, I have been given to understand
-that you have been the victim of an
-unfortunate accident.”</p>
-
-<p>“Accident!” The Major sat straighter in
-the chair in which he had just seated himself.
-“Sir, that’s misuse of English. What I was
-victim of was a most cowardly and scoundrelly
-attack. Thank heaven, though, the perpetrator
-of the outrage was at once apprehended
-and taken into custody.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re sure of the identity of the——”</p>
-
-<p>The Major’s eyes flashed; he was guilty of
-the discourtesy of interrupting a guest.</p>
-
-<p>“Am I sure? Sir, I am as absolutely certain
-of the miscreant as I am of this”—he
-touched the court-plaster on his cheek—“and<span class="pagenum">[77]</span>
-of this”—he waved the bandaged hand.
-“I’ve two good reasons to remember him, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“But, Major——”</p>
-
-<p>“Pardon me a moment! You may not
-know, but it is the fact that the fellow has
-threatened, repeatedly, to do me harm. It’s
-an old grudge. Years ago I was fortunate
-enough to be active in sending him to jail,
-and he’s never forgotten my modest service to
-the general welfare. Only last week—on the
-public street, sir—he reviled me, and declared
-that he would have revenge. It was a fortunate
-warning, sir; for this morning, when
-he and I met in the woods—oh, yes; we passed
-within ten yards of each other—I took care to
-keep a weather eye open for just some such
-performance as he undertook. I’d kept his
-general bearings, and when he blazed away at
-me—why, sir, I rushed for him. And by
-Jove! I got him—as good as caught in the
-act, sir!”</p>
-
-<p>“But not quite caught in the act, sir.
-There must have been an interval——”</p>
-
-<p>The Major raised a hand. “Pardon me
-again! Sir, what you speak of is a trifle, a
-bagatelle. And there was plenty of circumstantial<span class="pagenum">[78]</span>
-evidence—empty shell in the right-hand
-barrel of his gun—barrel fouled by the
-discharge. And he attempted no denial.
-Why, sir, he merely stood there and cursed
-me to my face, the scoundrel!”</p>
-
-<p>“And yet,” said Mr. Parker evenly, “I fear
-you were—and are—in error.”</p>
-
-<p>“Eh?” The Major bristled. “Eh? You
-fear I’m in error? Most extraordinary statement,
-sir! Do you mean to insinuate that
-nobody shot me?”</p>
-
-<p>“I merely suggest that you may not have
-been shot by Peter Groche.”</p>
-
-<p>“But who else under the canopy could it
-have been?”</p>
-
-<p>“I am afraid, as I told you—afraid that it
-was my son.”</p>
-
-<p>“What!” Up sprang the Major. “Man,
-what do you mean? This boy?” He
-whipped about, and peered at Sam. “Why,
-he’s a mere child! Preposterous, sir; utterly
-preposterous!”</p>
-
-<p>“I wish that it were!” said Mr. Parker,
-with feeling. “But the fact remains that
-he insists he was gunning this morning
-in Marlow woods; and that he declares that<span class="pagenum">[79]</span>
-he mistook a man for a deer, and fired at
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Tush, tush! That’s all a piece of boyish
-imagination. He’s been reading dime novels!
-Haven’t you, young man?” And the Major
-shook a bony forefinger in Sam’s face.</p>
-
-<p>“No, sir; I haven’t.” Sam spoke firmly,
-and his eyes did not fall before the Major’s.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you expect me to believe you were the
-fellow who winged me?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>The Major went back to his chair. He
-dropped into it almost limply. “Out with
-your story, boy!” said he. “I’ll listen—I’ve
-got to, I suppose.”</p>
-
-<p>The dreaded moment had arrived. Sam
-nerved himself to the task before him. The
-keen, old eyes under the bushy brows never
-left his face. He felt that they were penetrating
-every secret of his soul. But, after all, he
-had nothing but the truth to tell; and there
-was nothing he wished to conceal. Slowly at
-first, and then more rapidly, if not more
-easily, he reviewed the events of the morning.
-He dealt with his hunt through the woods;
-described the twin ridges and the valley<span class="pagenum">[80]</span>
-between. Then the Major broke in upon
-him.</p>
-
-<p>“By Jove, boy, but you have the lay of the
-land pat!” he exclaimed. “Go over that
-again, please—about the bushes where you
-hid, and the others where you saw something
-move.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam repeated this part of his story. The
-Major stalked to a closet, and stalked back,
-carrying a woolen cap, dark red in color.</p>
-
-<p>“Was that what you saw?” he demanded
-grimly.</p>
-
-<p>“It might have been—I’m not certain.”</p>
-
-<p>The Major thrust a finger into a hole in the
-cap.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s where one shot went through.
-But, by the great horn spoon, Parker! what’s
-a man to do to secure reasonable safety in the
-woods these times? I put on a red cap to
-warn gunners not to pot me for a deer. Have
-I got to wear sleigh-bells, or carry an automobile
-horn, to let ’em know it’s a human being
-that’s coming? I must say things are at
-a pretty pass, when anybody who wants venison
-has to take his life in his hand to get it!”</p>
-
-<p>“Agreed!” said Mr. Parker. “That’s one<span class="pagenum">[81]</span>
-of the reasons why I’ve practically dropped
-hunting. But that cap, now—strikes me the
-red might not show very clearly among the
-dead leaves.”</p>
-
-<p>“What I saw seemed to be dark rather than
-red,” Sam explained.</p>
-
-<p>The Major pulled at his tuft of beard. “All
-most extraordinary and yet—queer how the
-thing might have happened, as the boy says.
-I’d half made up my mind that scoundrel
-was gunning for me; so, naturally
-enough, when that charge of buckshot came
-my way, I looked where I thought it probably
-came from. And the puff of smokeless powder
-isn’t much—it’d have been gone in a few
-seconds. And sound fools you on direction.
-Expecting attack from a certain quarter, I’d
-be pretty sure to place the sound there,
-whether or no. And the boy declares he was
-right across the gulch? Umph!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam resumed his account. He made confession
-to his fright; to the moments which
-passed before he dared to look at the farther
-ridge, even though he heard the loud crackling
-of branches.</p>
-
-<p>The Major nodded. “That fits, too. Soon as<span class="pagenum">[82]</span>
-I could wrap a handkerchief about the bleeding
-paw I was off after Groche. But finally
-you crossed over to see what you’d bagged,
-eh? Umph! Why didn’t you run away?”</p>
-
-<p>“I—I didn’t think I should.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wanted to, didn’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed I did, sir!”</p>
-
-<p>“Umph!” said the Major again. “Well,
-go on. What did you find?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam described the trampled brush and the
-spots of blood on the leaves. Also he related
-his vain effort to follow the trail.</p>
-
-<p>The Major was scowling fiercely. “That’s
-all, eh? Enough, too, I must say! No, it
-isn’t, either. Look here, young man! I suppose
-I must accept this story. You’ve just
-missed committing murder—yes, murder!
-Abominable recklessness, abominable! And
-criminal, highly criminal! You’ve rendered
-yourself liable to a heavy penalty. You’ll
-have to suffer——”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker spoke sharply and emphatically:
-“That is not at present under discussion. Our
-immediate interest is justice to a wrongly arrested
-man.”</p>
-
-<p>Up went the Major’s warlike eyebrows.<span class="pagenum">[83]</span>
-“Eh? What’s that? Justice, you say?”
-Then he whipped about to Sam. “Boy, do
-you understand the situation in which you’ve
-placed yourself? Want justice done, do you?
-That’ll mean trouble for you. Don’t quibble!
-Why didn’t you let well enough alone?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why—why, sir——”</p>
-
-<p>“Umph! Your father’s responsible, of
-course, for your telling the story.”</p>
-
-<p>Again Mr. Parker intervened. “Not so
-fast, Major. Of his own volition Sam told me
-what had happened. The affair was a complete
-surprise to me. It was my suggestion
-that he repeat his statement to you rather
-than to the police—and there my responsibility
-begins. But I’ll add that, as it has
-begun, I shall regard it as continuing until
-this matter is settled.”</p>
-
-<p>“Eh?” The Major looked more hostile
-than ever. “Am I to accept that as a declaration
-that you are backing the boy?”</p>
-
-<p>“You may accept it as meaning that while
-I regret deeply his rashness and its results,
-now that he has made confession, I’m backing
-him, as you term it—and I shall continue to
-back him.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[84]</span></p>
-
-<p>There could be no mistaking Mr. Parker’s
-earnestness and determination. A thrill shot
-through Sam. He flashed a grateful glance
-at his father; then turned to face the Major.</p>
-
-<p>The countenance of the grizzled warrior
-offered a rare study in conflicting emotions.
-It betrayed anger, but it also suggested chagrin.
-Moreover, there was a hint of admiration.
-There was an instant in which Sam
-believed that the Major was about to attempt
-personal chastisement on the spot; there was
-another in which he wondered if the old man
-were not struggling with a sense of helplessness.
-Then, of a sudden, the Major laughed
-explosively.</p>
-
-<p>“Ha, ha! By the great horn spoon, Parker!
-I’d do the same, if I stood in your shoes!
-Blood’s thicker than water, every time. Ought
-to be, by Jove! when it’s good blood. And
-it’s good blood that’s made your boy own his
-mistake and step forward, like a man, to bear
-the consequences. I hate a sneak, but I take
-off my hat to a real man, no matter whether
-he’s young or old. There, there! Hear me
-out! This thing came near enough to being
-my funeral to justify me in attending to the<span class="pagenum">[85]</span>
-arrangements. I’ll telephone to the police,
-and withdraw my charge against Groche; and
-I’ll keep my own counsel about why I withdraw
-it. That’s all right—accidents will happen,
-and when you’re satisfied a thing is an
-accident, there’s nothing to do but grin and
-bear it. Our young friend here can learn a
-lesson, and be more careful in future. No
-need for him to gossip about it, eh?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam was speechless at this amazing turn
-for the better in his affairs; but his father
-came to the rescue.</p>
-
-<p>“Major, you’re most kindly and generous.
-If there’s anything I can do, command me!
-If Groche threatens proceedings for illegal
-arrest you must permit me to guarantee you
-against loss in any way.”</p>
-
-<p>The Major shook his head. “Very good of
-you, sir, but unnecessary—quite. Groche’s
-language was so abusive that a charge of noise
-and brawl would lie against him; and, no
-doubt, the officers will hold him overnight
-for safe-keeping, and turn him loose in the
-morning. And he’ll be content to drop the
-case, so far as the law goes; for he has no
-love for courts of any sort. But, young man”—he<span class="pagenum">[86]</span>
-turned to Sam, and there was a wry grin
-curling his fierce moustache—“young man,
-you’ve robbed me of the consolation of being
-a public benefactor. If I could put that
-scoundrel behind the bars, at cost of a flesh
-wound or two, I’d count the pain as nothing
-compared with the service to the community.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam found tongue. “I wish I could tell
-you, sir, how sorry I am for—for shooting
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>Once more the Major laughed, and his hand
-fell, in friendly fashion, on Sam’s shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>“Boy, I’ve been wounded four times,” he
-said, “but this is the first time the fellow who
-hit me has had the grace to apologize.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[87]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">THE RECKONING</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Sam awoke to find the sunshine pouring
-through the window of his room. Overnight
-there had been a change for the better in the
-weather, and Sunday had dawned clear and
-bright.</p>
-
-<p>The boy yawned, stretched himself luxuriously,
-rubbed the lingering sleepiness out of
-his eyes. There was a blissful moment, in
-which he felt himself in harmony with the
-unclouded morning, refreshed, untroubled.
-Then, of a sudden, came recollection of the
-events of the day before, and understanding
-that there was still a reckoning to be paid.
-He might have nothing to fear from courts
-and officers of the law; Major Bates, ordinarily
-warlike, had been brought to prefer peace to
-hostilities; but he had yet to reach complete
-understanding with his father.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker and Sam had exchanged hardly
-a word while they walked home from the<span class="pagenum">[88]</span>
-Major’s house; but at their own door the
-father had paused briefly.</p>
-
-<p>“You’d better turn in, Sam,” he had said.
-“We’ll have to go over this matter pretty
-carefully, but I’m not prepared to do so
-to-night. And I fancy your own ideas will
-be none the worse for a little revision, and a
-clearer head in the morning.”</p>
-
-<p>But Sam, going to his room, had found
-himself very wakeful. Half an hour later his
-mother had looked in, and discovered him,
-fully dressed and huddled in a big chair; and
-glad, indeed, to see her, as it proved. She
-had had no reproaches to shower upon him—Sam
-had wondered if his father’s explanation
-of his misdeeds had not been extremely merciful;
-and she had slipped an arm about him,
-and “mothered” him most comfortingly.
-And, presently, had appeared her handmaiden
-and his own loyal ally, Maggie, bearing
-a tray on which were a bowl of milk and
-a plate of crackers. Sam, who might have
-vowed that he wasn’t hungry, in a second had
-become acutely aware of a lack of something
-under his belt, and had fallen to with a right
-good will, his mother watching him approvingly<span class="pagenum">[89]</span>
-and Maggie voicing her satisfaction in
-her own fashion.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, say, ma’am, will you look at that,
-now? It’s not a morsel of supper the poor
-boy’ll have been puttin’ tooth to! And
-him sayin’ nothing about it—no; nor his
-father, either! They’re like as two peas
-in some ways, ma’am. Oh, them men, them
-men!”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb">
-
-<p>These were the brighter spots in Sam’s
-memories. They were pleasant to dwell
-upon; but they could not relieve the general
-gravity of the case. A very sober youth it
-was who dressed mechanically and in due
-course appeared at breakfast. A deal to his
-surprise his father and mother greeted him
-quite as usual. There was nothing to suggest
-that they regarded him either as a repentant
-offender or as a hero. At Sunday-school he
-had another experience of the same sort; for
-his friends hailed him with matter-of-fact
-heartiness. Both Step and Poke appeared to
-have lived down their domestic unpopularity,
-resulting from the incident of the hungry
-hound, and to be disposed to regard the world<span class="pagenum">[90]</span>
-cheerfully, with no suspicion that he was not
-entirely of their way of thinking.</p>
-
-<p>There was interest displayed in the news
-that Peter Groche, after a night in the lock-up,
-had been released from custody; but it occurred
-to none of Sam’s chums to connect the
-circumstance with his adventures as a deer
-hunter. Groche, presented with his freedom,
-had walked off, mumbling and grumbling.
-The popular theory was that, sooner or later,
-he would try to “get even” with the Major,
-his old grudge being heightened by the recent
-episode.</p>
-
-<p>“Funny how the Major let up on him!”
-Poke ruminated. “Well, you never can tell
-what’ll happen. But I guess there must have
-been some weak spot, after all, in the case.
-If there wasn’t, the Major would have hung
-on like a bulldog.”</p>
-
-<p>“Gee, but I wouldn’t have him after me—not
-for a farm!” quoth Step.</p>
-
-<p>Sam held his peace. He might have shed
-fresh light upon the peculiarities of the old
-soldier, but the present time was not opportune.
-He had little share in the talk as
-the boys walked home together; and the<span class="pagenum">[91]</span>
-mood of silence held him through dinner.
-Then his father proposed a stroll, and the boy
-accepted the invitation.</p>
-
-<p>On the top of a hill overlooking the town—not
-only a sightly place but also one ensuring
-freedom from interruption—father and son
-had their discussion calmly and deliberately.</p>
-
-<p>“Sam,” Mr. Parker began, “I’m not going
-to preach a sermon, but I’m going to take a
-text. You supplied it when you told me last
-night that you didn’t regard lack of direct
-prohibition as making a very good excuse for
-what you did. The trouble is, you reached
-that opinion after the fact. In the beginning,
-I dare say, it seemed quite reasonable to do
-the thing which wasn’t forbidden.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, sir, I—I did it,” said Sam sheepishly.</p>
-
-<p>“Exactly! And, in doing it, you yielded
-to impulse.”</p>
-
-<p>“I sup-suppose so.”</p>
-
-<p>“You had no wish, no intention, to harm
-anybody,” Mr. Parker went on. “You desired
-to go hunting—I’ve felt the desire; I
-know what it is. Then there was my gun,
-fairly thrusting itself upon you—seemed that
-way, didn’t it?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[92]</span></p>
-
-<p>“You’re telling it, sir, as if you’d stood in
-my shoes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Many a time! I’ve been a boy myself.
-Also I haven’t forgotten, Sam, the scrapes
-into which I fell. Some of them taught me a
-lesson—a lesson you’ll have to learn some
-day. But to get back to the gun. There it
-was, ready to your hand. You took it. You
-put a supply of cartridges in your pocket.
-Your mother was not at home. You were too
-impatient to await her return. So off you
-hurried, taking chances, but meaning no harm.
-You were very sure of yourself; you knew
-something about firearms; you were confident
-that you wouldn’t hurt yourself or anybody
-else. You thought you were extremely careful
-in the woods. Yet there you took another
-chance, still meaning no harm, but barely
-escaping homicide.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know that, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“You can count yourself most fortunate that
-the results were not more serious. But I
-won’t dwell upon what might have happened.
-What did happen was quite enough to give
-you food for thought, and to point the moral of
-your experience. And that is that before you<span class="pagenum">[93]</span>
-go ahead you should do your best to be sure
-you’re right.”</p>
-
-<p>“After this I’ll be sure!”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker smiled a little oddly. “I ask
-only, Sam, that you do your best to be sure.
-Often you have to take risks—the practical
-point is to avoid the unnecessary risks. Hear
-me through! At sixteen you’re not going to
-develop the wisdom and foresight of a grown
-man. I’m not going to demand the impossible.
-I am going, though, to urge you to
-profit by the mistakes you’ve made—and that,
-Sam, is the one best use to make of mistakes.”</p>
-
-<p>“You mean, not to repeat ’em?”</p>
-
-<p>“That is precisely my meaning.”</p>
-
-<p>“Trust me!” cried Sam, with conviction.</p>
-
-<p>“I am going to trust you,” said his father.
-“In the first place, I am going to assume that
-we have no need to talk about punishment;
-perhaps you’ve had a reasonable amount of it
-as it is, for I suspect you have passed some
-very trying hours. At the same time, though,
-I’m not prepared to treat this affair as a wholly
-closed chapter. I think it will be better for
-all concerned if you regard yourself, for the
-next few months, as on probation.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[94]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I don’t quite understand.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, in other words, you may consider
-yourself as under test. And the test will be
-the extent to which you have profited by
-what has taken place.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Sam. “Then you’re waiting
-to see if I’ve really learned the lesson?”</p>
-
-<p>“You have the idea.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam knit his brows. “It’s awfully kind of
-you, Father—it’s greater mercy than I’d
-hoped for. I—I’ll try my prettiest to deserve
-it. And—and will everything go on just as—just
-as before?”</p>
-
-<p>“As nearly as may be. Only that brings
-me to my second point. It has to do with
-St. Mark’s.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Sam again, a bit apprehensively,
-it must be admitted.</p>
-
-<p>“I think,” said his father slowly, “that for
-the present we’ll hold in abeyance any plans
-for sending you away to school. Don’t regard
-this as a punishment; it is merely part
-of the probation. St. Mark’s, as you know,
-allows its students much liberty. It treats
-them almost as if they were men. And,
-frankly, Sam, it remains for you to prove that<span class="pagenum">[95]</span>
-you deserve such confidence. As the boys
-say, it’s up to you.”</p>
-
-<p>The blow to the boy’s hopes was harder than
-his father realized. For months Sam had been
-counting upon an early transfer to the famous
-preparatory school. At his books, and in
-sports, he had striven with an eye to the
-St. Mark’s standards; he had read everything
-concerning the academy upon which he could
-lay hands; he had thought of St. Mark’s by
-day and dreamed of it at night. And now, of
-a sudden, he learned that his goal was not
-near, but at a distance which seemed to be all
-the more unhappy because of its vagueness.
-Yet, very pluckily, he rallied from the shock.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir; it’s up to me—I understand,”
-said he. “I’ve got to show that I’m not an
-utter idiot, that I have some common sense.
-And I will show it, I will! If I don’t, I
-won’t be worth sending to St. Mark’s or—or
-anywhere else!”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[96]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">BEGINNING THE TEST</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The junior class of the Plainville High
-School probably was neither much better nor
-much worse than the classes which had preceded
-it, and the other classes which were following
-it, along the paths of knowledge. It
-had its bright boys and girls and its dullards;
-its examples of industry and of idleness; its
-workers and its shirkers; its happy-go-lucky
-members, who made the most of the day without
-thought of the morrow, and its budding politicians,
-who laid wires and pulled them with
-an eye to future advantage. Perhaps the most
-distinguishing peculiarity of the class, however,
-was the influence exerted by a group of
-boys, with some of whom we have become acquainted.</p>
-
-<p>Just why the Safety First Club (lately the
-Adelphi) should have been so potent a factor
-was not easily explained. The faculty, which
-had suspicion rather than understanding<span class="pagenum">[97]</span>
-of the fact, did not try to explain it, while
-certain ambitious youths, not of the charmed
-circle, insisted that it could not be made clear.
-The club did not include the coming valedictorian
-or salutatorian; it had none of the
-most distinguished athletes; yet the truth remained
-that its backing was a prime necessity
-to secure success in any class undertaking. If
-there were a fund to be raised for the ball
-team, or if a picnic were planned or a Christmas
-jollification, wise promoters at once sought
-the endorsement of the club. As it usually was
-given in generous measure, there was little
-general criticism of the coterie, though, as was
-inevitable, there were envious ones who lost
-no opportunity privately to say unpleasant
-things about the members, singly and collectively.</p>
-
-<p>In this, of course, jealousy figured. Several
-of the boys deeply resented the failure of the
-club to invite them to become members; and
-the feeling was bitterest in the case of one
-Thomas Orkney.</p>
-
-<p>Now and then one comes upon a striking
-example of the square peg in the round hole.
-Orkney did not fit. He was comparatively a<span class="pagenum">[98]</span>
-new boy in Plainville, having lived there but
-two or three years, and having come with
-some very firmly established notions of his
-own importance. At bottom he had his virtues—plenty
-of them, no doubt; but they
-were overlaid and concealed by a highly unfortunate
-manner. His early study had been
-under tutors, who had helped him to better
-knowledge of his text-books than to preparation
-for what may be called the rough-and-tumble
-experiences of recitations in a large
-class. If he blundered, and the division
-laughed, that was a black day in his calendar;
-and he scowled and sulked, and cherished a
-grudge against those who had led in the merriment.
-Worst of all, he often found means
-to settle these scores, and so had contrived to
-make himself exceedingly unpopular among
-his classmates; though, as it happened, he also
-drew to himself a few supporters and adherents
-from among the discontented element,
-which is so frequently to be observed in any
-organization.</p>
-
-<p>While it could not be said that the juniors
-were sharply divided into factions, it was certainly
-true that the relations of the club and<span class="pagenum">[99]</span>
-of the Orkney “crowd” were strained. Recently
-there had been two or three incidents,
-trifling in themselves, but together doing a
-good deal to increase the rivalry.</p>
-
-<p>Oddly enough, Step Jones, one of the most
-peaceful of mortals, had succeeded in enraging
-Orkney. Step, as a rule, was no shining star
-of scholarship; but by some mental twist he
-was a very planet in Greek. In Latin he was
-merely fair, and in French not quite so good,
-while the less said of his algebra and geometry
-the better; but, in the speech of his friends,
-he took to Greek as a duck takes to water.
-Poke Green accused him of “reading ahead”
-in Xenophon for the fun of the thing; and
-declined to withdraw the charge in spite of his
-almost tearful denials, holding, indeed, that it
-was confirmed by Step’s success in translating
-a “sight” passage, which Tom Orkney had
-stumbled over. Poke forgot all about the episode
-in an hour, but Tom added another to
-his growing list of grievances against the club.
-His average for the term was far above Step’s,
-but he begrudged the lanky youth even a
-trifling triumph. And then came the matter
-of Willy Reynolds.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[100]</span></p>
-
-<p>It may throw light upon the personality
-of Master Reynolds to explain that he was
-equally well known as Willy and the “Shark,”
-neither being used offensively, though one had
-a suggestion of mildness and the other of
-ferocity. He was, in fact, a little fellow,
-slender, stoop-shouldered, and physically the
-weakest boy in the class. Yet no other junior
-was less teased or picked upon. Practical
-jokers passed by Willy Reynolds. There was
-a gravity about him, not owlish, but distinctly
-discouraging to frivolity; and an almost hypnotic
-influence in his meditative and unwavering
-gaze. He had the prominent eyes of
-the near-sighted; and he had, too, the unconscious
-trick of staring steadfastly at man
-or thing of whose very existence he was
-barely conscious; and as he stared through
-big, round lenses, set in a heavy black frame,
-the effect was impressive, if not terrifying.
-Consequently, even the most mischievous of
-his mates preferred to let him alone, especially
-as they had honest respect for his
-signal ability in his specialty.</p>
-
-<p>Young Reynolds was a mathematician born.
-Languages he endured as unavoidable subjects<span class="pagenum">[101]</span>
-of study; but he reveled in equations and
-demonstrations, made child’s play of the required
-algebra and geometry—thereby earning
-his nickname of the “Shark”—and carried
-on advanced work under the eye of the
-principal, himself an adept of the mathematical
-brotherhood. Willy, of course, was destined
-for scientific courses at college; but
-meanwhile, tarrying with the junior class,
-he filled his contemporaries with wonder and
-admiration. For example, he solved at sight
-a problem to which Tom Orkney had devoted
-vain and wearisome hours. It was all in the
-day’s work for the Shark, but Orkney noted another
-score to be repaid with compound interest.</p>
-
-<p>Sam Parker had been a witness of Tom’s
-discomfiture on both occasions; but, as may
-be imagined, was not concerning himself
-deeply with the sullen youth’s moods. As
-he himself would have put it, he had troubles
-enough of his own, and was fully occupied
-with his own affairs when he went to school
-on Monday morning. On the way he fell in
-with Step and Poke. The latter was full of
-the mystery attending the release of Peter
-Groche.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[102]</span></p>
-
-<p>“It’s mighty queer—our folks were talking
-it over at breakfast,” said he. “Course, there
-was a mistake somewhere, or Major Bates
-never would have let him go. But Peter
-didn’t let out a word—just growled, and
-grumbled, and took himself off, shaking his
-head. He wouldn’t deny that he shot the
-Major. The police asked him about it, but
-he gave them no satisfaction. He’s a bad
-one, I tell you! Regular Indian, if he gets
-down on anybody!”</p>
-
-<p>“All the more wonder that the Major
-dropped the case,” declared Step. “He knows
-Groche from A to Z.”</p>
-
-<p>Poke wagged his head. “There you are!
-Makes the business all the queerer. Each of
-them is a sticker, in his own way. And the
-Major had Groche just where he wanted him.
-And then, all of a sudden, he let up! What
-do you make of that, now?”</p>
-
-<p>“Beats me,” Step confessed.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s your notion, Sam?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam did not meet Poke’s inquiring glance.
-“I think,” he said slowly, “that something
-must have happened to show the Major that
-Groche hadn’t shot him.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[103]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Huh! How do you make that out?”
-queried Step.</p>
-
-<p>“That’d mean somebody else did the shooting,”
-observed Poke, the philosopher. “The
-Major was hit, fast enough—peppered in the
-head and in one hand. And he didn’t do it
-himself.”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course not,” said Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“Therefore, some one else did. The Major
-was sure Groche was the some one. Then he
-wasn’t sure. In between he’d found out something.
-Q. E. D.—as the Shark would remark.”</p>
-
-<p>“Q. E. D.,” repeated Sam, for want of anything
-better.</p>
-
-<p>Step grunted. “Huh! Bet you he’d found
-out who was who and what was what! But
-that just thickens the fog.”</p>
-
-<p>“How so?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why didn’t he have the other fellow
-locked up in Groche’s place?”</p>
-
-<p>“Jiminy! that’s a good point!” cried
-Poke.</p>
-
-<p>Sam said nothing, and for a moment the
-three trudged on in silence.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, well,” said Poke at last, “the Major
-knows now, but we’ll know sooner or later.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[104]</span></p>
-
-<p>“How’s that?” Sam asked quickly.</p>
-
-<p>Poke shrugged his shoulders. “Oh, things
-are bound to come out. They always do. It’s
-just like a dog burying a bone—if he doesn’t
-dig it up, some other dog will.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t you believe a secret can be kept?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I can’t remember keeping many
-myself,” chuckled Poke. “And they say
-murder will out, you know. This wasn’t
-murder, of course, but it came uncomfortably
-near it.”</p>
-
-<p>“It sure did!” agreed Step.</p>
-
-<p>Sam dug his hands deeper in his pockets.
-Being human, and companionable, and very
-fond of Poke and Step, he had been sorely
-tempted to confide in his friends. But the
-Major had warned him not to gossip about the
-affair, and the Major’s wish naturally had
-great weight. As for Poke’s theory that the
-story would become known generally, sooner
-or later—well, Sam had his doubts. So far as
-he knew, only his parents and the Major
-shared with him knowledge of what had happened
-in the woods.</p>
-
-<p>In school that day Sam studied hard and
-paid close attention to the recitations. That<span class="pagenum">[105]</span>
-was part of his plan for proving to his father
-that he could deserve confidence. When the
-class was dismissed, he made careful selection
-of the books he would need for home study,
-and so was a little behind his mates in leaving
-the building. Within a hundred yards of the
-school-ground gates, however, he overtook a
-group of boys, clustered closely about two disputants.
-One, as he saw, was Step; the other,
-Tom Orkney.</p>
-
-<p>From a little distance the Shark was regarding
-the squabble through his big glasses.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s the row about?” Sam asked as he
-came up.</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing!” said the Shark. “That’s why
-they’re making such a fuss.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam laughed, but quickly grew serious.
-Both Step and Tom were talking loudly, each
-hurling threats and defiance at the other;
-Step’s long arms were going like a windmill’s,
-while Orkney’s fists were doubled. From his
-acquaintance with the methods of adolescent
-controversy it appeared to be probable that
-words were about to lead to blows.</p>
-
-<p>“Just one of Orkney’s grouches,” the Shark
-went on indifferently. “He’s been ruffling<span class="pagenum">[106]</span>
-his feathers at Step ever since that business
-in Greek the other day.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam nodded. “That, eh? But they’re going
-too far—they’ll be mixing it up.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Step’s got the reach by fully four
-inches.”</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe, but Orkney’s a tough customer.”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark turned, and deliberately inspected
-Sam from head to foot. “You could
-do him up,” he said with cold-blooded calmness.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps. That isn’t saying Step could,
-though. He hasn’t weight enough.”</p>
-
-<p>At this instant Orkney, catching sight of
-Sam in the background, changed his tactics.
-He moved away from Step, and lowered his
-hands.</p>
-
-<p>“So that’s the game, is it?” he taunted.
-“Keep blustering, but be sure not to hit a fellow
-till your gang’s here to back you—that’s
-your way, Step Jones. Had to wait for Sam
-Parker, didn’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>Step’s anger was that of the patient man,
-slow to kindle but hard to extinguish. He
-struck at his opponent, but long as his arm
-was, missed him by inches.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[107]</span></p>
-
-<p>Sam instinctively started forward, and
-forced a way through the ring. Tom fell
-back a pace.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s right! Pile on—the whole gang
-of you!” he shouted.</p>
-
-<p>Step, for his part, was more than ready to
-accept the challenge; but Sam intervened.
-Impulse—he was willing enough to fight
-Orkney—had yielded to sobering second
-thought. It behooved a young man, intent
-upon establishing his self-control and common
-sense, to avoid brawling over a trifle on the
-public street. Sam’s hand caught Step’s collar.</p>
-
-<p>“Here! Drop the fighting!” he commanded.</p>
-
-<p>Step wriggled, but the grip on his collar
-did not yield.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, let me at him!” he begged. “We
-might as well have it out—he’s been pestering
-me for a week.”</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind! He’ll stop it now.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I will, will I?” snarled Orkney.
-“I’d like to know who’s going to make me!”</p>
-
-<p>“I might,” said Sam simply.</p>
-
-<p>“Bah! Dare you to try—alone!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[108]</span></p>
-
-<p>“That’s the way I will try it—some day,”
-Sam told him. “But not now; no, not now.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s right—safety first!” sneered the
-other.</p>
-
-<p>Sam grinned; and it was an odd grin.
-“Certainly; safety first!” said he.</p>
-
-<p>Step ceased to struggle; but, twisting his
-neck, stared at his friend. And then the
-Shark chose to advance.</p>
-
-<p>“Sam’s right,” he announced coolly. “This
-is no place for a scrap. Besides, there’s no
-reason for one. Orkney, you’re a chump to
-be peeved at Step for doing you up in Greek,
-or at me for putting you out at geometry.
-See here! You’re a pretty good, all-round
-performer, but you can’t beat specialists at
-their own specialties. Get that? And there’s
-no use in being a general sorehead.”</p>
-
-<p>It was eloquent tribute to the Shark’s moral
-influence that Orkney appeared to be impressed.
-At all events, though he scowled
-fiercely, he received the advice in silence.
-Two or three boys on the outskirts of the
-group began to move off. To Sam it seemed
-to be probable that the storm had blown over.
-He released his hold upon Step’s collar; whereupon<span class="pagenum">[109]</span>
-Step, still wrathful, took two long strides;
-found himself beside Orkney; plucked off his
-opponent’s cap, and sent it flying through the
-air. It sailed over a fence, struck the trunk
-of a tree, and dropped to the ground.</p>
-
-<p>Orkney bristled, but Sam already had laid
-hands upon Step, and was dragging him back.</p>
-
-<p>“Here! Quit all this foolishness!” the
-peacemaker ordered.</p>
-
-<p>“Make him get that cap, then!” Orkney
-insisted.</p>
-
-<p>“Won’t!” cried Step, and struggled to
-break from Sam’s hold.</p>
-
-<p>Again the Shark intervened. “No; it was
-a kid trick, but now that it’s done, we’ll let
-it stay done. Orkney, if you hadn’t bulldozed
-Step, and started the whole thing, the
-cap would still be on your head. So I guess
-it’s up to you to put it back there—or let it
-stay where it is.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sure! It was a six-year-old’s performance,
-but the Shark has the right notion,”
-Sam agreed.</p>
-
-<p>There was an instant in which Orkney hesitated
-between war and peace. Then he reached
-a decision which was compromise—and as unsatisfactory<span class="pagenum">[110]</span>
-as compromises often are. He
-neither gave battle nor retrieved his headgear.
-Instead, with a parting scowl, which
-included all the allies, he wheeled, and
-marched away, bareheaded.</p>
-
-<p>“You, Step, you bring that cap to my house,
-or you’ll be sorry!” he called back over his
-shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>“Never!” shouted Step defiantly.</p>
-
-<p>The Shark stared at the retreating figure.
-“I’ll be hanged if the whole bunch oughtn’t to
-be back in the kindergarten,” was his comment.
-“Of all idiocies! You plumb make me tired,
-Step—you and that runaway pal of yours!”</p>
-
-<p>“But you wouldn’t get his cap for him if
-you were in my place,” Step insisted.</p>
-
-<p>“But I’m not in your place,” said the Shark
-drily.</p>
-
-<p>Sam shook his head. “Let’s stop this
-squabbling, fellows. One row’s enough at a
-time. Or, better yet, let’s end one without
-starting another.”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark’s expression was thoughtful.
-“If we have ended one,” said he. “Orkney’s
-a queer duck. There may be more to this
-ridiculous affair than we dream.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[111]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">POKE AND STEP PUT THEIR HEADS TOGETHER</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Memory of the successful raid by Mr. Mercer’s
-big hound and its unhappy results
-rankled in the breasts of Poke and Step.</p>
-
-<p>It was one thing, they agreed, to be joint
-victims of hard luck; but it was quite another
-thing—and a deal harder to endure—to
-behold the author of their misfortunes jogging
-about the streets, wholly unpunished for his
-misdeeds. Step even had a gloomy notion
-that the dog was plumper than usual, which,
-if well founded, was higher tribute to the
-nourishing qualities of the looted chicken
-than to the prevalence of even-handed justice,
-to Step’s way of thinking. This view,
-confided to Poke, met ready acceptance.</p>
-
-<p>“Sure thing! And there ought to be something
-we could do about it,” observed Poke.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I’ll find a way to get even,” Step
-declared.</p>
-
-<p>“How?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[112]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you wait, and you’ll see,” said Step
-darkly.</p>
-
-<p>Poke, as has been related, had leanings
-toward philosophy. Now he meditated briefly.</p>
-
-<p>“See here, Step!” he said. “If you’re
-going to get at this thing, you’d better get at
-it right. You ought to teach him a lesson.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s just what I’ll do!”</p>
-
-<p>Poke shook his head. “No; you don’t get
-me. You’re thinking of letting drive a stone
-at him, or giving him a whipping, but what’d
-be the use? He wouldn’t know why you
-did it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! Guess he would,” growled Step.</p>
-
-<p>“He wouldn’t,” Poke insisted. “That is,
-he wouldn’t unless you schemed out a way
-to remind him of the stolen rooster. There’s
-got to be something to make him see there’s
-a connection—get me?”</p>
-
-<p>Step sniffed contemptuously. “What you
-want me to do? Make him a speech or send
-him a letter about it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Neither,” quoth Poke calmly. “But unless
-you make him understand that he’s being
-punished for stealing, he’ll think you’re
-thrashing him out of pure meanness.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[113]</span></p>
-
-<p>Step rubbed his chin. “I suppose that’s
-so,” he admitted. “But how can you work
-it? How can you make him understand?
-I’m weak on dog-lingo, myself.”</p>
-
-<p>Poke smiled, a little pityingly. “Listen,
-and I’ll tell you something I read the other
-day. There was a chap who owned a dog,
-and he was a bully dog, except that he would
-steal chickens. So the man tied a dead hen
-to his collar, and left it there till—well, till
-that dog didn’t want ever to see another one
-or get anywhere near it. And that’s my idea—something
-like it, anyway—for teaching
-the hound a lesson.”</p>
-
-<p>Step began to take interest. “Gee, but you
-have got an idea there! Only, if there’s anything
-left of the chicken he stole, we don’t
-know where to find it. And——”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t need to!” Poke broke in. “Look
-here now! Say you’re dealing with chickens.
-What do you come to first?”</p>
-
-<p>“Hen-house,” said Step promptly.</p>
-
-<p>Poke frowned. “No, no! Wake up! You
-come first to the feathers.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, that way? Yes!”</p>
-
-<p>The frown vanished. “Exactly!” said<span class="pagenum">[114]</span>
-Poke. “So, if we teach that dog to let feathers
-alone, he won’t bother many chickens—see?”</p>
-
-<p>Step’s manner was slightly skeptical. “Oh,
-that’s easy to talk about, but, practically, how
-are you going——”</p>
-
-<p>Poke didn’t let him finish the sentence.
-“Ever smell burning feathers? Well, I guess
-you have, all right! And don’t you think
-that if we tie a pail to his collar, and there
-are some burning feathers in the pail, Mr.
-Dog’ll get enough of chickens to last him a
-lifetime?”</p>
-
-<p>Step was a generous fellow; he didn’t grudge
-a friend a triumph.</p>
-
-<p>“Gee, Poke, but you’re a corker! How’d
-you ever work that out? But I say! I can
-improve on the pail. Up in our attic’s one of
-those queer, old-fashioned lanterns with tin
-sides punched full of holes—like a colander,
-you know. And there’s a double chain to it—guess
-they used to hang it up outdoors. And
-there are snaps on the chain—might have
-been made for us. Only”—he paused an
-instant—“only how’re you going to be sure
-the stuff will burn?”</p>
-
-<p>Poke smiled the smile of easy confidence.<span class="pagenum">[115]</span>
-“Don’t you worry! A few rags soaked in
-kerosene, and stuffed in with the feathers will
-take care of that, all right!”</p>
-
-<p>From this discussion and activities which
-followed, it happened that when Sam turned
-a corner near Mr. Mercer’s gate he came upon
-his two chums engaged in friendly overtures
-to a large and somewhat suspicious dog.
-Poke, as he saw, had a tempting bit of meat,
-while Step held behind him a rusty contrivance
-of tin, from which loops of still more
-rusty chain depended.</p>
-
-<p>“Halloo! What’s up?” Sam demanded
-curiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, first class in dog manners—that’s all,”
-responded Step lightly.</p>
-
-<p>Poke whistled softly, and held the meat
-nearer the dog, which took a step forward,
-halted, eyed the tidbit greedily.</p>
-
-<p>Sam, far from clear as to what was afoot
-and inclined to caution not only by his new
-resolves but also by acquaintance with other
-ventures of his friends, watched the proceedings
-dubiously.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t yet grasp what’s the game,” he
-remarked.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[116]</span></p>
-
-<p>Poke was lavishing blandishments upon the
-dog, and extending the bait; so it was left to
-Step to make explanation.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s that chicken business. We’re going
-to get even—teach him a lesson, I mean....
-Got a scheme, a crackerjack scheme. Just
-you keep your eyes peeled.”</p>
-
-<p>“They’re peeled, all right, but——”
-Sam hesitated an instant. “I say, you
-fellows, better not get in trouble. Remember,
-you belong to the Safety First
-Club!”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! No chance of trouble—for us!”
-Step insisted. “Look here, Sam!” He displayed
-part of the chain with a snap at the
-end. “Two just like this—see? Well, we’re
-going to pass one of ’em around the dog’s
-neck, so-fashion.” In illustration he wound
-the chain about his own left wrist and for
-good measure took an extra turn. “Then we
-fasten it.” Another illustration, the rusty
-spring of the catch being moved with some
-difficulty. “Then, having fixed it so he can’t
-get rid of it, we——”</p>
-
-<p>There Step broke off, for good and sufficient
-reason. For things were beginning to happen,<span class="pagenum">[117]</span>
-and the procession of events was moving
-with startling speed.</p>
-
-<p>The dog, sacrificing caution to appetite,
-came within Poke’s reach; whereupon Poke,
-dropping the meat, caught the hound as he
-tried to gobble up the bait; deftly slipped the
-second chain about the animal’s neck, successfully
-worked the snap at the first attempt;
-wheeled; whipped out a match; struck it,
-and lighted a rag protruding like a fuse from
-the old tin lantern, which had been brought
-from behind Step’s back, as that youth gave
-Sam an object lesson.</p>
-
-<p>The kerosene-soaked rag flamed fiercely;
-almost instantly, dense black smoke began to
-pour from the holes in the lantern. Poke,
-who had been busy with the contrivance and
-the dog, with never a thought of complications
-involving his comrade, sprang back with
-a shout of glee, which perhaps added somewhat—though
-increase was scarcely needed—to
-the terror of the hound, which gave a panic-stricken
-howl and a tremendous bound.</p>
-
-<p>Step, who had been tearing desperately and
-quite vainly at the chain about his wrist—the
-rusty catch stuck as if it had been soldered—was<span class="pagenum">[118]</span>
-caught off his balance; dragged forward
-and into a run, which, under the circumstances,
-he could not check. The big dog, as
-heavy and powerful as many a sledge-team
-leader of the Far North, bolted wildly, yet
-with a general purpose; and this purpose being
-to seek asylum from the infernal machine
-at his heels, he dashed through the gate and
-toward the house, Step following, willy-nilly,
-his long legs flying and his long arms
-going like the arms of a windmill in a gale;
-while dangling from the chain between dog
-and boy, the old lantern emitted great volumes
-of choking smoke of most evil odor.</p>
-
-<p>“Say, Step, where you going?” shouted the
-bewildered Poke, who was still unaware of the
-difficulty in which his chum was involved.
-“What’s the matter? The pair of you look
-like an engine going to a fire!”</p>
-
-<p>Now to this Step, for perfectly good reasons,
-made no reply. And Poke, seeing that
-Sam was running after his friend, joined in
-the pursuit. So the procession swept up the
-drive, turned a corner of the house, and
-headed for the side porch, under which the
-dog had a den of his own, entrance to which<span class="pagenum">[119]</span>
-was secured by a break in the latticework.
-Through this opening he shot with a final
-tug of such violence that Step was jerked forward,
-falling on his knees, with his head close
-to the barrier. And as by this time his fright
-fairly matched the dog’s, and as he fell to
-shouting for help as lustily as he could against
-the odds of the suffocating smoke, which
-poured through the lattice, and as the dog
-was howling more madly than ever, it may be
-imagined that there was a pretty to-do under
-and about the side porch of the Mercer house.</p>
-
-<p>Sam and Poke, naturally enough, tried to
-drag Step back from his most unpleasant
-position; but the dog had braced himself, or
-the chain had caught on some obstruction, so
-that the only result of their endeavors was to
-pull Step’s knees from under him, drop him
-flat on his stomach, and leave him, if anything,
-rather more helpless than before. Moreover,
-the cook came hurrying from the kitchen and
-the hired man from the barn; and jumping to
-the conclusion that where there was so much
-smoke there surely must be fire, both dashed
-buckets of water with better intention than
-aim. Very little of the water passed through<span class="pagenum">[120]</span>
-the lattice; a fair share of it spattered Sam
-and Poke, and a great deal drenched the unhappy
-Step.</p>
-
-<p>The cook ran back to the kitchen for a
-fresh supply; but, luckily, the hired man,
-sighting the chain extending from Step’s
-wrist, laid hold upon it, and tugged with
-all his strength, and the dog, recognizing his
-voice, changed tactics, and charged from under
-the porch, bounding over the prostrate Step so
-swiftly that he turned a complete somersault,
-when the chain tautened again. The
-old lantern, still smoking voluminously, fell
-between boy and dog.</p>
-
-<p>“Jee-rusalem!” gasped the hired man in
-bewilderment.</p>
-
-<p>“Sa-sakes alive!” quavered the cook, who
-had reappeared with a freshly filled bucket.</p>
-
-<p>Poke began to laugh hysterically; but Sam
-kept his wits. He caught the bucket from the
-woman’s hand, and plunged the lantern into
-the water. There was a long, hissing sound, a
-final puff of steam—and then comparative
-peace.</p>
-
-<p>Step sat up. The dog, trembling like a
-leaf and whining weakly, crawled to the<span class="pagenum">[121]</span>
-hired man. From the vantage ground of
-the porch the cook spoke wonderingly and
-reprovingly:</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I vum, but you boys do beat my
-time! What on earth do you think you’re
-up to? Playin’ horse with poor Hector
-there?”</p>
-
-<p>“No—not a bit; ’twasn’t that at all!” protested
-Step.</p>
-
-<p>The cook sniffed. “Feathers—burnin’ feathers!
-I can tell ’em every time! But what’s
-your notion in puttin’ ’em in that thing?”
-And she pointed at the ancient lantern.</p>
-
-<p>Step got upon his feet. He fumbled at the
-chain at his wrist; and, by an irony of fate,
-the old catch now gave at a touch. Step
-rubbed the flesh into which the links had
-sunk. He tried to summon a propitiating
-smile.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, the feathers?” he said very mildly.
-“Oh, yes; the feathers. Why—why, we—we
-thought Hector there—he—well, he ought to
-know about ’em.”</p>
-
-<p>“Land o’ love! but the boy’s crazy!”</p>
-
-<p>The hired man scratched his head. “Must
-say it looks like it, Katy. Still, I dunno—boys’ll<span class="pagenum">[122]</span>
-be boys. And this young man acted
-’sif he was willin’ to learn same time Hector
-did. They were sharin’, and sharin’ alike, on
-the smudge-pot, te he!”</p>
-
-<p>Step scowled, but Poke burst into a roar
-of laughter, which eased the situation. The
-cook chuckled; Sam smiled. The hired man
-smote his thigh with his hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Gee-whillikens! but I never saw the like
-of it! And I guess no great harm’s done.
-Don’t seem to be no fire under the porch.”</p>
-
-<p>Then Poke found tongue. “It’s this way:
-The dog stole a chicken, and got us into a
-scrape. We thought we’d—er—er—we’d teach
-him a lesson and sicken him of stealing. And
-feathers and chickens go together—and—er—er—get
-the idea, don’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Sorter!” grinned the hired man. “Kind
-o’ think I do, sonny. And t’other fellow got
-tangled up, somehow. Wal, yes, I do see how
-’twas.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then, if you don’t mind, we’ll be going
-home.”</p>
-
-<p>The hired man waved his hand. “I would,
-if I was you,” he said. “I’d go home and
-get into some dry clothes.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[123]</span></p>
-
-<p>The three friends moved down the drive,
-with Step, a truly disconsolate and melancholy
-figure between the other two. For a
-little none of them spoke. It was left to
-Poke to break the silence with one of his bits
-of philosophy.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve got to live to learn,” quoth he.
-“Now, who’d have thought—no use, though,
-crying over spilt milk! And what on earth
-made Step want to chain himself up—no;
-we won’t talk about that, either. But I say,
-Sam, I tell you there’s a lot of sense in that
-notion of yours! Safety First for me after
-this—yes, sir; Safety First every time!”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[124]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">QUEER TROUBLES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>It is not to be supposed that Sam Parker,
-in spite of his exhibition of new self-control
-in the affair of Step and Tom Orkney, had
-taken on the gravity of years. There was,
-indeed, a change in the boy, but it was subtle
-rather than manifest. Sam worked a little
-harder than before, but played with no lack
-of zest. It was to be noted, however, that
-there was a decrease in the number of scrapes
-into which he fell.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps Hannibal, Sam’s bull terrier, was
-first to perceive, if not to understand, the
-change. Hannibal was a sagacious animal,
-beyond the follies of puppyhood, but still full
-of interest in the doings of his master and his
-friends; fond of a long tramp in their company;
-and very pleased to doze comfortably
-in a corner of the club room. The new days
-were much to Hannibal’s liking. Sam never
-had been cruel to him, but at times may have<span class="pagenum">[125]</span>
-been a bit thoughtless. Now, though, Hannibal
-enjoyed a degree of consideration quite
-unparalleled in his experience.</p>
-
-<p>Lon Gates, shrewdly observant, began to remark
-that Sam’s visits to the barn resulted in
-less disturbance of its orderly arrangements.</p>
-
-<p>“Ain’t had a hedgehog day lately, have you,
-Sam?” he queried. “World don’t seem to be
-so all-fired uncomfortably crowded as it was,
-eh? And I dunno’s there’s so much genooine
-solace in kickin’ over buckets as a feller might
-think there was.”</p>
-
-<p>“True enough, Lon,” said the boy soberly.</p>
-
-<p>The hired man grinned cheerfully. “They
-say nobody has to hunt for trouble, and I
-guess there’s sense in that. Still, it’s amazin’
-how often trouble’ll let you alone if you don’t
-go stirrin’ it up. There’s that wuthless scamp,
-Peter Groche, now. He wouldn’t ’a’ been
-locked up over night if he hadn’t been so cantankerous.
-Course, they really took him in
-on suspicion, and I must say Groche is about
-the suspicionest nuisance that infests these
-parts. And all he got out of bein’ ugly was a
-sleep behind the bars.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s so,” said Sam.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[126]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Funny how close-mouthed the Major is
-’bout the whole business,” Lon went on. “If
-only he’d talk he’d make things easier for
-quite a lot of the chaps that was out gunnin’
-that day.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes?”</p>
-
-<p>Lon chuckled. “Te he! There’s always a
-reg’lar bargain sale rush when the season
-opens, but this year it was wuss than usual.
-Seems as if everybody was sort o’ venison
-hungry; so it turns out there’s about a dozen
-fellers who ain’t been able to prove what you’d
-call a water-tight alibi. That is, they can’t
-bring witnesses to show that they didn’t pot
-the Major; and they’re bein’ joshed half out
-o’ their lives, some of ’em. You see, first and
-last, a sight o’ folks must have been prowlin’
-through Marlow woods that mornin’, and none
-of ’em happened to think to keep a time register.
-The huntin’ crowd’s all tore up about it.”</p>
-
-<p>“No doubt,” said Sam. If he had cared to
-meet Lon’s eye, he might have noted a twinkle,
-suggesting that the hired man had theories
-of his own as to the identity of the careless
-sportsman. But Sam avoided Lon’s gaze, and
-Lon chose not to make direct inquiry.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[127]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, this world does see a heap of entertainin’
-things, comin’ and goin’,” he observed.
-“Good scheme, too—keeps folks from stagnatin’
-and gettin’ as dull as ditch water.
-Plainville’s perkin’ up a lot because of the
-Major and his unknown party o’ the second
-part, as we’d be sayin’ if you and me was lawyers.”</p>
-
-<p>Here Lon spoke within the truth. The
-town was making a nine days’ wonder of the
-affair; and what the town talked, the school
-talked, and the club.</p>
-
-<p>Sam, so far as he could, kept out of the discussions;
-permitted his chums to speculate as
-they pleased; and watched and waited for the
-interest in the matter to wear itself out.</p>
-
-<p>Oddly enough, Peter Groche appeared to be
-following the same policy. He was about town
-as usual, doing odd jobs when work was unavoidable.
-No improvement was reported in
-his habits, but even in his cups his tongue
-was not loosed, so far as his feud with Major
-Bates and its recent development were concerned.
-He grumbled and made threats, to
-be sure, but he had been grumbling and threatening
-people for years; and from his incoherent<span class="pagenum">[128]</span>
-growls his cronies gained no information.
-If he had an inkling of the secret of
-Marlow woods, he was keeping it to himself.</p>
-
-<p>Step’s quarrel with Tom Orkney seemed to
-have led to nothing, even in the way of reprisals.
-There was no second demand upon
-Master Jones to recover the cap, nor was there
-formal notice that he should repay the owner
-for the seized property. In debates at the
-club the probability of the latter course had
-been stoutly upheld by Poke Green, who developed
-such concern in the outcome that he
-made a searching expedition, from which he
-bore back tidings that the cap was not to be
-found where it had fallen. Step insisted this
-merely went to show that Orkney, when the
-coast was clear, had returned to the scene and
-regained possession of the cap, thus avoiding
-loss and “saving face.”</p>
-
-<p>“But he’s wearing another bonnet,” Poke
-pointed out.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, that’s because he’s too stuffy to admit
-the truth,” Step declared. “He’s as stubborn
-as a mule—that’s the whole case in a nutshell.”</p>
-
-<p>The club agreed with this opinion of Orkney<span class="pagenum">[129]</span>
-more heartily than it endorsed Step’s performance,
-which was held to be juvenile, albeit
-not without provocation. Sam’s interference
-was accepted with respect rather than warm
-approval. As Poke put it, somebody, sooner
-or later, would have to thrash Orkney; and
-Step might as well have tried his hand.
-Whereat the Shark spoke up from his corner.</p>
-
-<p>“Say, that’s nice doctrine to be preaching
-at the Safety First Club!”</p>
-
-<p>For an instant Poke was abashed. “Why—why,
-there’s something in that. I guess I
-wasn’t thinking of our new name.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Sam was,” said the Shark crisply.</p>
-
-<p>“Huh!” grunted Poke. He glanced
-thoughtfully at Sam; seemed to be about to
-continue; changed his mind, and let the subject
-drop.</p>
-
-<p>Sam went home that afternoon to find Lon
-in uncommonly bad humor. Somebody, it
-appeared, had opened a faucet in the barn,
-and left the water running in a merry stream.
-As a result, half the floor had been flooded,
-and annoying, if not heavy, damage had been
-caused. Lacking evidence to the contrary,
-Lon was disposed to hold Sam responsible.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[130]</span></p>
-
-<p>“But I had nothing to do with it,” the
-boy explained. “I don’t know how it happened.”</p>
-
-<p>“Foolin’ ’round here, wasn’t you, after
-school?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes—but I didn’t touch the faucet.”</p>
-
-<p>“Guess you’re gettin’ absent-minded.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam reddened wrathfully, but kept his
-head. Very clearly he realized that he had
-a deal at stake. A youth on probation, as he
-was, must shun rages as well as keep his record
-clean.</p>
-
-<p>“Look here, Lon!” he said. “I’m not
-joking—I’m in earnest. And I tell you I’m
-not to blame. I mean it—honor bright!”</p>
-
-<p>Lon rubbed his chin. “I swan, but it plumb
-beats my time! You’re sure you didn’t do it,
-and I’ll swear I ain’t been walkin’ in my
-sleep and cuttin’ up didoes for more’n a year.
-Yet here was the water goin’ like all possessed!
-Now, who set it goin’?”</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t,” said Sam decidedly.</p>
-
-<p>“Hanged if I believe you did!” Lon had
-been studying the boy keenly. “You’ve got
-as much of Old Nick in you as the next ’un,
-generally, but you <em>have</em> been behavin’ pretty<span class="pagenum">[131]</span>
-well lately. And you ain’t a liar any time.
-So it looks as if we’d got to add this to the
-list o’ mysteries, ’long with who struck Billy
-Patterson. Only I do wish I could lay hands
-on the skunk that made all this mess, and
-argy with him a while on the error of his
-ways.” And Lon frowned as he turned his
-gaze to the water-soaked planks.</p>
-
-<p>Sam went on to the house, but only to
-find himself again in the rôle of defendant.
-The complainant this time was Maggie, who
-swooped down upon him when he entered
-the kitchen. She caught him by the arm,
-dragged him across the room, and pointed
-tragically to a tub, in which were soaking
-several mud-stained garments.</p>
-
-<p>“See all the trouble you’re makin’ me, you
-imp!” she cried. “How do you s’pose I’m
-a-goin’ to do all the work of this big house,
-with you snoopin’ round, and breakin’ my
-clothes-line, and lettin’ down half a wash into
-the dirt? All them things to be put to soak
-and done over! I tell you I just won’t stand
-it, I won’t! We’ll see, Mr. Sam, what your
-mother’ll have to say to such tricks!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam wriggled free. “But, Maggie, you’re<span class="pagenum">[132]</span>
-all wrong,” he protested. “I didn’t break the
-clothes-line.”</p>
-
-<p>Maggie sniffed incredulously. “Course not!
-Must have been Hannibal or the cat! Go
-’way with you, tryin’ to bamboozle me with
-such talk!”</p>
-
-<p>Poor Sam felt like throwing up his hands
-in despair, or bursting into vehement denials.
-But once more he was reminded of the stake
-for which he was playing.</p>
-
-<p>“Honestly, Maggie, I had nothing to do
-with dropping the wash,” he declared so
-emphatically that she could not but be
-impressed. “I didn’t even notice that
-you’d hung it out. And as for breaking the
-line——”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, somebody broke it!” said Maggie
-tartly. “Look at it!” And she snatched a
-coil of rope from a shelf above the tub.</p>
-
-<p>Sam gravely inspected the parted strands.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, it is broken, fast enough,” he began.
-“That is”—he was peering hard at the end
-of the line—“that is, it isn’t broken—I was
-mistaken; this has been cut.”</p>
-
-<p>“What do you mean?”</p>
-
-<p>“Cut with a knife—and a sharp knife, at<span class="pagenum">[133]</span>
-that. Made a clean gash. No accident there,
-Maggie!”</p>
-
-<p>The cook took time to make careful examination.</p>
-
-<p>“My stars, Sam Parker, but you’ve got a
-head on you, after all!” she declared.
-“Who’d ’a’ thought it! No; I don’t mean
-the head—it’s the miserable meanness of the
-job. But who on earth would be so ugly?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know,” said Sam. “Anyway,
-though, I’m not the fellow.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, puttin’ it that way, I don’t suppose
-you are,” Maggie admitted. “But I’d give a
-pretty penny to be able to figure out who is.”</p>
-
-<p>“So would I,” Sam agreed gravely.</p>
-
-<p>He had cause to repeat the statement in the
-next few days. Things went wrong about the
-Parker place with peculiar persistence. Valuable
-young trees were broken down; gates,
-supposed to be kept closed, were found open;
-Hannibal, for whose care Sam was responsible,
-was missing over night and came limping
-home in the morning in badly battered condition.
-And in each instance it appeared to be
-incumbent upon the son of the house to prove
-his innocence. It is an old rule of the books<span class="pagenum">[134]</span>
-that there is much difficulty in establishing a
-negative proposition. Sam’s patience was
-sorely tried, but he kept his wits about him,
-remembered the demands of his situation,
-and did his best to win confidence by deserving
-it.</p>
-
-<p>He had his suspicions, of course, that there
-was something more than mere coincidence in
-the succession of troubles. Also he had a
-theory as to their cause. In amateur fashion
-he undertook detective work. In other
-words, so far as he could, he maintained a
-close, if unobtrusive, watch upon the doings of
-Tom Orkney.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[135]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">THE CLUB GETS A CLUE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>It was Friday evening, and the Safety First
-Club was in full session. Sam, Step and Poke
-were gossiping about school affairs, and with
-them was Herman Boyd, a new member and
-a brother junior. Willy Reynolds and Harry
-Walker, otherwise known as “Trojan,” a
-recently admitted classmate, were playing
-checkers in a corner.</p>
-
-<p>The Shark, who was human enough to have
-his little affectations, pretended to care not at
-all for the game, holding it to be a poor and
-trifling substitute for chess; but it was to be
-observed that he was doing his best to win.
-Moreover, when he did win, he chuckled gleefully.</p>
-
-<p>“Hew-ee! You ought to have known that
-last move was coming,” he told his opponent.
-“But you gave me the opening, and then I
-had you.”</p>
-
-<p>Trojan Walker laughed. “I’d have known<span class="pagenum">[136]</span>
-all about it if I could see around two corners
-at once as you do. Never mind, though!
-I’ll win yet. Set up your men, Shark.”</p>
-
-<p>Poke strolled over to the players while
-they were ranging their pieces.</p>
-
-<p>“Fellow who wears glasses like the Shark’s
-ought to be able to see everything,” he remarked
-idly. “All the same, Trojan, you’ll
-notice he isn’t making out much about Orkney’s
-schemes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Humph! What can Tom do?” objected
-Herman Boyd. “That row of his with Step
-is ancient history.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sure! And the time for a come-back was
-right after the row,” chimed in Trojan.</p>
-
-<p>Poke wagged his head sagaciously. “Don’t
-fool yourselves!” said he. “Orkney is a
-sticker. He’s got it in for Step, and for Sam,
-for that matter. We haven’t had the last of
-the business, not by a long shot.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hear that, eh, Sam?” asked Herman.</p>
-
-<p>Sam rose from his chair, and crossed to the
-checker players’ corner.</p>
-
-<p>“I heard it,” said he.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, do you agree?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Sam brusquely.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[137]</span></p>
-
-<p>For a moment nobody spoke. All his
-friends realized that he was taking the matter
-seriously.</p>
-
-<p>“Why—why—you must have some reason,
-of course?” Herman ventured.</p>
-
-<p>Sam hesitated. “Maybe it’s more hunch
-than reason.”</p>
-
-<p>“But what gave you the hunch?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, one thing and then another.”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! That sounds like some of my answers
-in history!” quoth Poke. “It’s specially
-like those I make when I’m meeting a
-total stranger of a question, and trying to be
-polite, if not communicative.”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark wriggled in his chair; he was
-growing impatient to resume play.</p>
-
-<p>“Your move, Trojan!” he snapped.</p>
-
-<p>“Wait a minute!” said his opponent.
-“Sam’s going to elucidate.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, things have happened and kept on
-happening,” Sam began; “things that can’t
-be explained except——But I say, Shark!
-What on earth’s the matter?”</p>
-
-<p>Young Reynolds, who had turned from the
-table in disgust at the delay, of a sudden had
-uttered an exclamation and started to his feet.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[138]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Speak out! What is it?” Sam demanded.</p>
-
-<p>The Shark pulled off his spectacles; held
-the lenses to the light; inspected them
-closely; shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>“No; they’re not clouded,” said he, half
-to himself. “Very curious, I do declare!”</p>
-
-<p>“What’s curious? And what are you driving
-at?”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course, it might have been a tricky reflection,”
-mused the Shark. “Or, maybe, it
-was just an optical illusion.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam caught him by both shoulders. “Wake
-up! What are you talking about?”</p>
-
-<p>“Then, again, the doctor tells me eye-strain
-works queerly sometimes.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam shook the slender youth vigorously.
-“Get back to earth! Let’s have some sense
-out of all this. Thought you saw something,
-didn’t you? Well, what was it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Man looking in the window!” said the
-other calmly.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” cried Sam, and whipped about.
-Certainly no face now was pressed against the
-pane. He ran to the door, opened it, and
-sprang into darkness, closely followed by all
-the other members of the club except the<span class="pagenum">[139]</span>
-Shark, who was busying himself in polishing
-his glasses and replacing them on his nose.
-This task was completed to his satisfaction
-when the boys came straggling back. Their
-search had been utterly without result.</p>
-
-<p>They crowded about the Shark, and rained
-questions upon him. Just what had he seen?
-How long had he seen it? What had he to
-say for himself, anyway?</p>
-
-<p>The Shark waved them back. “Here!
-Don’t walk all over a fellow!” he cried.
-“What I saw—or thought I saw—was a head.
-I had just a glimpse—there one instant, gone
-the next—presto, change business! Looked
-like a human head.”</p>
-
-<p>“You said it was a man’s,” Sam reminded
-him.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, it might have been a boy’s—I
-couldn’t make it out clearly, you understand.
-It was vague, shadowy.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then, of course, you didn’t recognize the
-face?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said the Shark. “And you’ll understand,
-too, that I don’t insist that I really saw
-anything. You know, these glasses of mine—chance
-of freak of refracted light—all the<span class="pagenum">[140]</span>
-rest of it. What’s the good, though, of getting
-all stirred up about it? If anybody was
-outside, he’s far enough away now. I’ll bet
-he’s running yet if he heard the crowd galloping
-out after him. Sit down, Trojan! You
-haven’t won a game.”</p>
-
-<p>Walker plumped himself into a chair.
-“Well, you are a cool hand!” he said, with a
-touch of admiration. “But I’m going to
-beat you this time, all the same. Whose
-move is it?”</p>
-
-<p>Step lounged across the room, but the
-others stood watching the play, which went
-on briskly, and to the advantage of the mathematical
-genius. The Trojan, beaten rather
-disgracefully, pushed back his chair.</p>
-
-<p>“Tackle him, Poke,” he urged. “Or you
-take him on, Sam. This isn’t my night, I
-reckon.”</p>
-
-<p>Poke grinned. “Age before beauty! Go
-ahead, Sam.”</p>
-
-<p>But there was to be no more checker play
-in the club just then. For, while Sam paused,
-debating his chance of coping with the skilful
-Shark, there was a loud crash of a breaking
-window pane, a little shower of fragments<span class="pagenum">[141]</span>
-of glass fell to the floor, and a big stone shot
-across the room, just missing the boys standing
-by the table, which it struck with great
-force. Over went the table with a crash, rivaling
-that of the window. Over, too, went
-the Shark, untouched but thoroughly startled
-by the bombardment.</p>
-
-<p>Sam and Poke, Step and the Trojan and
-Herman Boyd poured out of the club like
-bees sallying forth to defend the hive. Around
-the corner of the building they raced, eager to
-detect the enemy. Prompt as they had been,
-however, they were too late. The night was
-very dark; there was much shrubbery about,
-which, even in its leafless state, afforded cover.
-The stone-thrower was gone. The boys could
-not detect a darker shadow betraying his
-whereabouts, and there was no sound of fleeing
-feet.</p>
-
-<p>Sam and Poke turned to the right, and the
-others to the left, spreading out as they neared
-the barn. The course taken by Sam and his
-comrade led toward the house, round which
-they worked their way as rapidly as possible.
-Strain their eyes as they might, they saw
-nothing to arouse suspicion; nor were they<span class="pagenum">[142]</span>
-better rewarded when they moved to the
-street, and peered up and down road and
-sidewalk.</p>
-
-<p>“Clean get-away,” Poke said reluctantly.
-“Fellow must have bolted just as soon as he
-let drive. And it must have been the chap
-the Shark saw at the window, of course.
-What a pity he hasn’t a decent pair of eyes!”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s the biggest kind of a pity,” Sam
-agreed. “This affair is no joke, Poke. If
-that stone had struck one of us—whew!”</p>
-
-<p>Poke laid a hand on Sam’s arm. “Come
-now!” He dropped his voice almost to a
-whisper. “Fellow who threw that stone was
-pretty savage, or crazy, or—or revengeful.
-And—and you won’t need maps or foot-notes
-to understand who I reckon he is.”</p>
-
-<p>“I wouldn’t ask but one guess,” said Sam.</p>
-
-<p>Poke was silent for a moment, listening intently.
-“The others have had no better luck
-than we,” he reported. “Might as well go
-back, I suppose.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” Sam agreed, and they moved
-toward the club-house.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the Shark, who had picked
-himself up from the floor and found that<span class="pagenum">[143]</span>
-he was none the worse for his upset, had
-been making an investigation on his own
-account. First, he raised the big stone, shifting
-it meditatively from one hand to the
-other, as if he were estimating its weight.
-Then he crossed to the window and measured
-the height from the floor of the jagged hole
-in the glass. This done, he furrowed his
-brow, pulled out pencil and note-book from
-his pockets, and fell to making a calculation
-of some sort. He was still engaged in this
-when Sam and Poke entered.</p>
-
-<p>“No luck!” Poke informed him. “The
-fellow got away.”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark didn’t look up. “Hm-m!
-Thought he would.”</p>
-
-<p>“So that’s why you didn’t try to chase him?”</p>
-
-<p>“Partly. ’Nother reason was that I wanted
-to do some figuring.”</p>
-
-<p>“On what?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, don’t bother me!” snapped the Shark.
-“I’m right in the midst of things.”</p>
-
-<p>Poke frowned. “You needn’t be so snippy.
-Sam and I have done some figuring, too, and
-we’ve been quicker about it than you. And
-we know—what we know.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[144]</span></p>
-
-<p>The Shark raised his eyes. “Umph! Don’t
-be too all-fired sure,” he counseled.</p>
-
-<p>Poke took a step toward him. “See here,
-you owl! Our figuring has made us certain—morally
-certain, that is—that we know who
-threw that stone.”</p>
-
-<p>Usually the gaze of the Shark was unwavering,
-but now he was blinking rapidly.</p>
-
-<p>“Go slow, Poke,” said he. “Moral certainty
-doesn’t answer problems in mathematics.”</p>
-
-<p>“Bosh! This isn’t mathematics.”</p>
-
-<p>“’Deed it is!”</p>
-
-<p>“Hold on, boys!” said Sam. “You’re getting
-nowhere. Now, Shark, listen! Poke
-and I believe that Tom Orkney did this
-thing. We hate to think he would, but we
-believe it because——”</p>
-
-<p>“Because you’re wrong. Tom couldn’t have
-done it—at least, I don’t admit that he could.
-It won’t work out that way.”</p>
-
-<p>“Work out?”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark nodded. “Of course, I have to
-depend on estimates, and I don’t pretend that
-I can show exact results,” he began; but paused
-as Step strode into the room, closely pursued
-by Boyd and the Trojan.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[145]</span></p>
-
-<p>In the middle of the floor Step halted.
-Not a word said he, but raised a hand dramatically.</p>
-
-<p>The hand held an object, recognized at
-sight by every boy there. It was the cap,
-owned by Tom Orkney, which had figured
-in the celebrated quarrel.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[146]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">PUNISHMENT POSTPONED</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>There was a long pause, and a very significant
-pause it was. The boys stared at the
-cap in Step’s hand; then they glanced from one
-to another. Here and there a head nodded,
-as if in answer to an unspoken question; but
-it was left to Poke to break the silence.</p>
-
-<p>“Jupiter crickets! That settles it, I guess.
-Well, I never have liked Tom Orkney, but I
-didn’t think him up to this sort of thing!”</p>
-
-<p>“Or down to it!” cried Herman Boyd.</p>
-
-<p>“Now you’re talking!” chimed in the
-Trojan. “Lowest-down trick that ever was!”</p>
-
-<p>“Trick! Huh! Worse than that!”
-growled Poke. “Why, that rock might
-have killed one of us!”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark appeared to be estimating the
-weight of the stone. “Yes; it’s heavy
-enough,” he said calmly. “If it had struck
-anybody squarely, the result might have been
-fatal.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[147]</span></p>
-
-<p>There was a wrathful gleam in Sam’s eye.
-“Where did you find the cap, Step?” he
-demanded. “Let’s get down to business.”</p>
-
-<p>“It was on the ground, back of the barn—low
-limb of one of the apple trees must have
-knocked it off his head. Great luck that I
-stumbled upon it; and that was just what I
-did. Too dark to see anything, but my foot
-caught in something, and I stopped and
-picked the something up. And here it is!”</p>
-
-<p>Poke was wagging his head in his peculiar
-fashion. “Fellows, it’s as plain as day.
-Orkney has been too proud to wear the cap
-to school, but he didn’t mind putting it on at
-night, when nobody would notice it. Then he
-came sneaking around the club-house. The
-Shark must have had a glimpse of him at
-the window. When we went out to see who
-was there, he lay low. As soon as we came
-back into the house, he let drive the boulder
-at the first chance, and then bolted for all he
-was worth. He had such a start that he got
-away; but he didn’t dare stop to pick up the
-cap. And now, I say, we have him where we
-want him.”</p>
-
-<p>“You bet we have!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[148]</span></p>
-
-<p>“That’s hitting the nail on the head!”</p>
-
-<p>“Gee! but it was a cowardly job!”</p>
-
-<p>So spoke the Trojan, Step and Boyd. Poke
-warmed to his theme, after the manner of
-orators, encouraged by applause.</p>
-
-<p>“We’ve got him where we want him, and
-we’ll put him through the works. I tell you,
-he’ll be mighty sorry before this thing is
-ended. Why, he ought to be arrested and
-sent to jail!”</p>
-
-<p>“H-m-m-m!” It was a murmur tinged
-with disapproval, which Poke did not fail to
-perceive.</p>
-
-<p>“Wait a minute, fellows!” he said hastily.
-“I know what you’re thinking, and I guess
-you’re right. We can take care of this case
-ourselves. We will, too! If the club can’t
-defend itself, it ought to go out of business.”</p>
-
-<p>There was another murmur, all approval.</p>
-
-<p>“It may have been Step’s scrap in the
-beginning, but it’s our scrap now,” Poke went
-on. “It’s a club affair. That stone was
-thrown at the bunch—at Sam, for instance,
-as much as at Step.”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark grunted. “Huh! Be accurate,
-Poke, be accurate! It wasn’t thrown at Step<span class="pagenum">[149]</span>
-at all. He was out of range—across the room
-from the rest of us. He wasn’t in sight from
-the window.”</p>
-
-<p>“Eh? What’s that?”</p>
-
-<p>“It was the fact—come to think of it,”
-Step himself admitted. “I remember I’d left
-the crowd.”</p>
-
-<p>“Humph! Don’t see that that makes any
-difference,” argued Poke.</p>
-
-<p>“It doesn’t—in one way,” said the Shark.
-“In another, it does. It means that the
-person who chucked that stone wasn’t especially
-after Step. No doubt he took a good
-look into the room before he let drive. And,
-as I recall the position of each of us, Sam
-stood where he must have been the real bull’s-eye
-of the target.”</p>
-
-<p>“But what diff——”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark did not let Poke finish the
-query. “The difference between getting
-things straight or crooked,” he rapped out.
-“How can you solve a problem——”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, hang mathematics!” Poke interrupted,
-in turn. “Cut ’em out! This isn’t a
-recitation; it’s a row! Let’s hear what Sam
-has to say.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[150]</span></p>
-
-<p>Sam had been keeping silent, but with
-growing difficulty. He was, as we know,
-naturally impulsive, and still a beginner in
-the practice of the policy of Safety First.
-Moreover, he was not a fellow of the sort to
-make ready excuse for attacks which smacked
-of cowardice or treachery; and his patience
-had been sorely tried by the series of depredations
-about his home. While his clubmates
-had debated, he had been considering not only
-the stone-throwing but also the earlier instances
-of what he was now sure was somebody’s
-revenge. The cap apparently settled
-the question of identity. Likewise, the
-Shark’s observation regarding the target had
-its weight. Sam struggled to keep his temper,
-but it was like a case of bottling steam in a
-boiler and fanning the fire beneath. When
-you treat a boiler so, there is likely to be an
-explosion.</p>
-
-<p>“What have I to say?” The words seemed
-to force themselves from his lips. “You fellows
-don’t dream how much I could say!
-This thing to-night is only a link in a
-chain.”</p>
-
-<p>The others stared at him in amazement.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[151]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Link—link in a chain?” Step repeated.</p>
-
-<p>“Just that! A chain of meannesses!
-Listen!” And Sam went on to describe
-briefly, but forcefully, the persecution to
-which he believed he had been subjected.
-“And now we’ve had the stoning,” he added.
-“There is one explanation, and only one.
-Tom Orkney has dropped Step and taken me
-on. He hates me more for interfering than
-he hates Step for squabbling with him. And
-just as that’s the only explanation, there’s just
-one way to handle the case—and that’s for me
-to settle with Tom Orkney. And I will—don’t
-you worry!”</p>
-
-<p>None of his hearers took his words lightly.
-All were ready to consider them very gravely.
-Here, indeed, was an issue for a youthful court
-of honor; and it behooves such courts, young
-or old, to pass judgment in all solemnity.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I guess you’re entitled,” said Poke
-slowly.</p>
-
-<p>The others, with one exception, nodded assent.
-The Shark looked unconvinced.</p>
-
-<p>“Talking about chains,” he remarked, “you
-mustn’t forget the old rule: the chain’s no
-stronger than its weakest link. And there is<span class="pagenum">[152]</span>
-a link that may be weak. I don’t say it is,
-but I do say it may be.”</p>
-
-<p>“Rats!” snapped Step.</p>
-
-<p>The Shark wheeled to face him. “Rats
-nothing! What’s the record—the school
-record—for the shot put?”</p>
-
-<p>“What are you talking about?”</p>
-
-<p>“The record. What is it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, thirty or thirty-five feet for the
-twelve-pound shot.”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark frowned. “Confound it! but
-can’t you chaps make anything exact?
-‘Thirty or thirty-five feet’! How’s anybody
-to make computations with all unknown
-quantities?”</p>
-
-<p>“What are you trying to compute?”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark juggled the stone, which he still
-held. “Humph! This weighs more than
-twelve pounds, I’ll bet—may run up to
-fifteen,” said he. “But what am I figuring
-on? Why, the amount of force required
-to send it through the arc this stone described.”</p>
-
-<p>“Twelve to fifteen pounds!” jeered Step.
-“Seems to me you’re furnishing some of the
-unknown quantities yourself.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[153]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I am,” said the Shark. “I admit it. I
-also admit that I can’t reach satisfactory results
-from such data. But the results I do get—subject
-to revision, of course—make me doubt
-that Tom Orkney could have done the job.
-When I have the stone weighed, and when I
-measure the distance across the room, and add
-a good estimate of the distance the thrower
-stood from the window, I believe I can plot a
-curve——”</p>
-
-<p>A chorus of shouts interrupted him. The
-non-mathematical members of the club would
-have none of such follies. Evidence? Wasn’t
-the cap evidence enough to convict Orkney?</p>
-
-<p>Stoutly the Shark maintained that one
-should not put too great faith in circumstantial
-evidence.</p>
-
-<p>“What! You’d put more in your old
-curves and calculations?” cried Step.</p>
-
-<p>“Every time!” vowed the Shark.</p>
-
-<p>Sam cut short the discussion. “Look here,
-fellows!” he said sharply. “I’m going to
-thrash Orkney, and there’s no more to be said
-about it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, thrash ahead!” growled the Shark.
-“I don’t object to the general proposition;<span class="pagenum">[154]</span>
-but I am pointing out that you may be wrong
-as to your reason for thrashing him.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll risk that!” cried Sam hotly. “And
-I’ll even the score at the first chance I get.”</p>
-
-<p>This decision, warmly admired and praised
-by the club, seemed to be in a fair way for
-accomplishment on Monday when Sam, walking
-alone to school, met Orkney at a street
-corner.</p>
-
-<p>Meditation had cooled his anger, but had
-not lessened his determination to have a
-speedy accounting. He put himself in Orkney’s
-path, and gave him monosyllabic greeting.</p>
-
-<p>“Huh!” It must be confessed that there
-was a distinctly challenging note in Sam’s
-growl.</p>
-
-<p>“Huh!” responded Orkney. In fairness it
-is to be stated that he betrayed no sign of
-anxiety; and instead of halting, stepped aside
-and passed the boy holding the center of the
-walk.</p>
-
-<p>Sam turned, and overtook him in three
-long strides. Then they moved on together,
-but with a space of three or four feet between
-them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[155]</span></p>
-
-<p>Orkney gazed straight before him. The
-sullenness of his expression may have been a
-trifle more marked than usual. Sam, studying
-him from the corner of an eye, decided
-that his enemy was merely playing a waiting
-game.</p>
-
-<p>There was a moment’s silence. Then said
-Sam, very grimly:</p>
-
-<p>“This thing has got to stop—see?”</p>
-
-<p>The tone was more impressive than the
-words. Orkney stopped, and inspected the
-other coolly.</p>
-
-<p>“Has, eh? Well, what might ‘this thing’
-be?” he inquired.</p>
-
-<p>“You know well enough!”</p>
-
-<p>“Guess again. I don’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“You do.”</p>
-
-<p>A dull red showed in Orkney’s cheeks.
-“That’s the same thing as telling me I don’t
-tell the truth.”</p>
-
-<p>“Does sound like it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mean to call me a liar?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes—if you say you don’t know.”</p>
-
-<p>Orkney’s fists clenched; but Sam, warily
-watching, saw that the enemy kept himself in
-hand.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[156]</span></p>
-
-<p>Again there was a pause. Sam broke it:</p>
-
-<p>“There’s no use in your trying to put up a
-bluff. It won’t go. You understand perfectly
-what I mean.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp51" id="i160" style="max-width: 40.625em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i160.jpg" alt="">
- <div class="caption"><p class="center">“<a href="#BRef_160">YOU’RE LOOKING FOR TROUBLE</a>”</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“I understand that <a id="BRef_160" href="#i160">you’re looking for
-trouble</a>,” said Orkney slowly. “That’s nothing
-new with you and your crowd—you think
-you own the earth, and you’d like to fence in
-this part of it for your own stamping grounds.
-You had things your own way till I came
-along, and you’ve always been down on me
-because I wouldn’t tail on after your procession.
-You’d rather interfere with me than
-eat, any of you. Why, just the other day
-Step Jones——”</p>
-
-<p>“Leave Step out of this!” Sam interposed.
-He had not been able to reconcile himself
-wholly to Step’s performance; and Orkney
-having found a weak spot in his armor, his
-tone was more belligerent than ever. “You’re
-dealing with me and not with Jones this
-time. And Step doesn’t beat dogs, and
-cut clothes-lines, and heave rocks through
-windows.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, who does?”</p>
-
-<p>“You do!” roared Sam.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[157]</span></p>
-
-<p>Orkney pulled up. He faced his accuser,
-and his eyes did not fall before Sam’s.</p>
-
-<p>“Parker, you’re talking like a wild man,”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Wild, am I? Not much! I’ve got proof!”</p>
-
-<p>Orkney shrugged his shoulders. “It’s plain
-enough you’re looking for a fight, and don’t
-care how you get it. Now, I tell you, in the
-first place, that all this stuff you’re hinting
-and insinuating is gibberish to me; and in
-the second place that if you want fight I’ll
-give you all you’re looking for and more, too.”</p>
-
-<p>“Now?” demanded Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Orkney, and grinned a queer,
-savage grin. “What’s more, you know why
-I won’t fight now. It’s my day to speak for
-the Lester prize, and a pretty chance I’d have
-for it, wouldn’t I, standing up before the
-school with a black eye or a cut lip? You
-talk about bluffs! Where’s there a bigger
-bluff than asking a fellow to fight when you
-know he can’t take you on? Or maybe this
-is your game: You’re scheming to batter me
-up so that one of your gang can carry off the
-Lester, eh?”</p>
-
-<p>“I hadn’t thought of the prize-speaking!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[158]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’ve been thinking of it for some
-time. And I don’t propose to let you ruin my
-chances.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam fell back a pace. There was an element
-of reason in the other’s contention, which
-he could not ignore.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, if I let you off now——” he began.</p>
-
-<p>Orkney’s grin was sardonic. “‘Let me off’
-is good, but we’ll also let that pass. I’m busy
-this morning, as I’ve explained, but after that—well,
-you can suit your own convenience in
-picking a time for taking a good licking.”</p>
-
-<p>“This afternoon, then——” stormed Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, suit yourself!” said Orkney curtly,
-and marched off.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[159]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">NOT ON THE PROGRAM</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Sam, following his enemy at a more moderate
-pace, was burdened by a peculiar sense of
-helplessness. He was troubled by no doubts
-of the justice of his cause; but he was annoyed
-and perplexed by the obstacles Fate threw in
-his way. They were the harder to consider
-philosophically because he was quite sure that
-he was obeying his new rule of Safety First,
-and that Orkney’s guilt was clearly established.
-At the same time he had to admit that Tom
-had offered valid grounds for delaying combat.
-Altogether the case struck him as one of difficult
-application of entirely sound principles.</p>
-
-<p>As he turned a corner, however, he forgot
-Orkney for a little; for within a dozen yards
-of him he beheld two men in conversation.
-And one of the men was Major Bates. The
-other was Peter Groche.</p>
-
-<p>Sam almost halted. He gazed in surprise
-at the two. The Major had never appeared to<span class="pagenum">[160]</span>
-be straighter, or fiercer, or more bristling;
-while Groche’s slouch was never more pronounced.
-The ne’er-do-well was listening
-sulkily to the Major’s very energetic remarks,
-occasionally growling a brief reply to the
-veteran.</p>
-
-<p>As it chanced, Sam had not met the Major
-since the night he had made confession. A
-glance was enough to show that he had nearly
-recovered from the effects of his wounds; and
-the ear testified that the vigor of his speech
-was in no wise abated.</p>
-
-<p>After a second’s hesitation Sam advanced.
-As he neared the men, Groche, seeming, of a
-sudden, to catch sight of him, wheeled and
-shuffled off, growling as he went. The Major
-swished his cane, as if he regretted that it
-might not descend upon the retreating legs.
-Then he, too, saw the boy, and the severity of
-his expression lessened a trifle.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, young man!” he said. “Ah, good-morning!”</p>
-
-<p>“Good-morning, sir,” said Sam.</p>
-
-<p>The Major tapped the sidewalk smartly with
-his cane. “I’m out of hospital. Am I to regard
-myself as in receipt of your felicitations?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[161]</span></p>
-
-<p>“’Deed you are, sir!” Sam assured him with
-unfeigned warmth.</p>
-
-<p>The Major’s eyes twinkled. “Mutually satisfactory
-state of things, eh? I’m pleased myself.
-Fact is, I’m so overflowing with good
-will this morning that I’ve been trying to improve
-that vagabond.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir,” said Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“By Jove! but I fancy I made it clear even
-to his befuddled wits that there is no profit in
-persistently remaining a social liability. I
-warned him that if he didn’t mend his ways
-he’d end in state’s prison. Big, hulking brute
-like that’s liable, some time, to commit a
-felony.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam glanced at the retreating Groche. The
-fellow <em>was</em> big and hulking, and brutish as
-well—an ugly customer, in short.</p>
-
-<p>“Has he been bothering you again, sir?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” answered the Major. “I rather anticipated
-some of his characteristic attentions,
-but he has quite neglected me. Not that I
-complain—certainly not! Only I took occasion
-to point out to him the exceeding unwisdom
-of again annoying me. Odd, too, how
-he took the advice. Leered at me, and mumbled,<span class="pagenum">[162]</span>
-but made no distinct threats. But I
-must not detain you, young man. You, I infer,
-are on your way to school?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir,” said Sam again.</p>
-
-<p>“Then proceed. A moment, though!”
-The Major’s bushy eyebrows met in a frown,
-which wholly lacked ferocity. “Your holidays
-are at hand, I believe. Some day, when
-you’re at leisure, I should be glad to show you
-my modest collection of weapons of war and
-the chase. Ought to interest you, as a budding
-sportsman with a promising record of
-large game!”</p>
-
-<p>The Major’s eyes were twinkling once more.
-Sam blushed hotly.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll be very glad to come, sir,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Then I have the honor to wish you a very
-good morning,” quoth the Major; and they
-parted in friendly fashion.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb">
-
-<p>Both Major Bates and Peter Groche soon
-lost first place in Sam’s consideration. The
-school session promptly put the Orkney affair
-to the fore.</p>
-
-<p>The Lester prize for declamation was one
-of the great honors of the course, and competition<span class="pagenum">[163]</span>
-always was keen. The contest covered
-a full term, two boys and two girls entering
-the lists each Monday. Usually they were
-seniors, elocution being part of the required
-work of the final year, but sometimes juniors
-volunteered, often with a notion of “working
-off” the requirement ahead of time, but occasionally
-with a hope of winning.</p>
-
-<p>There could be no doubt that Tom Orkney
-did his best to win. As it happened, he was
-fortunate in his competitors. The other boy
-was a senior, who took the platform simply
-because he had to take it, and who raced
-through his selection with an eye single to
-ending the ordeal in a minimum of time.
-Then two girls performed conscientiously but
-ineffectively. And then came Orkney, junior
-and volunteer.</p>
-
-<p>Tom had chosen an ancient favorite “speaking
-piece,” so ancient, indeed, that a giggle
-ran through the hall when the principal announced,
-“The Parting of Marmion and
-Douglas.” But the merriment quickly died,
-as the boy swung into Scott’s stirring verse.</p>
-
-<p>“Good work!” was the involuntary and
-whispered tribute of Step Jones, who sat beside<span class="pagenum">[164]</span>
-Sam. “Awfully good work, confound
-him!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam nodded. Orkney was revealing unexpected
-dramatic fire; and, unpopular as he
-was with his audience, was capturing its admiration.
-One might suspect that he had
-had professional coaching, but one could not
-deny that it had been worth while.</p>
-
-<p>There was loud applause—not the customary
-ripple of hand-clapping but a spontaneous and
-hearty demonstration—and Tom was smiling
-when he made his bow to his schoolmates, and
-another bow to the principal, and came down
-the steps from the stage. It was not a pleasing
-smile, for there was in it more than a
-trace of supercilious triumph.</p>
-
-<p>“Hang the chump! Look at the smirk of
-him!” complained Step.</p>
-
-<p>Sam made no answer. Orkney was approaching,
-and for an instant the eyes of the
-rivals met. Sam’s expression did not change,
-but the other’s smile lost the little charm it
-had. Sam found it bitterly taunting; it
-seemed to say to him, “This was what you
-schemed to prevent, eh? Well, you didn’t
-do it, did you?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[165]</span></p>
-
-<p>Step drove an elbow into his ribs. “You
-can’t spoil that mug by pounding it! Say,
-though! When are you going to get at it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Soon as I can,” said Sam simply.</p>
-
-<p>“Date with him?” whispered Step eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>“Not exactly.”</p>
-
-<p>The classes were rising to march out of the
-hall, but Step found time to make a suggestion.</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe you can catch him down at the
-pond this afternoon. They say the ice is at
-last strong enough to hold.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll be there,” Sam promised.</p>
-
-<p>Mild as the season had been, the temperature
-had been falling steadily, if slowly; and
-the skim of ice on the big mill-pond on the
-outskirts of Plainville had thickened until it
-had been for some days in rather perilous use
-by venturesome skaters. Now, however, Sam
-believed it was reasonably safe; and when he
-descended the slope to the pond, its surface
-was dotted with swiftly gliding figures.</p>
-
-<p>Directly in front of him a lively game of
-hockey was in progress. To the right, and
-safely removed from the rushes of the players,
-were boys and girls, skating singly, or in<span class="pagenum">[166]</span>
-pairs, or in long lines, hand in hand. To the
-left, near the dam, were a few youngsters.</p>
-
-<p>Sam shook his head as he observed them.
-The ice always was thinner there than in
-other parts of the pond, and there was seldom
-a season in which somebody did not regret
-rashness in straying too close to air-holes. At
-a time like this there was more or less danger
-anywhere in the neighborhood of the dam.</p>
-
-<p>“It ought to be roped off,” he told himself;
-but as there appeared to be no means to carry
-out this precaution he sat down on the bank
-and began to put on his skates. This he did
-leisurely, pausing now and then to run his
-glance over the skaters. At a little distance
-up the shore some of the larger boys were
-building a fire, and were having trouble, their
-fuel consisting chiefly of long boards torn
-from an abandoned ice-house. Here a little
-crowd clustered. Sam thought he had a
-glimpse of Orkney, but was not certain. As
-he tightened his last strap, however, and stood
-up, Step came along, arms and legs flying in
-an effort to recover the partly lost art of the
-Dutch roll. At sight of Sam the lanky youth
-went through some extraordinary contortions,<span class="pagenum">[167]</span>
-checked his speed, and glided alongside his
-friend.</p>
-
-<p>“Say! It’s all right—he’s here!” was his
-greeting.</p>
-
-<p>“Who’s here?” asked Sam, quite unnecessarily.</p>
-
-<p>“Humph! Who you s’pose? Deacon Pender?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Sam coolly. “I don’t imagine
-you were thinking of the deacon.”</p>
-
-<p>“You bet I wasn’t!” rapped Step. “I was
-thinking of Tom Orkney.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam peered at the crowd by the fire.
-“Queer I can’t make him out,” he remarked.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s down at the lower end—along with
-those kids.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!”</p>
-
-<p>Step was grinning. “Oh, he tried to butt
-into the hockey game, but the fellows gave
-him the cold shoulder. So he had to flock by
-himself till he saw the young ’uns. He’s
-with ’em now, teasing and tormenting ’em, I
-reckon.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam struck out with the experimental feeling
-of one on runners for the first time in<span class="pagenum">[168]</span>
-months; made a wide circle, and came back
-to Step.</p>
-
-<p>“Bit rusty, but I’ll get the swing all right
-in an hour or so,” he reported.</p>
-
-<p>Step brought him back to the previous
-question, so to speak.</p>
-
-<p>“What do you want? Don’t mean to fight
-him on skates, do you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly not,” said Sam testily. “What
-put such a notion in your head?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, what are you here for?” demanded
-Step pointedly.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t expect to have a fight before all
-this crowd, do you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Seems to me you’re getting awful fussy.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am, if ‘fussy’ consists in objecting to
-scrapping with half the town rubbering.”</p>
-
-<p>Step looked hurt. “Don’t you want anybody
-but yourself to have any fun?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t intend to entertain Plainville in a
-body.”</p>
-
-<p>Step’s expression was bewildered. “Say—say,
-you ain’t crawling, are you?” he queried.</p>
-
-<p>The suspicion stung Sam’s pride. “Crawling?
-Not on your life! I’m looking for Tom
-Orkney, and when I find him I’ll ask him to<span class="pagenum">[169]</span>
-walk back in the woods with me—he’ll know
-what for. And you can come along, and one
-or two of the others, but——”</p>
-
-<p>The cloud vanished from Step’s brow.
-“Oh, that’s all right!” he said heartily.
-“Can’t have a mob trailing along, of course.
-But I say! There’s Orkney now—just shooting
-out from behind the point. He’s chasing
-one of the kids.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s glance followed the direction of Step’s
-extended arm.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, that’s Orkney, fast enough. But
-what’s he doing?”</p>
-
-<p>“Pestering the youngster!” snapped Step.
-“Can’t you see? And I declare, if it isn’t
-Little Perrine he’s worrying!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam watched the swiftly moving figures,
-one short and slender, the other tall and stout.
-Little Perrine, barely in the lead, seemed to be
-hard pressed, for he dodged frequently without
-being able to throw off his pursuer.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Step cried out sharply: “The
-miserable bully! Look, Sam! he’s driving
-the kid right down to the dam, where the ice
-won’t hold him for a minute!”</p>
-
-<p>“Confound it all!” fumed Sam. “Why<span class="pagenum">[170]</span>
-won’t people think of Safety First? Why
-won’t——”</p>
-
-<p>There he broke off, aghast at the catastrophe
-he beheld, but Step’s voice rose shrilly:</p>
-
-<p>“Great Scott! it’s happened! They’re in—both
-in!”</p>
-
-<p>With appalling swiftness the ice had yielded
-beneath the weight of the two, and Little Perrine,
-vanishing as if through a trap-door in a
-stage, had been followed almost instantly by
-Orkney.</p>
-
-<p>Step started to the rescue, striking out
-wildly and shouting as he raced down the
-pond at top speed. Sam, about to join in the
-dash, checked himself. He knew well enough
-how the thin ice near the dam, once broken,
-would crack and crumble under even slight
-pressure. “Safety First!” was the thought
-which flashed upon his brain; safety not so
-much for himself as for the pair struggling in
-the water.</p>
-
-<p>Other skaters were speeding after Step: but
-Sam, turning, hurried to the heap of boards
-near the fire. He caught up the longest plank
-on which he could lay hands, and skated
-down the pond with all the speed his burden<span class="pagenum">[171]</span>
-permitted. Before him other would-be
-rescuers, halted by the widening circle of open
-water, were moving about aimlessly, if pluckily,
-getting in one another’s way, and risking a
-general break-up of the ice under their weight.
-One youth, indeed, had slipped over the edge,
-but luckily had been dragged back, suffering
-no more serious consequences than a drenching
-to the waist.</p>
-
-<p>Orkney was clutching desperately with one
-hand at the crumbling edge of the ice. At
-first Sam saw nothing of Little Perrine, but as
-he dropped his board and thrust its end over
-the water, he had a glimpse of the boy’s head,
-pressed close to Orkney’s breast. So Tom,
-having caused the disaster, was doing what he
-could to save an innocent victim! Such was
-Sam’s belief, and the belief of Step and the
-rest.</p>
-
-<p>The long plank swung nearer and nearer to
-Orkney. He grasped it, drew himself forward,
-threw an arm over it; his other arm was
-still about Little Perrine. Sam, kneeling on
-the board with Step anchoring its end to the
-thicker ice, got a firm grip on Orkney’s coat
-collar. Then came the tug of war. It lasted<span class="pagenum">[172]</span>
-for thrilling seconds, of which Sam was to
-have only confused memories, in which were
-mingled the ominous cracking of the ice, the
-shouting of the spectators, his own cries of
-warning to the crowd to move back, Orkney’s
-struggles, the ghastly pallor of Little Perrine’s
-face. Slowly, by inches, they gained. Then
-with a report as sharp as that of a pistol a foot
-or two of the edge gave way; Orkney dropped
-back till his shoulders were submerged; Sam’s
-arms were plunged in water to the elbows.
-Then Tom made a mighty effort. Sam exerted
-all his strength. What had been lost was recovered
-and retained. Then there was another
-clear gain; and, in an instant more, Orkney
-and Little Perrine had been dragged to safety.</p>
-
-<p>Tom was able to raise himself on an elbow,
-but Little Perrine lay unconscious and motionless.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[173]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIV">CHAPTER XIV
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">SENT TO COVENTRY</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>It was a disagreeable morning, dully lowering
-and overcast, with now and then a flurry
-of snowflakes bearing promise of a heavier
-fall to come, but a crowd of boys and girls
-lingered in the school yard.</p>
-
-<p>There seemed to be a curious constraint
-upon everybody. There was no shouting, no
-practical joking, no horse-play; but there was
-much low-toned talk in the groups, in which
-the classes appeared to have gathered unconsciously.
-Now and then, when late comers
-hove in sight, there was a stir of expectancy,
-and necks were craned as eager glances were
-directed toward the gate. Sam Parker, arriving
-with Poke Green, was greeted by a murmur
-of applause; and, flushed with embarrassment,
-made his way to a party of his chums, who
-chanced to be standing near the steps leading
-to the big door.</p>
-
-<p>“Come on—let’s go in!” he said. “What’s
-everybody waiting for?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[174]</span></p>
-
-<p>Step Jones laughed harshly. “Ho, ho!
-This is a reception committee, Sam—reception
-committee and committee of the whole. It’s
-for T. Orkney’s benefit.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re making a mistake,” Sam protested.</p>
-
-<p>“Humph! I may be, but if I am, I’m not
-lonesome.”</p>
-
-<p>“That makes the thing all the worse.”</p>
-
-<p>“Can’t be much worse than it is.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam shook his head. “Oh, be fair!” he
-urged. “Remember, Orkney held on to Little
-Perrine like a good fellow.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes—after he’d driven him into the
-water!” growled Step.</p>
-
-<p>“But——”</p>
-
-<p>“But it was like locking the door after the
-horse was stolen,” Poke put in.</p>
-
-<p>“Right you are!” contributed the Trojan.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, what’s the latest news?” asked Sam.
-“How is Perrine this morning?”</p>
-
-<p>“Mighty badly off, I hear,” Step told him.</p>
-
-<p>“Delirious all night,” added the Trojan.</p>
-
-<p>Sam looked perturbed, and with reason.
-“Little” Perrine, as the boy was known to
-his mates, was a delicate chap, clever at his
-books—he was a high school freshman at ten—but<span class="pagenum">[175]</span>
-weak physically and of an extremely
-nervous temperament; just the sort of lad,
-in short, to suffer most from such an experience
-as he had undergone in the icy water.
-Moreover, he was the pet of the school, and
-any harm done him would be bitterly resented
-by the pupils. Indeed, the case promised
-to go hard with the unpopular Orkney,
-even if more encouraging tidings were received
-from those caring for one regarded generally
-as the victim of his malicious pursuit.</p>
-
-<p>The Shark came hurrying up the walk,
-carrying a great bundle of books. He nodded
-at his clubmates, but did not halt. Poke
-chuckled softly as he passed them.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s cold-blooded science for you!”
-said he. “Much the Shark cares for a trifling
-matter of life or death when he’s got a
-real juicy lot of equations on hand! Why,
-he put in all yesterday afternoon figuring
-away with the principal, and now he’s going
-to have another crack at him before the bell
-rings. I met him last night, and asked him
-what he was up to, and what do you suppose
-he said?”</p>
-
-<p>“Give it up,” said the Trojan.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[176]</span></p>
-
-<p>“So do I,” quoth Step.</p>
-
-<p>“Trajectories!” cried Poke with all the
-scorn he could command.</p>
-
-<p>Step rubbed his chin. “Well, it takes all
-sorts of people to fill up the world. But there
-are mighty few like the Shark, I’ll bet you!...
-Hulloo, though! There’s Jennie
-Bruce. She lives next door to the Perrines,
-and she can tell us the latest.”</p>
-
-<p>Others had the same thought, and crowded
-about the girl who had just entered the yard.
-There was a moment’s waiting, and then an
-angry murmur ran through the throng.</p>
-
-<p>“Whew! That means he’s worse!” Step
-inferred.</p>
-
-<p>Jennie Bruce broke through the press. She
-came straight to Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“You should have heard first of all,” she
-declared. “You pulled both of them out,
-you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“I hope it isn’t bad news,” said Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s bad enough. No; Little Perrine isn’t
-dead. He’s better this morning, but the doctor
-says he may not be able to be out for a
-week. But that isn’t it, at all!”</p>
-
-<p>“Isn’t what?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[177]</span></p>
-
-<p>“What I’ve got to tell you, Sam Parker.
-It’s about last night—and almost all through
-the night. Poor Little Perrine was out of his
-head, raving. He seemed to be going over and
-over it, and then beginning again and going
-all through it.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is, through the accident?”</p>
-
-<p>Jennie’s eyes flashed. “Accident! You
-know well enough it was something else.
-Oh, well, perhaps it was partly accident, but
-it was something else, too. Don’t stop me!
-I don’t call it all accident when the poor little
-fellow was just driven out upon the thin ice!
-And while he was delirious he kept crying
-out, ‘Don’t let him get me! Stop him!
-Don’t let Tom Orkney get me!’ Why, we
-could hear him over at our house. It was
-awful!”</p>
-
-<p>“Gee, but it must have been tough!” cried
-Step.</p>
-
-<p>“Tough!” For a moment Jennie regarded
-Master Jones half pityingly. “Mercy! but
-you boys have weak ways of putting things!
-If you’d heard him shrieking——”</p>
-
-<p>“Hold on!” the Trojan broke in excitedly.
-“Here comes Orkney!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[178]</span></p>
-
-<p>There may have been method in the circumstance
-that Orkney was reaching the
-school grounds but a few minutes before the
-opening hour. Perhaps he had hoped that
-most of his mates would be within the building
-when he arrived, but he did not falter
-when his glance fell upon the crowd. Of its
-temper he could have had little doubt, though
-probably he had not foreseen the hostility of
-the reception which awaited him.</p>
-
-<p>Three or four senior girls near the gate
-deliberately turned their backs to him. As
-many senior boys looked him full in the face
-with no sign of recognition.</p>
-
-<p>Orkney squared his shoulders, and raised
-his head. Looking straight before him, he
-walked up the path. No one addressed him,
-and he spoke to nobody till he came to Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“Parker!” Tom’s voice was low and not
-quite steady.</p>
-
-<p>“Well?” said Sam coldly.</p>
-
-<p>There was a little pause. Orkney was
-meeting Sam’s searching gaze without flinching,
-but his sallow face had taken on a grayish
-pallor.</p>
-
-<p>“Parker, I’ve got something to say to you.<span class="pagenum">[179]</span>
-And I want to say it now. Yesterday you
-yanked me out of a bad fix. It was a great
-job you did. I’d like to have you know I
-appreciate it, even if I don’t seem to be able
-to say much more than ‘Thank you!’”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, that’s all right!” said Sam, hastily
-and, it may be, gruffly. “Don’t bother your
-head about it. Forget it!”</p>
-
-<p>“Can’t!” growled Orkney, gruff in his
-turn. “That brings me to something else
-I’ve got to say and you’ve got to hear. That
-other matter—you know?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam nodded. The “other matter,” of
-course, was the engagement to fight.</p>
-
-<p>“This—this is harder to—to get right.”
-Orkney plainly found explanation difficult.
-“You put something up to me, and I said
-yes. I meant yes; suited me. But you’ve
-complicated the situation. When you pulled
-me out of the pond you tied my hands—don’t
-you see that?”</p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t mean to.”</p>
-
-<p>“You did, all the same. I won’t go into
-details, with all these long-ears rubbering;
-but you don’t need details, anyway.”</p>
-
-<p>The youths referred to as “long-ears” had<span class="pagenum">[180]</span>
-the grace to retire a pace or two, but their
-liking for their critic was not heightened.</p>
-
-<p>“I get your drift—guess I do,” said Sam.
-“But here! You’re free to forget yesterday’s
-business. Wish you would!”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t think I wouldn’t—if I could!”
-There was an ugly gleam in Orkney’s eyes.
-“That’s out of the question, though. So my
-hands are tied, as I tell you.”</p>
-
-<p>“They needn’t be.”</p>
-
-<p>Orkney shook his head. “It’s all very
-well for you to take that attitude, but I can’t.
-I’m in your debt—deep in it. So there are
-things I can’t do that I’d mighty well like to
-do.” And again the ugly gleam was in
-evidence.</p>
-
-<p>A wave of the old anger seemed to sweep
-over Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“Go ahead and try ’em, then!” he cried
-savagely.</p>
-
-<p>Two spots of red, of a sudden, burned in
-Orkney’s cheeks, but he kept his self-control.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s no use talking—I can see that,”
-he said grimly; turned, and marched alone
-up the steps to the great door.</p>
-
-<p>The decisions of youth are decisions of a<span class="pagenum">[181]</span>
-drumhead court-martial, to be carried out on
-the spot.</p>
-
-<p>The school had but one verdict to give in
-the case of Thomas Orkney. As he disappeared
-in the corridor, there was a chorus of
-hisses and groans.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[182]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XV">CHAPTER XV
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">THE CLUB ENDORSES ITSELF</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The promise of the snow flurries had been
-borne out in full measure, and now the
-country about Plainville was covered by a
-thick, white mantle. Real winter had come
-at last, for after the storm there had been
-a sharp drop in temperature, forecasting not
-only a “white Christmas” but also holidays
-brisk and invigorating. And Friday night
-had arrived, with its relief from school cares,
-and the Safety First Club was in full session.
-All the members were in attendance, and all
-were discussing the most sensational bit of
-news the town had enjoyed since the mysterious
-wounding of Major Bates.</p>
-
-<p>Tom Orkney had run away!</p>
-
-<p>The fact was established beyond doubt or
-denial. The boy was gone, nobody knew
-whither. There was, to be sure, a somewhat
-popular theory that he had fled to a neighboring<span class="pagenum">[183]</span>
-large city; but the theory was based
-on conjecture, and wholly lacked convincing
-proof.</p>
-
-<p>For forty-eight hours Plainville had been
-talking about his disappearance, but the topic
-had lost nothing of its interest. At the club
-Poke held the floor, and submitted his philosophic
-view of the case to his friends.</p>
-
-<p>“Orkney’s a stubborn brute, as you fellows
-very well know. When he makes up his
-mind, it’s made up, and it stays made up. He’s
-bolted, and he’ll take precious good care not
-to come back right away. Where do I think
-he’s gone? I don’t know, but I’m sure he’s
-gone far enough. And if you insist on having
-my personal opinion, I think it’s good riddance
-of bad rubbish.”</p>
-
-<p>“Humph! Haven’t seen me shedding the
-sorrowful tear, have you?” demanded Step.</p>
-
-<p>“I haven’t seen any tears,” said Poke.
-“Why, Orkney hasn’t a friend left, after the
-way he treated Little Perrine! Don’t you remember
-how everybody cut him that last day
-in school?”</p>
-
-<p>“Must have been pretty hard for him,” Sam
-observed thoughtfully.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[184]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I don’t believe a soul spoke to him,” Poke
-went on. “That is, none of the fellows or the
-girls did. The teachers, of course, had to;
-but they said just as little as they could.
-Why, he was called up but once, and that was
-in the Greek class.”</p>
-
-<p>Step moved uneasily. “Say, though! That
-was a star translation Orkney made! Jiminy!
-but he must have had an iron nerve to keep
-his wits about him, with all hands doing their
-best to show how they despised him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Just what it was—case of nerve!” cried
-Poke. “Bet you I know just how he felt.
-He was saying to himself, ‘I’ll show this gang
-that they can’t rattle me; I’ll show ’em that
-I don’t give a whoop for their opinion. Let
-’em hiss me! I’ll go through this day and
-prove that they can’t even rattle me.’ And
-that is just what he did. And when school
-was dismissed, he walked out as coolly as if he
-didn’t understand that nobody would travel
-with him for love or money. You know he’d
-been building up a sort of crowd of his own?
-Well, every one of the bunch quit him when
-the pinch came. But he kept a stiff upper lip
-right to the end!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[185]</span></p>
-
-<p>“He surely did,” admitted the Trojan, with
-a touch of reluctant admiration.</p>
-
-<p>“But all through it he must have been
-planning what he’d do. My notion is that
-when he went down the school steps he was
-saying to himself that it was for the last time.
-He’d been scheming out what would come
-next. In the afternoon he got together the few
-things he meant to take along. He ate supper
-with his folks as usual. Then he slipped out
-of the house. And that’s the last anybody in
-Plainville knows certainly about Tom Orkney.”</p>
-
-<p>From his corner the Shark shot curt comment:
-“Big mistake he made! Case of quitting!”</p>
-
-<p>“How do you figure that out?” asked Herman
-Boyd.</p>
-
-<p>“Ran away under fire, didn’t he?”</p>
-
-<p>“But he’d stood the fire all day.”</p>
-
-<p>“Umph! That wasn’t enough.”</p>
-
-<p>Poke waved a hand. “Listen, you fellows!
-I’ve been meditating on that part of it. And
-I’ve doped it out this way: Orkney had pride
-enough to carry him through one day—pride
-and nerve are the same thing with him, I
-reckon. But when it came to facing other<span class="pagenum">[186]</span>
-days, and other days, and then some more—why,
-that’s where a chap would have to have
-the backing of a clean conscience. And there
-were all the tricks he’d played on Sam, and
-the chance he took of killing one of us with
-that big boulder, and the dirty deal he gave
-Little Perrine—why, his conscience must be
-as spotted—as spotted as an old blotter!”</p>
-
-<p>“So that’s your diagram?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, as I say, that’s the way I see it.”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark’s lip curled. “Huh! Easy to
-see what you hope’s true!”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, what’s your mathematical calculation,
-old Dry-as-Dust?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, go on!” snapped the Shark. “You’re
-the lecturer.”</p>
-
-<p>Poke needed no urging. “Well, I tell you
-he’d made up his mind to beat it, and he did.
-And he got away, all right. You know his
-aunt telegraphed, and telephoned, and called
-in the police, and offered a hundred-dollar reward;
-but there was no clue anywhere. Hard
-luck for her that Tom’s father is out West!
-They say she’s almost crazy.”</p>
-
-<p>“And Tom’s mother is away, too,” said the
-Trojan.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[187]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes; she’s visiting down South. Those
-are things, though, we’ve nothing to do with.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s a queer way to put it,” grumbled
-the Shark.</p>
-
-<p>“Not at all,” Poke insisted. “You don’t
-get my point, which is that we may not be responsible
-for those things, but we are responsible
-for others. One of them is that we’re
-the fellows who got on to Orkney’s meannesses,
-and that Sam here promised him a thrashing
-and a showing-up. Then, somehow, I can’t
-help feeling that Sam, in fishing Orkney and
-Little Perrine out of the pond, helped to bring
-things to a head. But from the very first—from
-the time Orkney came to Plainville—it
-has been our crowd that blocked him, that
-took the shine off him. The Shark downed
-him in ‘math,’ and Step made a monkey of
-him in Greek; but, most of all, we—this club—kept
-him from bossing the class. And for
-that, I believe, we ought to be proud to be responsible.”</p>
-
-<p>“Some speech, Poke!” cried Herman Boyd.</p>
-
-<p>“Shouldn’t wonder if there were something
-in the idea,” contributed the Trojan.</p>
-
-<p>“Thanks, kind friends!” chuckled Poke;<span class="pagenum">[188]</span>
-but quickly grew serious again. “In a nutshell,
-my notion is this: If Tom Orkney has
-been driven out of town, we’ve driven him—and
-a good job, too, from first to last!”</p>
-
-<p>Two or three heads nodded vigorous assent;
-but there was a little pause. Step broke it.</p>
-
-<p>“Sam, you’re keeping mighty quiet. What’s
-your opinion?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam hesitated. “My opinion? I—why, I
-don’t know that I’d go quite as far as Poke
-goes, but——”</p>
-
-<p>“But I’m right, in the main,” Poke insisted.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I guess we’ve been justified in everything
-we’ve done,” Sam told him. “I know
-I’ve tried to be fair. And, certainly, there has
-been evidence enough.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re right there!” cried the Trojan.</p>
-
-<p>“Every time!” quoth Step.</p>
-
-<p>“I vote aye,” said Herman Boyd.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, everybody knows where I stand,”
-declared Poke. “We’re unanimous.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hold on a minute!” The Shark rose
-from his chair, and came forward. “You
-fellows are talking about justification and
-evidence, eh? I suppose you’re sure Tom<span class="pagenum">[189]</span>
-Orkney threw the stone through that window,
-for instance?”</p>
-
-<p>“If he didn’t, who did?” demanded Step
-hotly.</p>
-
-<p>“Answer my question first.”</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly we’re sure it was Orkney.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not, then,” said the Shark. “Fact is,
-I’m practically sure it wasn’t he.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, come off your perch!”</p>
-
-<p>“I won’t. You can call it a perch if you
-wish; but I know what I’m standing on, and
-that’s more than you can claim.”</p>
-
-<p>“Give the infant prodigy and foster-brother
-of the Binomial Theorem his inning!” sang
-out Poke. “Go to it, old Four Eyes!”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark, in no wise disturbed by the
-raillery, produced and unfolded a big sheet of
-paper, bearing a curious diagram and what appeared
-to be an elaborate calculation.</p>
-
-<p>“The problem may be stated thus,” he
-began. “Given a weight of fifteen pounds,
-seven and nine-tenths ounces, what is the
-force required to propel it for a distance of
-thirty-five feet?”</p>
-
-<p>“Thirty-five feet? How do you get that?”
-queried Step.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[190]</span></p>
-
-<p>“The table stood eighteen feet from the
-window,” the Shark explained. “The table-top,
-which the stone struck, was two and a
-half feet from the floor. I estimate that the
-stone, if it had not struck the table, would
-have traveled at least five feet farther. Then
-it was thrown from a point at least twelve feet
-from the building—if you take the trouble to
-inspect the ground you will see that the
-thrower must have been so far from the wall
-to have secure footing. Now then, eighteen
-and five and twelve make thirty-five.”</p>
-
-<p>“Go on!” urged Step.</p>
-
-<p>“We have the weight of the object moved,
-and the distance moved. To aid us in plotting
-the curve of flight of the object, we have
-three known points, or, rather, two known
-points and one which can be closely approximated.
-We know the height from the floor
-at which the stone broke the window-pane—seven
-feet, nine inches. The table-top, as I
-have said, was thirty inches from the floor.
-The approximated point is the distance from
-the ground (or, rather, from the level of the
-floor projected for the calculation twelve feet
-beyond the window), at which the stone began<span class="pagenum">[191]</span>
-its journey. This distance was not less than
-five feet nor more than six, allowing for a
-rise in the ground, and assuming that propulsion
-began about on a level with the
-thrower’s shoulder. But whether it was five
-or six——”</p>
-
-<p>“Hold on! Hold on!” cried Step. “You’ve
-got me going!”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! Can’t be made clearer, can it?”
-expostulated the Shark. “But if you’ll look
-at the diagram——”</p>
-
-<p>Step threw up his hands in burlesqued
-horror. “No, no! Take it away! I can’t
-bear the sight of the thing out of school
-hours!”</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind about the pretty picture,
-Shark!” chimed in the Trojan.</p>
-
-<p>“No; if we follow the tune, it’ll have to be
-by ear,” chuckled Poke.</p>
-
-<p>The Shark shrugged his shoulders. “Well,
-I didn’t believe you fellows had the sense to
-understand the process,” he said frankly.
-“Still, I thought I’d give you a chance.
-But if I’ve got to jump to the result, I’ll tell
-you that, having secured my data, I proved
-conclusively that the stone was thrown by<span class="pagenum">[192]</span>
-somebody with a lot more muscle than Tom
-Orkney has. Why, the low trajectory——”</p>
-
-<p>Two or three of the boys were grinning.
-“There, there! Don’t call names!” jeered
-Herman Boyd.</p>
-
-<p>The Shark’s glance went from one to
-another of his friends.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, well,” he said resignedly, “I guess it’s
-useless. Only you may be interested to know
-that the principal went over my work and
-verified it.”</p>
-
-<p>“What! Didn’t tell him, did you?”</p>
-
-<p>“No; of course not. Had a supposititious
-case, naturally.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said two or three, in relieved
-chorus.</p>
-
-<p>The Shark put the paper back in his
-pocket. “All right,” he said. “You
-haven’t disappointed me. I know your limitations.”</p>
-
-<p>But Poke was disposed to argument.
-“Look here, Shark! You’re banking too
-much on your rules and formulas. Remember
-the professors who said a curved
-ball couldn’t be pitched, and proved it—on
-paper?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[193]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Different case—nothing to do with this
-one.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you overlook the evidence of the cap,”
-declared Step.</p>
-
-<p>“Bother the cap!” said the Shark, and
-snapped his fingers. “Doesn’t interest me.
-It might have got there a dozen ways. What
-I’m trying to tell you is something that’s absolutely
-established—mathematically established.
-And you won’t listen!”</p>
-
-<p>“We might—if you’d just figure out who
-except Tom Orkney would have done the
-job.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hang it, I’m no fortune-teller!” growled
-the Shark.</p>
-
-<p>Again Step appealed to Sam. “What’s
-your notion? Don’t you still think the
-club is all right, and Orkney is all wrong?”</p>
-
-<p>“I think,” said Sam, honestly and with
-full conviction, “I think the weight of the
-evidence is against him, in spite of the
-Shark’s calculations. I’ve tried not to be
-hasty——”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s right—Safety First!” cried Poke.</p>
-
-<p>“And so the Safety First Club is all right!”
-chimed in Step jubilantly.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[194]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVI">CHAPTER XVI
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">SAM HAS A RUDE AWAKENING</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>“Wal, I dunno. Once there was an old
-feller that complained the eels didn’t squirm’s
-lively as they uster when he was a boy; but,
-somehow, I reckoned his memory was playin’
-tricks with him. It’s the same way with the
-weather. All the oldest inhabitants’ll keep on
-tellin’ you the climate’s changin’, and losin’
-its grip; but I guess, fust and last, there ain’t
-much difference. Why, when I was a youngster,
-they had a joke that this would be a rattlin’
-good country if the sleighin’ didn’t get
-sorter thin for three months in the year; but
-I don’t recall makin’ snowballs on the Fourth
-of July. And, when you think it over, you’re
-likely to be enjoyin’ just about as much concentrated
-winter this minute as anybody ever
-really needed in these parts.”</p>
-
-<p>Thus Lon Gates rambled on for the entertainment
-of Sam Parker, bustling about his
-work in the barn the while. It was a fine,<span class="pagenum">[195]</span>
-clear morning, the air still and crisp, and the
-snow glittering in the bright sunshine.</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe—but this is a bully day,” said Sam
-cheerfully.</p>
-
-<p>There was a twinkle in Lon’s eye. “Lot
-better’n that other Saturday, when the hedgehog
-had all his spines on end, eh? Wal, the
-weather does make a pile o’ difference in the
-human feelin’s. And, as I was sayin’, we’ve
-got jest about enough winter to be real comfortable
-right this minute—plenty of snow
-for haulin’, and cold enough to fill the bill.
-Even zero when I got up this mornin’, and
-’tain’t more’n ten above now. And it looks
-’sif there wouldn’t be a thaw for a good spell.
-And that’ll help the lumbermen to get out
-their logs. Your father can tell you what
-that means to the fellers in the woods.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve heard him talk about it,” said Sam.
-Mr. Parker was interested in several tracts of
-woodland; and though his son never had
-visited a lumber camp, he had some idea of
-the methods pursued.</p>
-
-<p>“Ought to get him to take you on one of
-his trips,” Lon observed. “He’ll be makin’
-one before long.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[196]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Wish he would!” said Sam.</p>
-
-<p>Lon bustled into the harness-room. In a
-moment Sam heard a sharp exclamation of
-surprise; and out popped Lon, carrying a
-heavy collar with dangling traces.</p>
-
-<p>“Jest look at that!” he stormed. “Suff’rin’
-snakes! but that’s the wust yet! What
-skunk do you s’pose’d be mean enough to
-carve a brand new harness that way?”</p>
-
-<p>The leather of the collar was deeply gashed
-in several places, and the traces were almost
-severed.</p>
-
-<p>Sam made close examination of the cuts.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Lon,” he said, “I can’t prove it, of
-course; but I believe that job was done by the
-same person who left the water running, and
-let Maggie’s clean clothes down into the mud,
-and has been raising all the rest of the hob
-around here.”</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe. Same line o’ business. But who’d
-do it?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam hesitated. “I—I—well, I’ve had a
-suspicion all along, but lately it has become
-practically a certainty.”</p>
-
-<p>“Speak up! This thing’s past endurin’.
-Who’s the party?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[197]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, everything points to one person.”
-Sam was trying to show judicial moderation.</p>
-
-<p>“Who’s he?” asked Lon impatiently.</p>
-
-<p>“Tom Orkney,” said Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“What! The kid that ran away?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>Lon looked puzzled. “Sure, be you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Morally sure.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wal, I ain’t, then,” said Lon. “Why
-ain’t I? Orkney’s been gone two-three days,
-hain’t he?”</p>
-
-<p>“He has.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then we’ve got to leave him out. This
-job was done last night.”</p>
-
-<p>It was Sam’s turn to betray bewilderment.
-“But—but we know he’d be ready to do
-it, and there’s nobody else who would.
-And——”</p>
-
-<p>“No; you’re barkin’ up the wrong tree!”
-Lon declared. “I was lookin’ over the harnesses
-yesterday, and there wa’n’t even a good-sized
-scratch on this one. So ’twa’n’t Orkney,
-Sam—not unless he come back to do this
-’special.”</p>
-
-<p>“But he did the other things,” Sam insisted.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[198]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Swear to it, could you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why—why, I could—almost.”</p>
-
-<p>“‘Almost’ don’t go—not in swearin’ folks
-are guilty.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know that. But we’ve had a lot of evidence——”</p>
-
-<p>“What kind o’ evidence?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam frowned. “Why—why, it has been
-circumstantial evidence, but there has been a
-lot of it. And Orkney has had a chronic
-grouch all along. And he has had it in for
-all my crowd. And, finally, he ran away.
-That’s the same as confessing, isn’t it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Confessin’ what?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, everything,” said Sam vaguely.</p>
-
-<p>Lon took a moment for thought.</p>
-
-<p>“Sam, I can’t help thinkin’ there’s a mistake
-somewhere. Now, you mean to be square
-and fair, and so do your chums, but you
-haven’t liked this Orkney. I dunno’s there’s
-any reason why you should like him, but that
-ain’t the question. I plumb despise a rattlesnake,
-but I’ve got no call to insist he’s stealin’
-my fire-wood. Follow the argyment, do you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; but——”</p>
-
-<p>“Hold on! Wa’n’t there nothin’ nowhere<span class="pagenum">[199]</span>
-along the line to make you doubt if you were
-right?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing,” Sam insisted; then recalled the
-Shark’s contention, and made amendment.
-“There was nothing, that is, except that Willy
-Reynolds figured it out that Orkney couldn’t
-have thrown a stone that smashed a window
-in our club-house. And the Shark—Willy, I
-mean—is a crank on mathematics. And we
-found a cap of Orkney’s——”</p>
-
-<p>“One he’d been wearin’ that evenin’?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, nobody saw him wearing it—nobody
-saw him, for that matter; for he ducked and
-ran. And though a face showed outside of
-the window, the fellow who noticed it didn’t
-recognize it. But the cap belonged to Orkney.”</p>
-
-<p>Lon did not appear to be deeply impressed.</p>
-
-<p>“Thing like that depends on a lot of other
-things,” said he.</p>
-
-<p>“But Orkney didn’t try to deny anything.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, put it up to him, good and straight,
-did you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why—why, in a way.”</p>
-
-<p>“Jesso! But you didn’t say, ‘Now, Orkney,
-what did you do this thing, and that
-thing, and the other thing for?’”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[200]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, I hinted at things I was going to
-thrash him for, and——”</p>
-
-<p>Lon laughed. “Ho-ho! Now we’re gettin’
-down to cases. You said, ‘I’m goin’ to lick
-you,’ and he said, ‘Come on and try it.’ Sam,
-it’s been a good while since I was a boy, but I
-guess that’s jest about what I’d ’a’ said to a
-feller of my own size that promised me a
-hidin’. And I wouldn’t ’a’ asked a bill o’
-particulars.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam took a turn the length of the barn
-floor and back. Lon certainly was presenting
-a new aspect of the case, a disturbing aspect,
-unsettling, destructive of comfortable confidence.</p>
-
-<p>“Look here, Lon! What makes you take
-sides against me?” the boy asked querulously.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t,” was the curt reply.</p>
-
-<p>“But——”</p>
-
-<p>“Wal, I’ll explain. First place, such didoes
-as somebody has been cuttin’ up round
-here don’t quite fit in with what a feller like
-this Orkney would be likely to do. Maybe
-he’s a surly customer, but, after all, he’s had
-good bringin’ up. Second place, bein’ away
-from town, he couldn’t have chopped up the<span class="pagenum">[201]</span>
-harness last night. Third place, I’m gettin’
-kind of a hunch that I may be able to dig up
-a clue or two.”</p>
-
-<p>“Connecting somebody else with the case?”
-queried Sam incredulously.</p>
-
-<p>“Yep.”</p>
-
-<p>“But who——”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t ask me that, Sam, till I’ve looked
-around a bit. If I’m right—well, you’ll say
-it’s the queerest piece of business you ever
-heard tell of.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, don’t stop there!”</p>
-
-<p>“Got to. It’s kinder shapin’ up promisin’,
-but I ain’t sure. And in a matter like this
-it’s better to be safe than sorry.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a wry smile on Sam’s face.
-“Safety First!” he said in a tone which made
-Lon gaze at him curiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Jest what do you mean?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>But Sam turned away without answering.
-Indeed, to make full explanation would have
-been difficult; for he could have said little
-more than that he was experiencing a peculiar
-sensation, to be likened to that of one rudely
-awakened from a complacent dream.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[202]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVII">CHAPTER XVII
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">MORE SURPRISES</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Sam walked out of the barn without any
-clear notion of what he ought to do; but
-when he reached the gate his step quickened.</p>
-
-<p>It was Saturday; the morning was his own.
-It had flashed upon him that he could not do
-better than investigate the matters which had
-first seemed to be so conclusive of Orkney’s
-guilt. Granting that Tom probably had had
-nothing to do with the damage to the harness,
-he would attempt to remove all doubt from
-the value of the best piece of evidence for
-the prosecution, so to speak. This was the
-cap found by Step near the club-house.</p>
-
-<p>When Master Jones had snatched the cap
-from Orkney’s head, and thrown it over a
-fence, it had dropped upon the dead turf in old
-Mrs. Benton’s yard. The club’s theory was
-that the owner had recovered it subsequently
-and secretly. It remained for Sam to try to
-discover what really had happened.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[203]</span></p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Benton, if advanced in years, was active
-and alert. She answered her door-bell in person,
-and led Sam into her spotlessly neat sitting-room.</p>
-
-<p>The boy plunged at once into his errand.
-Had she chanced to see a cap lying on her
-lawn, and did she know what had become of it?</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Benton nodded vivaciously. A cap—a
-boy’s cap? Of course, she remembered.</p>
-
-<p>“When I looked out of my window that
-morning, there it was in plain sight,” she said.
-“And I must say it looked awfully careless
-and shiftless—I don’t know what strangers
-would have thought of the folks living in this
-house. So I went right out and brought the
-cap in.”</p>
-
-<p>“And—and—and that was in the morning?”
-Sam faltered.</p>
-
-<p>“In the morning—early.”</p>
-
-<p>“Somebody came to claim it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nobody came. I declare! I don’t see
-how young folks get so regardless of things
-these days! And that was a perfectly good
-cap—that is, it would have been perfectly
-good if it hadn’t been left out in the damp all
-night.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[204]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Is it still here, ma’am?”</p>
-
-<p>“Bless you, no, child! It’s gone.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam leaned forward in his eagerness.
-“Gone where, ma’am?”</p>
-
-<p>“Into the rubbish can, of course.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Sam, and sank back in his
-chair.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Benton’s eyebrows rose a trifle. “Bless
-me, but you wouldn’t expect me to keep my
-house cluttered up with all sorts of other people’s
-odds and ends, would you?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, ma’am,” Sam hastened to assure her.
-“But—but did it stay in the can?”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Benton met question with question.
-“Why? Was it yours?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no,” said Sam. “It wasn’t mine, but
-I—I—well, I was sort of—sort of interested in
-it. Do you know what became of it?”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s just what I don’t know.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Sam again.</p>
-
-<p>The lady did not miss the disappointment
-in his tone.</p>
-
-<p>“Somebody took it out of the can,” she explained.
-“It wasn’t the garbage collector, for
-that wasn’t his day to come ’round. But I
-remember that I disposed of the cap after<span class="pagenum">[205]</span>
-breakfast, and that, when I carried out some
-potato peelings an hour or two later, the cap
-had disappeared. There often are people
-prowling through the alley, you know—tramps,
-some of ’em—and it was a pretty
-good cap, after all, if a body wasn’t over-particular.
-And you say it wasn’t yours?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, ma’am,” said Sam, and rose a bit
-hastily. “But I’m very much obliged for the
-information.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Benton followed him to the door.
-“You’re thanking me for very little,” she remarked.
-“But if it’ll be any help to you, in
-whatever you are after, I can add that the cap
-was taken out of the can somewhere between
-nine and ten o’clock that morning.”</p>
-
-<p>And in the hour mentioned, as Sam was
-quite aware, Tom Orkney was fully accounted
-for, having been in his place in school!</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s step was slow as he moved away
-from the house, and his brow was furrowed.
-Undeniably the case against Orkney was
-weakening. Equally the case for the Safety
-First Club was tottering.</p>
-
-<p>There came to Sam unhappy recollections of
-talk about the chain of proofs and its various<span class="pagenum">[206]</span>
-links, among them the cruelty to Little Perrine.
-Well, there was nothing for it but to go
-on with the inquiry he had begun.</p>
-
-<p>Little Perrine, he was told, was very much
-better, and would be glad to see him. The
-convalescent was sitting up in bed, and was in
-excellent spirits.</p>
-
-<p>“Hullo, Sam!” he called out gaily. “Gee,
-but it’s good of you to look me up! Sit down,
-and tell me all about how you pulled Tom
-Orkney and me out of the pond. The folks
-won’t tell me half enough.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam drew a chair close to the bed.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, it isn’t much of a yarn,” he said
-modestly. “I happened to have a plank, so
-it was no trick at all.”</p>
-
-<p>Little Perrine smiled. “That’s what you
-say! Doesn’t match the stories other people
-tell—and I guess they’re nearer the real truth.
-Everybody declares you did a star job. Funny,
-isn’t it, that I don’t remember anything about
-your part of it? One instant Tom Orkney
-was grabbing for me, and trying to drag me
-back, and the next—crash! There I was in
-the water, and Tom had jumped in after me,
-and was holding me up. Then everything<span class="pagenum">[207]</span>
-was blurred, and there was a queer singing in
-my ears—and the next I knew, here I
-was, in bed. And then things got to whirling
-round, and I was going through it all
-again and again. Jiminy! but I bet I yelled
-like a good fellow!”</p>
-
-<p>“Pretty close call for a kid like you,” said
-Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“Poof! I’m tough!” insisted the boy.
-“I’d have been all right—crawled out myself,
-I would, if it hadn’t been for that sleepy feeling
-that came over me. But it was all right,
-anyway. There was old Orkney to hold my
-head out of water, and you were coming on
-the run. But, as it is, Orkney’ll have a good
-laugh on me, I tell you.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam grasped the fact that Perrine had not
-been informed of Tom’s disappearance.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, so he—he’ll have the laugh on you?”
-he asked uncertainly.</p>
-
-<p>“Sure! You see, he’d been telling me to
-keep away from the thin places. When he
-came along I was doing stunts—seeing how
-close to a blow-hole I could skate, you know;
-and he made a fuss about it. Why, he grabbed
-me, and lugged me back to shore, and tried to<span class="pagenum">[208]</span>
-make me promise to quit the funny business.
-But I got away from him, and beat it for the
-dam. I didn’t think he’d dare chase me, he
-weighs so much more than I do. But he
-pelted after me, and he’d have got me if I
-hadn’t kept dodging. And then—well, then
-the thing happened. But old Orkney was a
-brick, wasn’t he?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam strove to make fitting reply, but
-achieved only a choking sound.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, what’s the matter?” demanded Little
-Perrine. “And what makes you look so
-queer?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam wiped his forehead with his handkerchief;
-he had a sense of fighting for time.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, looking—looking queer, was I?”</p>
-
-<p>Little Perrine grinned. “Say! It was as
-if I’d hit you between the eyes and dazed
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam laughed, but it was a forced laugh and
-unconvincing.</p>
-
-<p>“I guess this room’s pretty warm,” said he,
-and got upon his feet. “I’ll have to be going.
-You’ll be out, I suppose, in a day or two?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. But if you meet Orkney, tell him
-to come to see me. You wouldn’t mind<span class="pagenum">[209]</span>
-taking the message, would you? Of course, I
-know he hasn’t been pals with your crowd,
-but after all that’s happened——”</p>
-
-<p>“If I should see Tom Orkney I’d be only
-too glad to deliver your message,” said Sam
-heavily.</p>
-
-<p>Another link in that famous chain had been
-fractured. By the testimony of the best possible
-witness Orkney had not imperiled Little
-Perrine’s life by driving him upon the
-thin ice; but, on the contrary, had risked his
-own to protect the younger and frailer boy.</p>
-
-<p>With dragging step Sam went back to Lon
-Gates.</p>
-
-<p>“I might as well speak plainly, Lon,” he
-said. “I’m all unsettled in my ideas.”</p>
-
-<p>Lon regarded him keenly. “So? Ain’t
-that Orkney the all-round cut-up you thought
-he was?”</p>
-
-<p>“I—I guess I’ll have to take back some of
-the things I said.”</p>
-
-<p>“So?” Lon repeated.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes—so!” said Sam with more spirit.
-“And since it’s so, and since somebody must
-have made all the mischief, and since it isn’t
-likely Orkney was the guilty one—why, Lon,<span class="pagenum">[210]</span>
-I’d amazingly like to know whom you suspect.”</p>
-
-<p>The hired man rubbed his chin. “Wal, I
-dunno. As things was, I didn’t intend to say
-nothin’ more till I was surer of my ground.
-But, seein’ how you’ve kinder cooled down
-and come to be ready to accept the light o’
-reason, maybe I might’s well breathe a whisper
-or two of what the little birds may, or may
-not, have been tellin’ me.”</p>
-
-<p>“This has been a day of surprises,” said Sam,
-“but I’m ready for some more. Fire ahead!”</p>
-
-<p>Lon came a step nearer. They were alone
-in the barn, but he dropped his voice almost
-to a whisper.</p>
-
-<p>“Wal, then, I will. Remember that day
-you went out and potted Major Bates?” he
-began.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[211]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVIII">CHAPTER XVIII
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">LON DISCUSSES CROOKED THINKING</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Perhaps you have had the trying and distressing
-experience of discovering, of a sudden
-and without warning, that what you devoutly
-had hoped was a closely guarded secret appeared
-to be no secret at all. If you have
-suffered such a shock, you will understand
-Sam’s sensations. The unfortunate affair of
-Marlow woods was by no means ancient history,
-but gossip about it had dwindled, and he
-had come to believe that the town had set it
-down as one of those mysteries which never
-are solved. Yet here was Lon, referring to it
-as nonchalantly as if it were matter of common
-knowledge!</p>
-
-<p>For a moment Sam stared, wide eyed and
-open mouthed, at his ally. Mentally and
-physically he was overcome. Speech failed
-him, and he sank weakly upon a feed-box,
-beside which he had been standing.</p>
-
-<p>There was a touch of sympathy in Lon’s<span class="pagenum">[212]</span>
-manner. “Sorry if I’ve rubbed your fur the
-wrong way, Sam. Course, though, when you
-asked me——”</p>
-
-<p>Sam found tongue. “How did you know?
-Who told you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Lot o’ folks.”</p>
-
-<p>“A lot!” gasped Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“Yep; a lot. Bill Marlow, and your
-father, and Maggie, and the Major, and
-you——”</p>
-
-<p>“Me!” In his amazement Sam was careless
-of grammar. “Me? Why, I never
-breathed a syllable!”</p>
-
-<p>Lon grinned. “Wal, you wa’n’t exactly
-chatty; that’s a fact. But I guess ’twas the
-things you didn’t say that told me most.
-Same way with your father. Didn’t know,
-did you, that I saw him one mornin’ swabbin’
-out that gun of his? And he hadn’t been
-huntin’, and he wasn’t goin’ huntin’. Then
-there was Maggie. One day we was discussin’
-your life and public services, and I sorter
-gloomed about you, and she flew at me like
-a hen protectin’ her last chick from a hawk;
-and then I knew well enough you’d been in
-some particular big scrape, and she knew, or<span class="pagenum">[213]</span>
-guessed, more or less what ’twas. Then there
-was the Major——”</p>
-
-<p>“The Major!”</p>
-
-<p>“Sure! ’Nother case of what you might
-call eloquent silence. When he turned Peter
-Groche loose, what more did he do? Nothin’!
-What more did he say? Nothin’! And the
-Major ain’t the party to let somebody put a
-few buckshot into him and grin and bear it
-uncomplainin’. He’d ’a’ railroaded Peter
-Groche to jail with all the pleasure in life,
-and he’d ’a’ done the same thing to any other
-man that played he was an old buck. But
-the Major’s a good sport, after all; he hates
-to fuss with anybody that ain’t his size. See
-where the argyment’s leadin’, don’t you? So,
-when you ’fessed up——”</p>
-
-<p>“When I ’fessed up!” Sam seemed to be
-capable of nothing but repetitions.</p>
-
-<p>Lon chuckled a bit complacently. “Wal,
-Sam, that’s where I’m on dead reckonin’.
-But when I’d chewed it all over a few times,
-it struck me that you was jest the kind of a
-feller to own up when you saw somebody else
-was in trouble for what you’d done; and that
-the Major was jest the old hardshell to be<span class="pagenum">[214]</span>
-tickled by your givin’ a square deal to that
-miserable critter, Groche. Course, I’ve kept
-my eyes and ears open, and I’ve been down
-town nights, and I’ve talked with folks, and
-I’ve picked up little things here and there
-that fitted together. And so I got four, not
-by puttin’ two with two, but by addin’ an
-eighth, and three-sixteenths, and a half, and
-three-quarters, and so on and so on. And—wal,
-that’s about all of that chapter.”</p>
-
-<p>“Lon, you’re a wonder!”</p>
-
-<p>“Pretty nigh right, wa’n’t I?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nearer than that.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wal, you see, I knew one Sam Parker
-like a book. And when something happened
-one mornin’, and he dodged talkin’ about
-where he was jest then or what he was doin’—wal,
-I had a mighty good start on Shylock
-Holmesin’.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sherlock Holmesing,” Sam corrected mechanically.</p>
-
-<p>“Same family, anyhow.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a pause. Then said Sam:</p>
-
-<p>“Lon, I didn’t wish to keep the truth from
-you especially. If I’d talked about the affair,
-there’s nobody who’d have heard more about<span class="pagenum">[215]</span>
-it than you would. But I was advised not to
-confide in anybody.”</p>
-
-<p>Lon nodded. “Right enough! And I
-wouldn’t have yipped if, somehow, things
-hadn’t worked around as they have. And I
-jest had to let the cat out o’ the bag if I was
-goin’ to point out the dog I believe has been
-snappin’ at us. You want to find out who
-’tis I suspect, don’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Most certainly!”</p>
-
-<p>“Peter Groche!” said Lon emphatically.</p>
-
-<p>“Peter—Peter Groche?” Astonishment
-again possessed Sam. “Why—why should
-he have a grudge against me? Didn’t I
-save him? Didn’t I keep him out of jail?
-Didn’t they have what seemed to be a complete
-case against him?”</p>
-
-<p>“Like enough.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then, too,” urged Sam, “he could have
-had no notion that I was mixed up in the
-case. The Major didn’t tell him; nobody
-else told him. But if he had known, he
-ought to have been grateful. Either way
-the thing isn’t reasonable.”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! Peter ain’t, neither!” grunted
-Lon.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[216]</span></p>
-
-<p>“But what’s that got to do with——”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp54" id="i222" style="max-width: 40.625em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i222.jpg" alt="">
- <div class="caption"><p class="center">“<a href="#BRef_222">HOLD HARD, THERE!</a>”</p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Lon loved an argument. <a id="BRef_222" href="#i222">“Hold hard,
-there!</a>” said he. “To get at things you’ve
-got to start right. And it ain’t startin’ right
-to talk about Peter Groche and reasonable
-things in the same breath. Look here,
-now!” Lon picked up an empty liniment
-bottle, and stood it on its neck; whereupon
-the bottle fell over on its side. “See what’s
-happened, don’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“But it was upside down.”</p>
-
-<p>“Exactly! But that’s the way with Peter
-Groche—with his brains, I mean. Your mistake
-is tryin’ to figure on him as a reasonable
-bein’. But Groche, for years and years, has
-been like that bottle—all upside down. He’s
-been carousin’, and loafin’, and stealin’. All
-his thinkin’ has got warped, and twisted, and
-crooked.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then he’s crazy!”</p>
-
-<p>“Not quite that. But he ain’t what folks
-call normal. Oh, I know the breed!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam racked his memory. “You mean he’s
-a—a degenerate?” he queried.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s the ticket! He’s like pizen ivy:
-he began by bein’ no good, and he’s got wuss<span class="pagenum">[217]</span>
-and more of a nuisance the more he spreads
-out.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam shook his head doubtfully. “All the
-same, I don’t follow your argument, Lon. If
-there’s anything to it, we’d have to figure
-that Peter had some cause to suppose I was in
-the scrape; for we might as well drop the
-notion that, all of a sudden, he’d begin to
-persecute me, unless he had some tip. But
-I’ve told you I’m sure nobody gave him one.
-And as I didn’t see him in the woods, he
-wouldn’t have seen me there.”</p>
-
-<p>“You can’t prove that,” Lon declared.
-“He’s an old hand at deer huntin’, out o’
-season as well as in; and he keeps his eyes
-peeled mighty sharp. It’s ten to one he had
-a peek at you, and knew within five rods
-where you were, when the Major was hit.
-So it was an easy guess for him, when he was
-arrested, that you’d figgered in the combination.”</p>
-
-<p>“But——” Sam began.</p>
-
-<p>Lon interrupted him. “You listen, son!
-I’ll bet you he not only saw you, but believed
-you saw him. And he was keepin’ tabs on
-you and on the Major, too—’tain’t a bad idea,<span class="pagenum">[218]</span>
-at that, for anybody in the woods in the deer
-season to watch his neighbors and what they’re
-about. Wal, then, we have Peter, as keen as
-a weasel, and full as vicious—we have him, I
-say, with his eyes and ears busy. Bang! goes
-your gun. Peter hears it. He waits for
-what’ll happen—always a chance that if
-you’ve really sighted a buck, the critter may
-come his way. Wal, again, in a minute or
-two, something does come, but it ain’t nothin’
-on four legs. It’s the Major, and the Major’s
-fightin’ mad. Somebody’s winged him, and
-he thinks it’s Peter; but Peter don’t need no
-map to show where you come in.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I——”</p>
-
-<p>“Let me finish! Peter, bein’ Peter, acts
-accordin’. He jumps to a conclusion—and
-that’s that you’ve done what he’d do himself,
-if he was in your shoes. He figgers you’ve
-blazed away, and run up to find a dead deer,
-and come on the Major, dazed and ragin’, and
-grabbed the chance to put the blame off on
-somebody else. He credits you with knowin’
-the reputation of the Groche fam’ly hereabouts,
-and with settin’ the Major on a false trail that
-leads straight to one Peter o’ that name. Then,<span class="pagenum">[219]</span>
-havin’ set the Major goin’, you vamoose—and
-that’s what Peter Groche would ’a’ done himself,
-if he’d been in your fix. What say to
-that, Sam?”</p>
-
-<p>“I—I don’t know what to say. Only,
-when the sheriff arrested him, why didn’t he
-deny——”</p>
-
-<p>Once more Lon stopped the boy in mid-sentence.
-“There you go again—forgettin’
-Peter ain’t like most folks! It’s where the
-crooked thinkin’—and the crooked livin’—comes
-in. The Major’s in a passion, and
-Peter has jawed back till he’s ’bout as mad
-himself. Most likely the sheriff can’t make
-head nor tail o’ what he’s growlin’. And
-Peter’s got his reputation, and everybody
-knows he’s made threats against the Major,
-and one barrel of his gun has been fired. So
-the sheriff thinks it’s a pretty clear case, and
-loads Peter in his wagon, and hauls him to
-the lock-up. By that time Peter, mebbe, has
-been workin’ his crooked wits. He sees well
-enough nobody’d believe him just then if he
-said he didn’t do it, so he doesn’t waste his
-breath that way. And mebbe, too, he gets a
-notion the case against him won’t be so all-fired<span class="pagenum">[220]</span>
-convincin’ when it comes to a trial, the
-evidence bein’ circumstantial, you see. Perhaps
-he’s schemin’ for damages for false arrest—and
-then, all of a sudden, they turn him
-loose. And so he skulks off, with a grudge
-against everybody, but a particular one against
-Sam Parker, Esq., who, he believes, lied about
-him to save himself. Sense, ain’t it—Peter’s
-kind o’ sense, that is?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam pondered. “Why—why—perhaps.”</p>
-
-<p>Lon wagged his head sagely. “Wal, I’m
-tellin’ you, Sam, a grudge is jest the one thing
-in this life Peter’ll live up to. He means to
-take it out o’ your hide. Now, when things
-went wrong about the place, and kept on goin’
-wrong, and I saw they weren’t due to your
-footlessness, I had half a notion some kid
-might be at the bottom of the trouble. But
-then I began to miss things from the barn—a
-spare bit, then a wrench, then a new sponge;
-and I’ll admit that did sort o’ suggest Groche’s
-manners. And weren’t you tellin’ me a while
-ago that one of your crowd figgered it out
-that no boy could have chucked that boulder
-through your club-house window? Wal,
-Groche could ’a’ done it. He’s as strong<span class="pagenum">[221]</span>
-as an ox, confound him! Come now! Piece
-it all together, and own up it makes quite a
-case!”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps it does,” Sam admitted.</p>
-
-<p>“But I don’t convince you completely?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam hesitated. “Why—why, I don’t know,
-Lon. I’ve had a lot of jolts to-day, and I’ve
-got to do some thinking before I can be sure
-of anybody.... Or of anything!” he
-added, after an instant’s pause.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[222]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIX">CHAPTER XIX
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">OF DUELS AND CONSCIENCE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The club received such report as Sam felt
-free to make of his investigation with interest
-rather than with regret for its share in the
-misfortunes of Tom Orkney.</p>
-
-<p>If Sam had told the whole story, including
-the affair in Marlow woods and Lon’s suspicions
-of Peter Groche, the crowd, doubtless,
-would have buzzed with excitement, and, incidentally,
-felt some sympathy for Orkney;
-but, given merely new light on the matter of
-the cap and a revised version of the incident
-at the pond, the boys, as a rule, fell back
-upon the declaration that Tom was a “grouch,”
-anyway, and declined to take to themselves
-any especial culpability. Somebody had committed
-the depredations at the Parker place;
-somebody had smashed the club-house window.
-Maybe Orkney hadn’t done these things, but
-wasn’t he a chronic sorehead? Of course, it
-was hard luck for him to be deemed Little<span class="pagenum">[223]</span>
-Perrine’s persecutor instead of protector, but
-the misunderstanding was general and not the
-particular error of the Safety First Club.</p>
-
-<p>Even the Shark, who might have spoken
-from the text of “I told you so,” let the opportunity
-pass. His calculations of the flight
-of the boulder had started him upon an agreeable
-inquiry into the subject of projectiles,
-and, as Poke declared, he was as far in the
-clouds as if he had been sent there by one of
-the big mortars about which he was reading.</p>
-
-<p>In the club’s opinion that there was nothing
-to be done, Sam was in a way to coincide,
-though he would have phrased it that nothing
-could be done at present. Yet something
-should be done. This was clear in his mind,
-though he seemed to be unable to hit upon a
-practical suggestion.</p>
-
-<p>No news came of the missing Orkney.</p>
-
-<p>Lon Gates, playing detective at every opportunity,
-confessed that he found nothing either
-to shake or to confirm his theory of the guilt
-of Peter Groche. The man, after hanging
-about town as usual, had dropped out of sight,
-leaving no word of the destination for which
-he was bound.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[224]</span></p>
-
-<p>Then came Christmas and a fortnight’s vacation,
-and Sam shared cheerfully in the festivities
-of the season. He was in excellent
-health; he liked fun; he indulged vigorously
-in winter sports; his appetite remained admirable.
-But, for all that, there was a change
-in the boy, quite unobserved by his father,
-who was held by business cares; vaguely felt
-by his friends, and distinctly marked by his
-mother. Mrs. Parker took occasion to have
-several long talks with her son. She was sure
-that he had something on his mind, but all
-her tact did not lead him to confidences.
-Sam understood her solicitude, and was grateful,
-if reticent. A fellow who was trying to
-prove his self-reliance, he reasoned, must work
-out his problems for himself. Not that he
-would have declined counsel from older heads—probably
-he would have welcomed a chance
-to accept his father’s advice, the affair appearing
-to him to be peculiarly one for masculine
-consideration; but he would not seek it.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker, as has been related, was very
-busy. For one thing, he was arranging a
-trip into the woods with a capitalist from New
-York, and plans for the expedition took up<span class="pagenum">[225]</span>
-much of his time. For another, his method
-of dealing with Sam on probation was to interfere
-as little as possible with the boy’s
-affairs. Sam’s school reports were good; he
-seemed to be avoiding scrapes; he had distinguished
-himself in the rescue of Tom Orkney
-and Little Perrine. On the whole, the father
-was well pleased with the situation as he
-observed it.</p>
-
-<p>Sam himself was not pleased. It is not
-good to have a sense of uncertainty, and of
-baffled intentions to do right. On the one
-hand was his remembrance of his precautions
-in trying to follow out his motto of “Safety
-First”; on the other, an uneasy conviction that
-Tom Orkney had suffered unjustly. Sometimes
-one seemed to outweigh the other; again
-he vacillated miserably between the two opinions.
-And one day, not long after Christmas,
-when his doubts were assailing him sorely, he
-recalled the Major’s invitation, and sought
-diversion in a visit to the veteran.</p>
-
-<p>The Major received him with marked favor,
-cracked a joke or two about his big game
-record, and began to make the round of what
-was really a fine collection of arms. There<span class="pagenum">[226]</span>
-were flint-lock muskets and fowling-pieces;
-muzzle-loading and breech-loading rifles; cutlasses,
-sabers and bayonets; huge, old-fashioned
-horse pistols, revolvers and even a modern,
-compact, automatic weapon. Of these the
-Major spoke briefly; but he lingered longer
-over a case in which lay a brace of pistols,
-very old in pattern, but of exquisite workmanship.</p>
-
-<p>“I wonder, Sam,” he said, “if you ever
-have seen such fellows as these? What do
-you think they are?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m sure I don’t know, sir,” Sam answered.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, what do you imagine they were used
-for?”</p>
-
-<p>“I haven’t a notion.”</p>
-
-<p>The Major wagged his head. “My boy, it’s
-a testimonial to the progress of the world that
-you haven’t a notion. Time was, I’m sorry to
-say, when a fine, upstanding lad like you
-would have known only too well what these
-were and how they were used. These are
-dueling pistols, sir!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” cried Sam, and bent over the case
-with increased interest. “And—and were
-they ever—ever——”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[227]</span></p>
-
-<p>“They were,” said the Major drily. “Oh,
-yes—more than once. Genuine article, I do
-assure you! But that sort of thing is over
-and done with, fortunately.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam straightened his back. “I’ve read
-about duels, of course. And some of the books
-speak as if there must have been lots of
-them.”</p>
-
-<p>“Too many!” snorted the Major. “That’s
-perfectly true, sir. Principle was all wrong,
-but it took centuries to make the discovery.
-Honest men, honorable men mistakenly believed
-that the way to do justice and to accept
-justice was by killing each other or standing
-up to be killed. All wrong; all wrong, sir!
-The law is the law, and to it we must look for
-redress for injuries.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir,” said Sam, a deal impressed by
-this testimony from one commonly reputed to
-be a stubborn and unyielding antagonist.
-“Only—only”—a curious thought had thrust
-itself upon him—“only, can you always be sure
-of what the law is? I mean, that is, can you
-always be sure of what you ought to do?”</p>
-
-<p>“Eh?” The bushy eyebrows came together
-as if the Major were perplexed by the question.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[228]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Can you always find a law—or a rule—that
-applies?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, a law is general in its terms, of
-course. And you’ve some special instance in
-mind, haven’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam hesitated. “I—I—well, I’m thinking
-of a case in which a fellow acted on what he
-thought was full justification, and found, afterward,
-that—well, that there had been a lot
-of mistakes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Honest mistakes?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir. Only——”</p>
-
-<p>“Pardon me!” the Major interrupted.
-“Let me cite a case. Once a friend of mine,
-who had to carry a great deal of money, was
-set upon by masked and armed men. In what
-he fully believed was self-defense he shot and
-killed one of them. It proved that the attack
-was the work of rash practical jokers. My
-friend was acquitted, justly. Now, was his
-case like that which you are considering?”</p>
-
-<p>Again Sam hesitated. “Yes—and no, sir.
-My case isn’t quite so clear.”</p>
-
-<p>“Little prejudice to begin with—biased
-judgment?” queried the Major keenly.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s the trouble, sir,” said Sam frankly.<span class="pagenum">[229]</span>
-“The evidence looked all right, but how can
-I be certain that it ought to have seemed so?”</p>
-
-<p>“Difficult!” said the Major tersely.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, sir, what would you do if you were
-in my—if you were in the fix?”</p>
-
-<p>The Major put his hand on Sam’s shoulder.
-“My boy,” he said very gravely, “you’re dealing
-with a problem which neither I nor anybody
-else can solve for you. It is a problem
-to be settled by law, but the law is that of
-your own conscience. Now, I submit, the
-court of conscience is supplemental to the
-courts of the land, but it is severer in its judgments.
-The other courts may give you the
-benefit of a doubt, but hardly the court of
-conscience. And if there were prejudice——”
-There he checked himself. “No; I’ll say no
-more; for I’ve no right to seek to influence
-you unduly. You must reach your own decision
-for yourself.”</p>
-
-<p>“I understand, sir,” said Sam, with a gravity
-matching the Major’s.</p>
-
-<p>The pressure on his shoulder increased.
-“If I’m a judge of human nature, young man,”
-the Major declared, “you <em>will</em> settle this thing
-for yourself, and you’ll settle it right!”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[230]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XX">CHAPTER XX
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">SAM MAKES A SPEECH</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>It was late in the afternoon of Sam’s visit
-to the Major, and the club members were
-gathered in their house.</p>
-
-<p>Sam, silent and preoccupied, was sitting in
-one corner. The Shark, in another, was somewhat
-skeptically regarding Step Jones, who
-was describing, for the benefit of the assembled
-company, a number of big fish that day caught
-through the ice of the mill-pond. Step’s arms
-were long, and his imagination was active.</p>
-
-<p>“Gee, but those pickerel were regular old
-granddaddies!” he averred. “Smallest was
-this long.” He spread his hands. “Then
-came two or three about this size.” Another
-illustration. “Then there was the biggest.”
-And Step’s hands were moved farther apart.</p>
-
-<p>“Aw, come off!” jeered the Trojan.
-“You’re thinking of ’em all, put end to
-end.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[231]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I’m not,” Step insisted. “What’ll you bet
-’twasn’t this long?”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! You’re dreaming!”</p>
-
-<p>“Dreaming nothing! Didn’t I see the
-fish?”</p>
-
-<p>“You didn’t see any five-foot pickerel.”</p>
-
-<p>“Tell you I saw one the length I’m showing
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>Up sprang the Shark, and strode across the
-room, pulling a tape-measure from his pocket
-as he advanced. A good deal to Step’s embarrassment,
-he insisted upon making careful
-measure of the distance between the outstretched
-palms.</p>
-
-<p>“Four feet, three and seven-eighths inches,”
-he announced. “Umph! Some fish, Step;
-yes, some fish!”</p>
-
-<p>Step lost no time in lowering his arms.
-“Well, you fellows can josh if you want to;
-but you can’t prove I’m wrong.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a shout of derision.</p>
-
-<p>“No, sir—I won’t take off an inch!” declared
-Step.</p>
-
-<p>The Shark grinned. “All right, Step. Only
-that couldn’t have been a pickerel; it must
-have been a muskellunge.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[232]</span></p>
-
-<p>“’Longe in the mill-pond! Sure thing!”
-snickered Poke.</p>
-
-<p>“No, no,” Herman Boyd put in. “Step’s
-mixed—that’s all. He’s thinking of what
-Sam caught—Little Perrine and Tom Orkney.”</p>
-
-<p>Over in his corner Sam roused at the name.
-“Who’s talking about Orkney?” he called out.</p>
-
-<p>“I am,” said Herman.</p>
-
-<p>“Any news of him?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, thank fortune!” Herman was not
-an especially vindictive fellow; but he had
-disliked Tom exceedingly.</p>
-
-<p>Sam rose, and came over to the group about
-Step.</p>
-
-<p>“Listen, you chaps; I’ve something to say
-about Orkney,” he began.</p>
-
-<p>“Speech, speech!” shouted Poke.</p>
-
-<p>“Very well; I’ll make a speech,” said Sam.
-“You may not agree with me, but I’m going
-to give you the truth as I see it. We’re wrong
-in this Orkney business; we’ve been wrong all
-along.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a ripple of dissent.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I say, Sam!” protested Poke. “That’s
-going too far.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[233]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Not at all,” Sam insisted. “We were
-wrong in charging Orkney with a lot of
-things he never did.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know—you’ve harped on that before.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’ll harp on it again.”</p>
-
-<p>“But we thought he did ’em. He was
-mean enough to do ’em, if they’d occurred to
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Go to it, Poke!” cried Step. “Now you’re
-shouting!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam frowned. “Here!” he said impatiently.
-“Do I get my chance to talk, or
-don’t I?”</p>
-
-<p>Poke made a burlesque bow. “Sir, I yield
-the floor,” said he.</p>
-
-<p>“I say we made a mistake, and I mean it,”
-Sam went on. “Not liking Orkney, we forgot
-the old rule that you’ve got to hold anybody
-innocent of a charge till he’s proved
-guilty. Don’t stop me! You’ll try to argue
-that we had evidence against him, but, as we
-know now, it wasn’t proof, by a long shot.
-There was that business of the cap. Did we
-investigate it? We didn’t. If any one of us
-had taken the trouble to ask Mrs. Benton
-about it at the time, there’d be another story<span class="pagenum">[234]</span>
-to tell. Then every one of us jumped to the
-conclusion that Orkney came near drowning
-Little Perrine. Evidence? We hadn’t a bit.”</p>
-
-<p>“But people said——” Poke began.</p>
-
-<p>“Confound what people said! They knew
-no more than we did. They were jumping to
-conclusions, too. But we were saying things
-on our own account. Right here, in this
-room, Poke told us that we were responsible
-for blocking Orkney’s ambitions from the
-first, for taking the shine off him; that the
-Shark eclipsed him in mathematics and
-Step skimmed the cream from the Greek;
-that the crowd of us kept him from bossing
-the class. And all of us chimed in, and
-said it was so, and patted our own backs,
-and——”</p>
-
-<p>“Hold on, Sam!” the Shark broke in.
-“How’d we do that? We’re not contortionists.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hang it all! Don’t interrupt! You
-know what I mean.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know; I infer,” corrected the
-Shark. “Be accurate, be accurate!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s temper flared. “What’s the matter,
-anyway? Don’t you want to hear me?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[235]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I do,” said the Shark calmly. “You’re
-talking sense. Therefore use sensible language.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll do the best I can,” Sam promised,
-“but listen to me, anyway. What I’m getting
-at is that, as Poke had it, if Orkney was
-driven out of town, we had a lot to do with
-the driving. We called it a good job, but was
-it? It was <em>not</em>! We didn’t play fair; we
-didn’t give him a square deal. He was entitled
-to the benefit of the doubt, and we
-always counted the doubt against him. I
-know, I know what you’re thinking—he <em>was</em>
-a cub, and a chronic grouch, and a trouble
-maker; but the ugly fact remains that we
-accused him of a lot of things he didn’t do,
-and had no intention of doing. And I say,
-in such a case, it’s up to us to see that, at last,
-he gets a square deal. I don’t say it so much
-for his sake as for our own.”</p>
-
-<p>“Umph! Matter of self-respect?” queried
-the Shark.</p>
-
-<p>“Just that!” said Sam emphatically.</p>
-
-<p>For a moment there was silence.</p>
-
-<p>“But, Sam!” ventured Herman Boyd.
-“Aren’t you piling it on this crowd? Suppose<span class="pagenum">[236]</span>
-Orkney was—er—er—os—os—what’s
-that word I want?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ostracized?” suggested Step.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s it—ostracized. Well, suppose that
-was what happened to Orkney. We didn’t do
-it—all. The whole school had a hand.”</p>
-
-<p>“That doesn’t relieve us of responsibility
-for our part.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re right, Sam,” said Poke very soberly;
-for like the others he felt the influence
-of Sam’s earnestness. “You’re right. We’ve
-got some responsibility. We were boasting
-of it the other day, and we can’t crawfish and
-shirk it now. But what’s the practical thing?
-What can we do about it?”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s it! What can we do?” echoed
-Step and the Trojan.</p>
-
-<p>“We can talk, argue,” Sam explained.
-“We can tell people Orkney has been misjudged.
-We can spread everywhere the truth
-about Little Perrine.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’ll go so far, gladly,” said Step.</p>
-
-<p>“Same here!” cried the Trojan.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course,” agreed Poke.</p>
-
-<p>The Shark was frowning slightly. “If you
-fellows had listened to my demonstration<span class="pagenum">[237]</span>
-about the flight of the boulder, you wouldn’t
-have to listen now to Sam. But it’s better
-late than never.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, cut the crowing!” said Step testily.</p>
-
-<p>“Might as well—it’ll be the same story
-over again next time I try to put anything
-before you in black and white.”</p>
-
-<p>Step turned to Sam. “I don’t like Orkney,”
-he said. “I never expect to like him.
-But I’ll promise to help set him right with
-the school. If there were any way to find
-him and bring him back, I’d jump at the
-chance.”</p>
-
-<p>“Guess you can make that promise for the
-whole club!” exclaimed Poke.</p>
-
-<p>“Sure!” cried the Trojan. The others
-nodded, a bit solemnly.</p>
-
-<p>“Then we’ll consider it a definite agreement,”
-said Sam. “If any of us get a clue, a
-tip, a hint, the whole club will pull together
-in whatever may be done.”</p>
-
-<p>Step laughed rather vaguely and glanced at
-the Shark.</p>
-
-<p>“What are the mathematical odds against
-getting a clue, old Headlights? Figure ’em
-out for us.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[238]</span></p>
-
-<p>The Shark’s lip curled. “Can’t! Problem’s
-all unknown quantities. But you may
-have bull luck. It’s always coming to blooming
-idiots.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam interposed in the interest of peace.</p>
-
-<p>“Stow the joshing, fellows! We’ve reached
-an understanding, anyway. It’s settled that
-if anybody gets news of Orkney the club is to
-share it. I admit I don’t know where it can
-come from, but I’ll hope for it, all the same.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam spoke guardedly enough, and with no
-suspicion that at that very moment Lon Gates
-lay in wait for him. And Lon had news, interesting
-certainly, and perhaps important.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[239]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXI">CHAPTER XXI
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">LON PLAYS DETECTIVE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>“See that, sonny?” Lon, having captured
-Sam at the gate and led him to the privacy of
-the barn, had taken a wrench from a shelf and
-was displaying the implement with much complacency.
-“’Member it? Ought to! It’s the
-wrench I told you the other day was lost,
-strayed or stolen.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Sam. “And so you found it?”</p>
-
-<p>Lon chuckled. “Wal, I did sort o’ stumble
-on it, as you might say. Only there was
-more’n plain stumblin’ involved, seein’ as how
-I had to take it away from Peter Groche.
-And Peter don’t willingly give up what ain’t
-his—not so long as he has his health.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then Peter’s turned up again!”</p>
-
-<p>“He’s turned up—this afternoon. Guess
-he’s turned down again, though, before this.
-I’ll tell you how ’twas.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wait a minute! If he had the wrench,<span class="pagenum">[240]</span>
-he’d stolen it from us. If he stole it, there’s
-no doubt left that he played all the other
-tricks!”</p>
-
-<p>Lon thrust a hand into the bosom of his
-coat, and struck an attitude.</p>
-
-<p>“Now what do you think o’ me as a sleuth?
-Ain’t I a reg’lar Shylock Holmes?”</p>
-
-<p>“Sherlock Holmes,” corrected Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, wal, Shylock’s the name that sort o’
-sticks in my head. Guess he must ’a’ been
-Sherlock’s brother. But then there was Hannibal,
-too.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam threw up his hands in mock despair.
-“Go on! Give me the yarn!”</p>
-
-<p>“Wal, me ’n’ Hannibal was goin’ down-town
-to do an errand for your ma, and we cut across
-by Lane’s blacksmith shop. The door was
-open. I was for paradin’ by, unnoticin’, but
-Hannibal began to growl and scooted for that
-door. Somethin’ made me whistle him back,
-and I was tickled I did; for when I peeked
-in, there was Peter Groche, big as life and
-uglier’n ever, tryin’ to sell this wrench to old
-man Lane for a dime. I knew it was ours the
-minute I clapped eyes on’t, but I jest thought
-I’d wait a little and listen to what Mr. Groche<span class="pagenum">[241]</span>
-was purrin’. And he was explainin’ to Mr.
-Lane that he’d been away for a day or two,
-and that he was back in town jest to settle his
-affairs, ’cause he’d picked up a reg’lar job,
-choppin’ in the woods up Payne’s Stream, and
-he was goin’ there soon’s he’d cashed in on a
-little portable property he had no further use
-for. And then, seein’ as how Hannibal was
-gettin’ uneasy, I walked in and took Mr.
-Groche by the collar, and walked him out o’
-the shop, and took away the wrench, and told
-him I guessed there was one bargain sale he’d
-have to call off.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s eyes were opened widely. “Gee! but
-it took nerve to tackle him! They say he’s
-an awful scrapper.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mebbe it wasn’t his scrappin’ day. And,
-of course, a bull terrier growlin’ ’round a feller’s
-legs is kinder disconcertin’—say, Sam,
-Hannibal showed plain enough he’d got a score
-to even with Groche. Don’t wonder at that!
-’Member the mornin’ the dog come limpin’
-home? Wal, anyhow, Peter didn’t put up a
-fight. He jest scowled, and cussed, and swore
-he’d found the wrench. Then I told him I
-supposed the wrench must ’a’ met him on the<span class="pagenum">[242]</span>
-street and followed him home, and he shut up
-on that part of it. Then I called him a thief,
-and a few other pet names; and he acted
-queer, I swan he did!”</p>
-
-<p>“What did he do?”</p>
-
-<p>“Swelled up like a frog. Didn’t call names
-back at me, but behaved contemptuous-like,
-as if I was a cheap ’un to worry about a plain
-old wrench. Said he had money enough to
-buy me; or, anyhow, he knew where he could
-get a bunch of it for the askin’. Then I
-laughed at him, and he puffed up more’n ever.
-What’d I think of an even hundred dollars,
-heh? Wal, it was his, whenever he chose to
-say ’bout a dozen words. And there wa’n’t
-nobody else in Plainville that could say ’em.
-He knew something, he did! And then he
-sputtered so there was no makin’ head or tail
-of his nonsense.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam caught Lon’s arm. “What else happened?
-Tell me—quick!”</p>
-
-<p>There was an excitement in the boy’s tone
-that made Lon stare at him.</p>
-
-<p>“Why—what—what’s stirrin’ you up,
-Sam?” he demanded.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll tell you afterward. Go on!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[243]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Huh! That’s what Groche did. You see,
-Hannibal lost patience and took a nip at his
-calf, and Peter jest missed kickin’ Hannibal;
-and it struck me the gaiety of our social circle
-was gettin’ feverish. So I grabbed Hannibal’s
-collar, and told Groche that if I saw him again
-I’d have him arrested for thievin’. Over on
-the railroad a freight was gettin’ ready to pull
-out on the branch line. I hinted he’d better
-jump it, and let it give him a lift, if he was
-headin’ Payne’s Stream way. And I was sorry
-he couldn’t stay to collect that ghost hundred
-dollars he was dreamin’ about, but Hannibal
-wouldn’t be denied much longer; so he’d better
-beat it. Which also he done.”</p>
-
-<p>“You mean he ran for the train?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yep! And caught it—saw him.”</p>
-
-<p>“And he’s going to Payne Stream?”</p>
-
-<p>“Looked mighty much that way. But
-what you drivin’ at, Sam?”</p>
-
-<p>“Wait a minute! Father’s camps are up
-there, aren’t they?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; he’s got gangs lumberin’ three-four
-places along the stream.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hurrah!” cried Sam.</p>
-
-<p>Lon’s jaw sagged. “What—what in Sam<span class="pagenum">[244]</span>
-Hill’s got into you? This ain’t the Fourth of
-July.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam was still clutching the man’s arm.
-“Look here, Lon! Wake up! Groche has
-been up-stream, got a job, come to town for
-some reason or other. You’ve started him
-back.”</p>
-
-<p>“Jesso!”</p>
-
-<p>“He boasted he could make a hundred dollars
-by telling something?”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s what he said.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you didn’t give him a chance to earn
-the money?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. Still, of course, most likely he was
-lyin’——”</p>
-
-<p>“For once he may have been speaking the
-truth. And it happens there’s just one way
-to pick up a hundred in Plainville so easily.”</p>
-
-<p>“How’s that?”</p>
-
-<p>“By winning the reward for news of Tom
-Orkney!”</p>
-
-<p>Lon’s expression was crestfallen. “Of all
-the chuckleheads!” he groaned. “And I
-didn’t tumble! I guess I’m jest a one-idea-at-a-time
-feller. But that one idea that I’d got
-Groche dead to rights on the stealin’ seemed<span class="pagenum">[245]</span>
-big as a mountain—hid everything else. But
-I’ll bet you’re right! Groche spotted the kid
-up in one o’ them camps on Payne Stream,
-and came back to collect easy money——”</p>
-
-<p>“Sure he didn’t get it?” Sam broke in.</p>
-
-<p>“Yep! I scared him off. You see, ’twas a
-mite livelier’n I let on jest now. And what
-between me ’n’ Hannibal and that wrench—reckon
-I was wavin’ it sort o’ free and vi’lent—and
-the risk o’ bein’ arrested—wal, I guess
-Groche was glad to go while the goin’ was
-good. Then, too, he may ’a’ figgered he could
-come back to pick the plum when things had
-quieted down—see?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam nodded. Lon was no braggart; no
-doubt the brush with Groche had been very
-nearly a full-sized fight.</p>
-
-<p>“Wal, what’ll you do now?” Lon queried
-curiously. “Say! That hundred’d come in
-pooty handy, eh?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I couldn’t take it!” Sam said quickly.
-“That doesn’t mean, though——”</p>
-
-<p>There he checked himself; wheeled; and
-strode toward the house. His brain was working
-actively; a plan was taking shape, a plan
-hard to execute, perhaps, yet not impossible.<span class="pagenum">[246]</span>
-And if it could be carried out, it might go far
-toward wiping out the balance against the
-Safety First Club in the matter of Tom
-Orkney.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes Fortune comes to meet those
-who seek her favors. No sooner had Sam set
-foot in the house than he realized that there
-was an unusual air of excitement in the normally
-tranquil establishment. Nor had he
-long to wait for enlightenment.</p>
-
-<p>The supper bell rang, and very willingly he
-took his place at table; for, as has been set
-forth, his cares had not blunted his appetite.
-Three minutes later, however, he had laid
-down knife and fork, and was listening
-eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>“We ought to make a fairly early start in
-the morning,” his father remarked. “Warren
-will arrive on the nine o’clock train this
-evening, and can get a good night’s rest. Perhaps
-we’d better have breakfast about seven.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Warren was the New Yorker Mr. Parker
-was to take into the woods! And they were
-to depart in the morning for the camps on
-Payne Stream!</p>
-
-<p>“Father!” cried Sam.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[247]</span></p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker glanced in surprise at his son.
-“Well, what is it, young man?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“The biggest favor I ever begged of you!
-Take me with you!”</p>
-
-<p>“On this trip?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir. I can’t tell you how much I
-want to go.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker shook his head doubtfully. “It’s
-a long haul—we’re going in to the new camps,
-and maybe beyond them. I’m afraid——”</p>
-
-<p>“But it’s such a tremendous favor, Father!”</p>
-
-<p>“Exactly! But——” Mr. Parker paused.
-He had noted Sam’s earnestness; had marked
-how the boy was bending forward, and how
-his hands gripped the edge of the table. “But,
-you see——” Now he had caught his wife’s
-eye, and again hesitated. For some strange
-reason she was endorsing her son’s plea. He
-read the unspoken message; he saw her little
-nod of affirmation. “Why—why, give me a
-moment to consider,” he concluded.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s vacation, you know,” said Mrs. Parker
-softly.</p>
-
-<p>“I know—but I hadn’t thought of——”</p>
-
-<p>“But you’ll think of it now, won’t you?”
-implored Sam.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[248]</span></p>
-
-<p>Once more husband and wife exchanged
-glances.</p>
-
-<p>“The fact that I hadn’t thought of taking
-you, Sam, doesn’t bar considering the proposition
-now,” said Mr. Parker. “Well, I dare
-say it can be arranged if——”</p>
-
-<p>“Bully!” cried Sam enthusiastically. “Oh,
-but that’s fine, sir! And I want my crowd to
-go—the club—you know, sir!”</p>
-
-<p>“What!”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, the club—all of ’em. That’s the best
-part of it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Possibly—for the club,” said Mr. Parker
-drily. “But I’m not planning a wholesale
-migration.”</p>
-
-<p>“Still,” suggested Mrs. Parker, “there’s the
-big sleigh.”</p>
-
-<p>“There is.”</p>
-
-<p>“And the boys wouldn’t mind a little
-crowding.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not they! Warren may have prejudices.”</p>
-
-<p>“You can share the front seat with him.
-And I believe the roads are well broken.”</p>
-
-<p>“Only so far as the first camp.”</p>
-
-<p>“But that’ll do for us,” cried Sam. “You
-can leave us there, and go on with Mr. Warren,<span class="pagenum">[249]</span>
-and pick us up when you come back.
-You won’t be more than a couple of days
-away from us, and we’ll keep out of mischief.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why not put Lon in charge of the boys?”
-added Mrs. Parker.</p>
-
-<p>Her husband laughed outright. “It’s no
-use—I’m outvoted two to one! But that is a
-happy thought about Lon. And jammed as
-we’ll be, an extra passenger will make little
-difference. Only understand, son!” He
-turned to Sam. “You’ve promised good behavior.
-Don’t forget that.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam was grave enough. “I won’t forget
-that I’m on probation, sir. But—but then
-it’s settled?”</p>
-
-<p>“You may consider it so.”</p>
-
-<p>“Whoop! Excuse me, please!” Up sprang
-Sam so hastily that his chair was almost overturned.
-He dashed into the hall and caught
-up the telephone.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker glanced inquiringly at his wife.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s more animation than I’ve seen
-manifested for weeks,” he observed. “Sam
-has seemed to be rather subdued lately.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve noticed it. And I confess I haven’t
-understood it.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[250]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Effect of his escapade with my gun, perhaps?”</p>
-
-<p>“Not wholly. I’m sure there’s something
-else on his mind.”</p>
-
-<p>From the hall floated Sam’s eager voice:</p>
-
-<p>“Course your folks will let you go, Step.
-Make ’em, make ’em!... Yes, yes; I
-tell you there’s a special reason. Biggest
-chance that ever happened!... No, no;
-I can’t tell you now, but we’ll get the gang to
-the club, and you’ll have the whole story....
-No, no—just bring along your snow-shoes....
-But you’ve got to come—every
-fellow’s got to!... What’s that?...
-Sure, there’s a clue!... No; I
-shan’t talk over the wire.... Get permission
-to come along; that’s all you need
-worry about.... Say, hang up now,
-won’t you? I want to catch Poke and the
-rest before any of ’em go out for the evening.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker smiled quizzically. “My dear
-lady,” he said, “I confess that I find difficulty
-in comprehending the mental processes of
-your son.”</p>
-
-<p>His wife gave a little sigh. “Ah! Sam is
-too much for me sometimes. And this is one<span class="pagenum">[251]</span>
-of the times. But”—and her face brightened—“but
-I’m confident he has some excellent
-reason for setting his heart on this expedition.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I hope so, at least,” said Mr. Parker,
-rather resignedly.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[252]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXII">CHAPTER XXII
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">TOM ORKNEY CHANGES HIS INTENTION</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>There are three ways in which one may
-travel from Plainville to the woods about
-Payne Stream. One is partly by rail, involving
-a jolting journey over the branch line to a
-flag-station, and then a trip over roads which
-quickly dwindle to trails. The other routes
-are by highways, neither being direct. Mr.
-Parker, choosing the more promising of the
-two, brought his party in sight of the No. 1
-camp in mid-afternoon.</p>
-
-<p>The pace had been very moderate, but rather
-because Mr. Parker spared his horses than because
-of hard going. In the more thickly settled
-districts the sleighing was excellent, while
-the last lap of the journey was over a “tote
-road,” worn smooth by the passage of sledges
-carrying supplies to the lumbermen. Midway
-there had been a stretch, over which travel
-evidently had been very light. Here, as Lon<span class="pagenum">[253]</span>
-explained to the boys, was a district of abandoned
-farms, some of whose houses, fast falling
-into ruin, he pointed out to them. Then
-he indicated groves of flourishing young trees,
-growing on land which within his memory
-had been under cultivation, and philosophized
-a little on the “hard grubbin’” on the hill
-farms.</p>
-
-<p>Wrapped in their fur coats, Mr. Parker and
-Mr. Warren shared the front seat, and afforded
-shelter for the other passengers. The rear
-seats had been removed from the sleigh, and
-Lon and the boys filled the bottom of the
-vehicle, with plenty of straw and robes to keep
-them warm. On the whole they did very
-well; though it is not to be denied that they
-were quite willing to alight and stretch their
-legs when the sleigh drew up at the door of a
-big log hut, low but long and with an ell at
-the rear. Smoke was curling from two chimneys,
-one in the middle of the main building
-and the other in the ell, but nobody was in
-evidence. When Mr. Parker raised a shout,
-however, the door opened, and out came a
-thick-set, ruddy, middle-aged man, in sweater,
-corduroys and heavy boots.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[254]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Hullo there!” he sang out cheerfully.
-“Glad to see ye, Mr. Parker! Wasn’t lookin’
-for ye quite so early. And this is Mr. Warren,
-ain’t it? Proud and happy, sir, to make
-your acquaintance. Wha’je think of this,
-now? Kinder remind ye of Fifth Avenue,
-eh?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’ve seen snow on the avenue—when
-it was very new snow—that looked like that
-you have here,” said Mr. Warren.</p>
-
-<p>The thick-set man chuckled, and shook
-hands with Mr. Parker. Then he repeated the
-ceremony with Mr. Warren, being duly presented
-as Mr. Kane, foreman, or “boss” of
-No. 1 camp. Then for the first time he seemed
-to observe Lon and the club.</p>
-
-<p>“Hullo some more—a whole lot more!” he
-exclaimed. “Wha’je got in behind, Mr.
-Parker? New crew of lumberjacks?”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker briefly explained, and there were
-more introductions.</p>
-
-<p>“Kinder wedged in, ain’t they?” inquired
-Mr. Kane. “Guess I’d better play block and
-tackle.”</p>
-
-<p>With that he put out an arm, caught Step
-by the collar, and fairly swung him to the<span class="pagenum">[255]</span>
-ground. Whereupon Step’s friends swarmed
-over the side of the sleigh, and fell to stamping
-their feet vigorously, in an effort to quicken
-sluggish circulation.</p>
-
-<p>“Go in, boys, go in,” Mr. Kane urged hospitably.
-“Go in and warm up. Goin’ to let
-these fellers stay with me, ain’t ye?” he
-added.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Mr. Parker. “Hope you can
-put ’em up, and put up with them, for a day
-or two, while Warren and I go farther on.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sartain sure! Plenty o’ room, and grub,
-and blankets. Only ain’t ye goin’ to stop at
-the Hotel de Kane?”</p>
-
-<p>“On the way out we will. Just now I’m
-anxious to get in touch with Wells——”</p>
-
-<p>“Wal, now, if he didn’t go through to No. 2,
-not half an hour ahead of ye!”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker cast a weatherwise look at the
-sky, and gathered up the reins.</p>
-
-<p>“Then I think Warren and I will push on,”
-said he. “There’s a feel of more snow in the
-air, Kane. So, if you’ll just keep a sharp eye
-on these young scamps and show them what a
-lumber camp is like——”</p>
-
-<p>“Trust me!” chuckled the cheery foreman.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[256]</span></p>
-
-<p>Sam had drawn a little apart from his friends
-and was glancing keenly about him. At that
-hour, of course, the choppers were at work,
-probably at some distance from the camp, but
-other employees might be in or near the cabin.
-Already he had observed a fat man peering
-from the door of the ell. That would be the
-cook, no doubt. The jingle of bells told him
-that his father was resuming the journey, and
-his ears warned him that Mr. Kane was shepherding
-his flock of guests indoors.</p>
-
-<p>Sam was as chilled and stiff from the long
-ride as were his friends, but he still lingered
-at his post of observation. It was no more
-than a chance, at the best, that Orkney, if he
-had come to the woods, was at this especial
-camp; but Sam was making the most of the
-chance. In full session of the club it had been
-decided that, if the runaway were discovered,
-Sam should first reason with him in private,
-falling back, if necessary, upon the support of
-the others.</p>
-
-<p>Except where a clearing had been made for
-the camp, and where ran the narrow tote road,
-towered tall pines, doomed to fall as the
-choppers worked their way from the borders<span class="pagenum">[257]</span>
-of the tract to its center. Here the snow had
-fallen deep and without drifts, such as the
-travelers had seen in the more open country.
-Sam shivered a little. The cheerful and
-vociferous boss had followed his charges into
-the cabin, and, of a sudden, the watcher was
-oppressed by the silence and the loneliness
-of the woods. Instinctively he took a step
-toward the main door of the camp; halted;
-listened intently. Then he heard again, and
-with certainty, the sound which he had half
-believed a trick of imagination. It was the
-crunch of dry snow under a hurrying foot.</p>
-
-<p>Sam strode forward. As he turned the
-corner of the building, he caught sight of a
-figure moving obliquely toward the runner
-tracks leading to No. 2 camp. In spite of the
-low-drawn cap and the rough Mackinaw he
-recognized Orkney.</p>
-
-<p>“Slipped out of a back door, and around
-the other side of the camp and started for
-another get-away,” he reflected. “Bound not
-to be seen, if he can help it. Thunder, but he
-is as stubborn as they make ’em!”</p>
-
-<p>Orkney was in haste, but Sam pursued still
-more rapidly. The tote road bent sharply to<span class="pagenum">[258]</span>
-avoid a great boulder. Orkney vanished
-around the bend, without giving evidence
-that he suspected he was followed; but when
-Sam passed the big rock, and thus shut himself
-from view from the camp, he beheld
-Orkney, faced about and standing defiantly in
-the middle of the road.</p>
-
-<p>Sam, too, pulled up. For a moment neither
-boy spoke. Sam advanced a pace. Orkney
-contented himself with holding his ground.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, what do you want?” he growled.</p>
-
-<p>“You,” was Sam’s terse response.</p>
-
-<p>“Cut out the guff! I’m in a hurry.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam took another step forward. “See here,
-Orkney! I’ve got things to tell you. You
-made a mistake when you bolted.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s my own lookout. I’m satisfied.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not.”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! It’s no affair of yours.”</p>
-
-<p>“I tell you it is,” Sam insisted. “Helped
-drive you out of town, didn’t I?”</p>
-
-<p>“What’s that? ‘Drive me out?’” snorted
-Orkney. “Not much! Nobody drove me—least
-of all you and your gang of swelled
-heads!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam kept his temper. “Might as well face<span class="pagenum">[259]</span>
-things as they are. You ran away because
-everybody was down on you, because everybody
-cut you, because——”</p>
-
-<p>“Not on your life!” Orkney broke in
-fiercely. “I don’t care a rap for the whole
-school or the whole town!”</p>
-
-<p>“All the same you couldn’t stand the gaff.
-So you turned tail and bolted. And here I
-find you a wood-chopper and——”</p>
-
-<p>“No siree! Can’t you get anything
-straight? I’m cookee. Know what that
-is? Cook’s helper. Or, rather, I was. I’ve
-quit the job. I’m moving on.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re running again—from us!”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m running from nobody. But I don’t
-choose to stay where a lot of prying sneaks
-are butting in.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam took another step. This proffering of
-the amende honorable was proving to be even
-more difficult than he had feared, but he kept
-himself in hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Orkney,” he said earnestly, “you’ve got
-to hear me. The other day I charged you
-with a lot of rascality. I was mistaken. I
-take back what I said. Then, like everybody
-else, I thought you as good as shoved Little<span class="pagenum">[260]</span>
-Perrine into the pond. That was another
-mistake; I’m sorry for it.”</p>
-
-<p>Orkney was more puzzled than pleased.
-“Eh? Sorry, are you? Well, if you want
-to apologize——”</p>
-
-<p>“Apologize” is a word which, sometimes,
-grates on the ear. Sam flushed.</p>
-
-<p>“Go slow there!” he said sharply; then,
-with a change of tone, went on: “If I’m
-apologizing, it’s for the things I did because I
-was fooled, deceived. And the club are with
-me in this. But I’m not apologizing, and
-they’re not apologizing for thinking you a
-grouchy sorehead. You’ve made your own
-troubles, mostly. We’ll let that pass, though.
-I’m not here to call you names; I’m here to
-tell you that, if you’d stuck it out and not run
-away, things would have cleared up for you.
-As it is, we’re ready to do what we can for
-you if you’ll come back. We’ll spread the
-truth. You can make a fresh start.”</p>
-
-<p>“With the help of your bunch! I see myself
-doing it!”</p>
-
-<p>“Look at the case fairly. We came here
-in the hope of finding you. We came to
-make the offer.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[261]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Got a tip where I was, eh? Well, I
-know who gave it. Fellow from Plainville,
-who’d been hanging around the camp, disappeared
-for a couple of days, and then came
-back.”</p>
-
-<p>“Groche—Peter Groche? Is he here
-now?”</p>
-
-<p>“Was this morning. It was none of his
-business, and it’s none of yours, Parker—mixing
-up in my affairs this way.”</p>
-
-<p>“But it is our business!”</p>
-
-<p>Orkney’s jaw was thrust forward obstinately.
-“See here, Mr. Sam Parker, you’re going too
-far. You’re banking on a notion that on
-account of what you did for me at the pond
-I’ve got to come when you whistle. Get that
-out of your head! I told you I couldn’t very
-well fight you—you know why—but there’s a
-limit. You don’t own me!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam had not thoroughly mastered the rôle
-of bearer of the olive branch. “Mighty
-glad I don’t own you! If I did, I’d get rid
-of you very quick!” he rapped out. “And if
-you want to fight—why, the slate’s clean; you
-don’t owe me anything.”</p>
-
-<p>Orkney dropped a bundle he had been carrying<span class="pagenum">[262]</span>
-under one arm. Sam, observing this
-readiness to clear for action, struggled between
-zest for the fray and duty, as he saw it.</p>
-
-<p>“Listen, you—you chump! Show common
-sense, can’t you? Come home with us. We
-want you to have a square deal. We’ll back
-you up—so far as we can. Little Perrine
-swears by you—we’ll spread his story. And
-there’s another thing—maybe you don’t guess
-how awfully broken up your aunt is. She’s
-almost crazy. She’s done everything she
-could to trace you. She’s offered a reward——”</p>
-
-<p>“What’s that? A reward?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes—hundred dollars for news of you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh-ho!” Orkney’s cynical grin was a
-taunt in itself. “Oh-ho! So that’s your lay,
-eh? You’re after me because you and your
-gang are after the hundred? Well, you don’t
-get either—see?”</p>
-
-<p>Orkney had passed the limits of endurance.
-Rage seized Sam. To be charged with mercenary
-motives was more than he could bear.
-He sprang at Tom, and at the same instant
-that vigilant youth leaped to meet the attack.
-There was a furious exchange of blows, each<span class="pagenum">[263]</span>
-combatant seeking to inflict punishment and
-making no effort to avoid it. Then the pair
-grappled, and swayed back and forth, struggling
-desperately for the mastery.</p>
-
-<p>It was a fight, and a real fight; but one carried
-on under unusual conditions. Both boys
-were in heavy winter clothes; there had been
-no time to discard overcoats or jackets, or
-even the thick gloves they wore. So they
-were, in some degree, like armored knights of
-old, come to grips in full panoply, by which
-they were at once hampered and protected;
-while the yielding snow offered most uncertain
-footing. Now they were in the tracks of
-the tote road; now they had reeled into snow
-that rose above their plunging knees; now
-they were floundering back to the path. Sam,
-slipping, went to his knees. Orkney, over-eager
-to press his advantage, lost it; for
-though he landed a blow on his opponent’s
-forehead, it was at cost of the precious “under
-hold.” Sam’s arms were locked about
-Tom’s waist; his chin was pressing hard
-against the other’s shoulder. Orkney swayed
-backward under the pressure. He made a
-frantic effort to break free; failed; lost footing.<span class="pagenum">[264]</span>
-Down he went into the deep snow, Sam
-falling upon him and still holding him fast.</p>
-
-<p>But the battle was far from ended. Orkney
-writhed and twisted. He struck at Sam, raining
-ineffective blows upon his head and shoulders.
-He kicked furiously, sending the snow
-flying in showers. Indeed, he fought determinedly
-but vainly, until at last Sam, keeping
-his wits, had slowly shifted position, and
-was astride his prostrate foe’s body. Then,
-with one of Sam’s hands at his throat, and
-the other hand clenched and poised above his
-unprotected face, Orkney sullenly accepted
-defeat and ceased to struggle.</p>
-
-<p>“You—you had enough?” Sam panted.</p>
-
-<p>“Y-Yes!” gasped Orkney with all imaginable
-reluctance.</p>
-
-<p>“Give up?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.” It was barely a whisper, but Sam
-caught the word.</p>
-
-<p>“All—all right!” he said, breathlessly but
-cheerfully, and got upon his feet.</p>
-
-<p>Orkney sat up, but did not attempt to rise.
-His expression betrayed intense chagrin.</p>
-
-<p>“I—I won’t admit you—you licked me,
-but—but you got me down,” he said brokenly.<span class="pagenum">[265]</span>
-“And—and I gave up. But that—that doesn’t settle anything.”</p>
-
-<p>To his surprise Sam laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Sure settles one thing, Orkney! You said
-you—you wanted to fight me, but couldn’t—’member?
-Well, somehow, we seem to have
-dodged the difficulty.”</p>
-
-<p>Tom seemed to find a certain grim consolation
-in this aspect of the case.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s so. But—but what do you want
-me to do now?”</p>
-
-<p>“Stand up!” said Sam promptly. “We’ll
-brush the snow off each other. Then we’ll go
-back to the camp. You’d better slip in the way
-you slipped out. I’ll go in at the front door,
-and tell the fellows you’re working here, and
-I’ve had a talk with you. Then you’ll happen
-along naturally. The crowd will be decent.”</p>
-
-<p>Orkney made a grimace. “S’pose I’ll have
-to see ’em—might as well have it over. But
-see here, Parker! Mind you, I haven’t promised
-to go back to Plainville.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you’ll think it over?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said Orkney reluctantly, “I’ll agree
-to that. Yes; I’ll stay a day or two, anyway,
-and think it over.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[266]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIII">CHAPTER XXIII
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">LON GATES ENTERTAINS</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>What easily might have been an embarrassing
-situation was dealt with capably by the
-Safety First Club. Hardly had the jovial Mr.
-Kane welcomed the belated Sam and demanded
-how in the world he had happened to
-stray from the rest of the party and what he
-had been doing to amuse himself out in the
-cold; and hardly had Sam explained as nonchalantly
-as might be that he had chanced to
-meet a schoolmate, who was serving as cookee to
-the camp, and had paused for a chat with him,
-when the door in the partition shutting off the
-cook’s domain opened, and Orkney appeared.</p>
-
-<p>There was brief, but tense, silence as Tom
-advanced toward the group. Then Step, who
-chanced to be nearest, spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“H’lo, Orkney!” said he brusquely but not
-harshly.</p>
-
-<p>“Howdy, Step!” responded Tom, quite in
-the same manner.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[267]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, up here for a while, eh?”</p>
-
-<p>This was Poke’s contribution. The others
-nodded, a bit stiffly, maybe; and the Shark
-regarded the newcomer solemnly through his
-glasses. Nowhere was there sign of hostility,
-even if warmer welcome were lacking. There
-was not a boy there but guessed shrewdly at
-what had taken place; but not for love or
-money would one of them have betrayed his
-knowledge by speech or look. At times the
-methods of youngsters in their teens curiously
-resemble those of Indians—at least, to the extent
-of jealous hiding of emotion. Both Tom
-and Sam bore a mark or two of their encounter,
-but for the present these were things to be
-carefully ignored.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Kane, as he himself would have said,
-“sensed” something queer; but though he
-glanced quickly and inquiringly from face to
-face, he could make nothing of the manner of
-his guests. And then Orkney going about his
-duties and the boys resuming their talk, he
-gave up the problem, and turned to Lon, from
-whom he demanded the latest news of the outside
-world.</p>
-
-<p>It was Sam’s first opportunity to inspect a<span class="pagenum">[268]</span>
-lumber camp, and he studied with keen interest
-the long, low room, with its walls of
-logs, its big stove, its line of bunks against
-each wall, and its “deacon’s seat,” or bench
-built beside the bunks. The windows were few
-and small. Roughly as the house was built,
-it was very solidly put together, while drafts
-were lessened by moss packed between the logs.
-Here and there hung spare clothing and extra
-boots. There was no attempt anywhere at
-adornment or decoration, but order of a sort
-seemed to be maintained, the order which
-places everything where it can be most handily
-come at.</p>
-
-<p>Dusk was falling, and the choppers began
-to straggle into the camp. With them came
-the “yard men,” whose business it is to handle
-and pile the logs, and the teamsters.
-Strapping big fellows were most of Kane’s
-crew, roughly clad for rough work, hard as
-nails, and hungry as bears. Among the last
-to arrive was Peter Groche, who slouched into
-the big room, grunted when his eyes fell
-upon Lon and the boys, halted for an instant,
-regarding them evilly, and finally made his
-way to what appeared to be his especial corner.<span class="pagenum">[269]</span>
-There he remained until the whole company
-trooped through the doorway in the partition
-to the combined kitchen and dining-room.</p>
-
-<p>This filled the ell of the camp. There was
-a range in one corner, and a table of boards
-ran the length of the room, benches serving as
-seats. Behind these were two bunks for the
-cook and the cookee. The supper, everything
-being eaten from tin plates, made up in quantity
-what it lacked in variety. Beans, baked
-with pork, formed the principal dish, most excellent
-beans and in seemingly inexhaustible
-supply. Then there were enormous camp
-doughnuts, which would have appalled a dyspeptic,
-but which proved to be singularly
-toothsome and comforting after a day in the
-open. Tea, sweetened with molasses, was
-drunk from tin cups. The boys may not have
-been able to match the huge appetites of the
-woodsmen, but they ate and ate until, as Poke
-whispered to Step, he’d have to stop or hitch
-two belts together; for the food, simple as it
-was, was well cooked and tempting enough to
-hungry folk, young or old.</p>
-
-<p>Sam divided attention between Orkney and<span class="pagenum">[270]</span>
-Peter Groche. The cookee, of course, was busy
-throughout the meal, devoting himself to his
-tasks and going about them in businesslike
-fashion. Sam fancied Tom was not in high
-favor with the men, though it certainly could
-not be alleged that he neglected them. Still,
-Tom’s was a dogged and silent manner of performance
-not calculated to secure popularity
-anywhere.</p>
-
-<p>At table Groche’s appearance was at its
-worst. He ate greedily and enormously, fairly
-shoveling the food into his mouth. Sam observed
-that the man kept his eyes on his plate,
-spoke to none of his neighbors, and showed no
-interest in the talk which began to be heard
-when the supper drew to a close. He was the
-first to rise, and shuffled out as if glad to go;
-but when the boys trooped into the main
-room, there was Groche, perched in his corner
-and sucking at a black pipe. And there he
-remained until dislodged by no less heroic a
-champion than the Shark.</p>
-
-<p>Now the Shark, as has been related, had the
-quaint habit, into which near-sighted persons,
-given to reflection, sometimes fall, of fixing
-his gaze upon some object and holding it there<span class="pagenum">[271]</span>
-without any especial concern in the object, or
-consciousness of its existence. As it happened,
-the Shark had chanced to wonder what might
-be the weight of a layer of snow two feet deep,
-spread evenly over one square mile; and being
-more charmed with the computation than with
-the conversation of his friends and hosts, he
-sat down opposite Peter, brought him into
-range of his big spectacles—and promptly forgot
-his very existence.</p>
-
-<p>Groche, on his part, woke up gradually, as
-it were, to the baleful and unwinking intensity
-of the scrutiny to which he seemed to be subjected.
-He glared at the Shark, growled deep
-in his throat, tried to stare down the unconscious
-youth over the way. Failing utterly in
-this, he dropped his eyes, pulled desperately
-at the black pipe, shifted position, stole a side-long
-glance at his vis-à-vis. The Shark was
-still contemplating him with unruffled composure
-and deadly concentration.</p>
-
-<p>Groche bent forward, scowling his fiercest.
-The Shark ignored the demonstration. Groche
-made an abrupt and threatening motion. The
-Shark didn’t move an eyelash. A strange fear
-clutched the heart of the ne’er-do-well. He<span class="pagenum">[272]</span>
-had heard frightful tales of the evil eye. What
-the evil eye might be he had no notion, but
-also he had no intention to risk learning. Up
-he jumped, retreating the length of the room;
-while the Shark, wholly absorbed, stared at
-the wall instead of Mr. Groche, without being
-aware of the change in view.</p>
-
-<p>Sam, the observant, had not missed Groche’s
-strategic movement, though he did not grasp
-its cause. Nor did he fail to perceive that
-Peter from his new post was sourly surveying
-the group by the stove, with especial regard
-for Lon and himself. But then came Orkney
-to distract Sam’s attention.</p>
-
-<p>Tom, his work finished, took the place the
-Trojan made for him on the bench. His air
-was not markedly sullen, but it was reserved;
-and it could not be denied that the talk,
-which had been going merrily enough, began
-to drag. Sam, hurrying to the rescue, started
-a topic, which drooped and languished. Tom
-was attentive but unresponsive; so were the
-club members. Both sides were trying to be
-fair, and the result was chilling.</p>
-
-<p>Sam caught Lon’s eye, and telegraphed a
-message for help. Lon understood. He<span class="pagenum">[273]</span>
-nodded in reply. Clasping his hands about a
-knee, he fell to rocking his body back and
-forth. Of a sudden he broke into a loud
-laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Haw, haw, haw! If he wa’n’t jest the
-plumb ridiculousest old critter!”</p>
-
-<p>“Who was?” asked Herman Boyd.</p>
-
-<p>“Old man Wallowby,” chuckled Lon.
-“Dunno jest what made me think of him.
-Long before the time of you boys he was.”</p>
-
-<p>“I remember him,” said Mr. Kane. “Queer
-old codger as ever was. Folks used to say
-there was only three things he never
-seemed to get around to—washin’, workin’,
-or worryin’.”</p>
-
-<p>“Jesso!” Lon agreed; then made correction:
-“Say, though! There was one time he
-was worried, fast enough. Ever hear tell o’
-the night he fit the bear?”</p>
-
-<p>“Fit a b’ar?” echoed the foreman. “No;
-new one on me.”</p>
-
-<p>Several of the lumberjacks, who had been
-listening to the talk, drew closer.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s two-three b’ar hangin’ ’round
-No. 3 camp,” one of them volunteered.</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind them, Jake,” interposed Mr.<span class="pagenum">[274]</span>
-Kane. “Le’s hear about old Wallowby’s
-run-in.”</p>
-
-<p>Lon ran a glance about the expectant group.</p>
-
-<p>“Wal,” he drawled, “I dunno’s I can tell
-the story the way Wallowby told it to me,
-but I’ll try. You know, the old humbug
-uster give out that he was a nat’ral bonesetter,
-and uster wander about, foragin’ off the
-country and pretendin’ to look for broken
-bones. That’s how he got wind of old Calleck,
-who must ’a’ been a good deal of the same
-breed. Only Calleck was a yarb doctor, and
-a bigger freak’n Wallowby himself. He was
-all the while prowlin’ through the woods,
-diggin’ up roots for his medicines; and he
-called himself a hermit; and he built himself
-a mighty queer house off by his lonesome, a
-stone house, and——”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve seed it,” one of the men broke in.
-“What’s left of it’s standin’ over on the South
-Fork, not ten mile from here. But ’twa’n’t
-all stone. Calleck got tired o’ luggin’ rock,
-and topped it off anyhow he could.”</p>
-
-<p>“Like enough!” said Lon. “I’ve never
-been to the house, but that’s about the fashion
-old Calleck’d ’a’ done any job. But I’ll get<span class="pagenum">[275]</span>
-on to where Wallowby and the bear come in.
-Wallowby’d been cruisin’ down in the villages,
-and I guess he’d sorter wore out his welcome
-in spots. Way he put it to me was he got to
-longin’ for the congenial society of a brother
-scientist, and so he tramped off to find Calleck.
-He’d never seen him and he didn’t know jest
-where the stone house was, but everybody was
-amazin’ glad to give him directions and push
-him along; and so he moseyed up into the
-woods.</p>
-
-<p>“It was along in December, but the ground
-was still bare; though it had been mighty
-cold, and it kept gettin’ colder all the while
-Wallowby climbed the hills. Got dark,
-too, and the wind was risin’. ’Cordin’ to
-Wallowby ’twas perishin’ cold, and black as
-a cellar, before he woke to the fact that he
-was as good as lost.</p>
-
-<p>“He stopped and tried to figger out his
-bearin’s, but it was no use. It was a second
-growth, hard wood country, with a lot o’
-scrub stuff mixed in; and he’d been fallin’
-over roots, and duckin’ branches till his
-notions o’ north and south was twisted as a
-corkscrew. Looked like he was in for a night<span class="pagenum">[276]</span>
-in the brush, but to keep from freezin’ he
-wrapped an old blanket shawl—he always
-carried one—around his head, and kept goin’.
-’Twa’n’t no pleasure trip, believe me! He
-shivered when he told about it, but he owned
-up he shivered wuss that night when he
-thought he heard something pantin’ off to
-the right. What with the old shawl over his
-ears he wa’n’t quite sure; but, anyhow, he
-stepped out livelier’n ever, and then plunk!
-he bust through a bush and into a clearin’.
-And in the clearin’ was a big black spot that
-meant a house o’ some sort.</p>
-
-<p>“Wallowby made for that house same’s a
-woodchuck makes for his hole when there’s
-a dog after him. He went round the corner
-of it so fast that he couldn’t stop, when, all of
-a sudden, he saw waddlin’ ’round the other
-corner something big and black, and loomin’
-like a mountain. And he heard that pantin’
-so loud it sounded like a steam engine. And
-then, not bein’ able to clap on the brakes
-quick enough, he butted fair into the thing.
-His hands hit the thing’s body, and he could
-feel thick fur. He tried to yell, but all that’d
-come out of his throat was a hoarse growl.<span class="pagenum">[277]</span>
-And then what was like a big claw raked his
-arm, and laid open three-four deep gashes
-across the back of his hand.</p>
-
-<p>“’Twas a mutual surprise party all right.
-Wallowby turned, and headed for the bush,
-as if he was more like a scared jack-rabbit
-than a woodchuck. But he didn’t go far. He
-fell over a root, and before he got up it broke
-on him that the bear was makin’ for cover on
-the other side o’ the house.</p>
-
-<p>“Wallowby told me he didn’t lose sight of
-the argyment that, if he didn’t get into that
-house, he’d freeze. With the blood tricklin’
-from his hand he wa’n’t anxious to risk old
-Bruin changin’ his mind and comin’ back, so
-he sneaked round to the back o’ the place.
-He had no weapon but a jack-knife with a
-broken blade, but he got it out.</p>
-
-<p>“‘And would you believe it?’ he says to me.
-‘It was like Tophet for darkness, but, jest as
-I got to the house, that miserable critter came
-pantin’ at me! He let drive with that murderin’
-claw of hisn, and I dug into him with
-the knife. And then, somehow, each of us
-was reminded of his own business, and done
-accordin’. I got back into the brush, and sot<span class="pagenum">[278]</span>
-there thinkin’. I was all of a sweat, and
-freezin’ at the same time; for the chill was
-gettin’ into the very marrow of my bones.
-And, pooty soon, studyin’ that lump of a
-house like it was a chicken pie Thanksgivin’
-mornin’, I managed to make out the chimney
-against the sky. It was a whoppin’ big chimney,
-big enough for a man to drop through.
-And the roof sloped ’most to the ground.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Wal,’ says Wallowby, tellin’ the story, ‘I
-didn’t need two hints. I got holt of the edge
-of that roof, and I wriggled up and clumb to
-the chimney. And then I heard that pantin’
-’tother side o’ the stack, and next minute
-me ’n’ that fool bear was buttin’ our heads together.
-I rolled down the slope and over the
-edge, and ’most druv the breath out o’ my
-body. But, all the same, I heard an awful
-thud as the bear fell off ’tother side.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Wal, I sat there a minute or two gettin’
-my wind back and my mad up. I couldn’t
-stay where I was—I’d ‘a’ froze stiff. And if
-I’d got to bet by a bear, I’d be something
-better’n a cold lunch, anyhow. And, besides,
-all my life I’d been helpin’ sufferin’ humanity
-dirt cheap; but I drew the line at sellin’ my<span class="pagenum">[279]</span>
-life anything but dear to a wuthless old he-bear.
-So up I got, grippin’ the knife, and
-started full tilt for the front door. If that
-bear interfered, he’d take his chances o’ gettin’
-hurt. But would you believe it? Just
-as I dove for the door he riz up in the darkness
-ahead o’ me and done the same thing,
-simultaneous. We whanged away at each
-other, and then, sir, sure as I’m standin’ here!
-we jammed through that door together; and
-fell over a stool; and he went one way, and I
-went another. And the knife flew out o’ my
-hand, and hit a log smoulderin’ on the hearth,
-and a flame shot up. And there on his hands
-and knees, glarin’ at me and wheezin’ like a
-broken bellows, was the ornariest old codger
-in a buffalo coat you ever set eyes on!</p>
-
-<p>“‘“Wal,” says I; “wal, but you got a
-mighty peculiar way o’ treatin’ company!
-Ain’t you got no better manners?”</p>
-
-<p>“‘“Why—why”—Calleck gasps—“I—I
-took ye for—for a bear.”</p>
-
-<p>“‘“Same here,” says I; “only vicy versy.
-And what you want to go pantin’ like one
-for?”</p>
-
-<p>“‘“It’s the—the asthmy,” says he. “And<span class="pagenum">[280]</span>
-what for do you go—go traipsin’ ’round with—with
-that mess o’ shawl disguisin’ the human
-figger?”</p>
-
-<p>“‘I stuck out my bleedin’ hand. “Anyhow,
-I ain’t grown claws,” says I.</p>
-
-<p>“‘“Huh! neither have I,” says he, and
-shows what he’s carryin’. And it’s a little
-rake he uses to dig for his roots.’</p>
-
-<p>“And that,” Lon concluded, “is old Wallowby’s
-own yarn o’ the biggest bear fight
-that ever was pulled off in these parts, I
-guess.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a roar of applause and laughter,
-led by the cheery boss of the camp; even
-Tom Orkney was grinning. Sam sent a grateful
-glance at the breaker of the social ice.
-And then, as Mr. Kane prepared to match one
-bear story with another, he saw Peter Groche
-get upon his feet and lounge clumsily to the
-door.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[281]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIV">CHAPTER XXIV
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">PETER GROCHE SCORES AGAIN</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Sam had found his bunk-bed of spruce
-boughs amazingly comfortable and, snuggling
-under the blankets, had promptly dropped
-asleep. He was healthily tired from his day’s
-travels; it was odd, therefore, that distressing
-dreams came to disturb his rest. He began to
-toss and turn, and writhe and groan. A
-giant’s hand, clutching at his throat, seemed
-to be about to strangle him. There was a
-crushing weight upon his chest; a trip-hammer
-was beating furiously in his head. Then
-some vague monster had seized him, and was
-bearing him away with appalling speed.</p>
-
-<p>The boy cried out in terror, and struggled
-desperately. Of a sudden he was free of the
-monster’s grasp; he was falling from a dizzy
-height, and about to be dashed to pieces. And
-then, just as destruction impended, the dream<span class="pagenum">[282]</span>
-passed, and he awoke to a reality sufficiently
-perilous.</p>
-
-<p>He was lying, half in, half out of the bunk.
-The camp was full of smoke, dense, acrid, stifling.
-His eyes smarted and his throat was
-parched and burning. At his side lay Poke,
-breathing stertorously. Sam made him out
-by a flickering light, which came from the
-direction of the cook’s quarters. Beyond him
-was Step, raised on an elbow and coughing
-chokingly.</p>
-
-<p>“Fire! Fire!” A startled voice raised the
-alarm, and others repeated the cry. Men began
-to stagger by him, stumbling as they went
-and groping wildly. Then three or four, led
-by Mr. Kane, charged the other way. The
-boss was shouting orders. There was the
-crash of an axe vigorously plied. The glass
-fell from a shattered window, and a draft of
-cool air fanned his face.</p>
-
-<p>Sam, fully awake at last, sprang from the
-bunk. Step, too, had gained the floor. Between
-them they dragged Poke from his
-blankets, and put him on his feet.</p>
-
-<p>“Take him out, Step!” Sam directed, and
-set himself to the task of rousing the Trojan,<span class="pagenum">[283]</span>
-who appeared to be in the half unconscious
-condition in which Poke was. The Shark,
-having very calmly adjusted his spectacles on
-his nose, was tugging at Herman Boyd’s
-shoulder. Sam lent a hand, and with his aid
-Herman was started for the door.</p>
-
-<p>Tom Orkney overtook them. He was
-breathing with difficulty, but managed to gasp
-out that the ell was all ablaze. Then came
-the foreman and a lumberjack, carrying a
-helpless form.</p>
-
-<p>“Cook—right where smudge was thickest—overcome,”
-Tom explained hoarsely.</p>
-
-<p>Through the doorway they pressed into the
-cold, still air of the starless night. Mr. Kane
-touched Sam’s arm.</p>
-
-<p>“All your crowd out? Good! Keep ’em
-out till we get the fire under. ’Twon’t be
-long, what with unseasoned logs and the snow
-on the roof.”</p>
-
-<p>Then he was dashing back into the camp,
-and shouting orders to his men. Tom Orkney
-bent over the cook, who was lying in the
-snow.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp55" id="i290" style="max-width: 40.625em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i290.jpg" alt="">
- <div class="caption"><p class="center"><a href="#BRef_290">“HE’S COMING ’ROUND ALL RIGHT”</a></p></div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“<a id="BRef_290" href="#i290">He’s coming ’round all right</a>,” he reported.
-“We’ll bring out some blankets——”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[284]</span></p>
-
-<p>Sam and Step rushed into the camp, and
-emerged with their arms filled with heavy
-coverings. Tom made use of two, while the
-others were distributed among the boys.
-Luckily they had turned in “all standing”
-and were fully clothed except for their shoes,
-which Step recovered by a second trip into the
-building.</p>
-
-<p>“Lon’s safe—saw him in there,” said he.
-“When he heard we were all right he stayed
-to help fight the fire. Gee, but the kitchen’s
-a furnace!”</p>
-
-<p>“I know—I saw it, and I don’t understand
-it,” Orkney declared. “There was some
-grease about, of course—can’t help that with
-all the frying. Still, the way the blaze
-ran——”</p>
-
-<p>There he checked himself. “You mean
-you suspect——?” queried Step.</p>
-
-<p>“I mean it spread mighty fast,” said Orkney
-drily.</p>
-
-<p>“Think it caught from the stove, don’t
-you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! Cook’s a very careful man.”</p>
-
-<p>A bucket brigade was forming to bring
-water from a hole chopped in the ice of the<span class="pagenum">[285]</span>
-stream, and the boys volunteered their services.
-Somebody had found a ladder, and now
-the fire was being attacked from the roof as
-well as below. Mr. Kane had plenty of men,
-and employed them skilfully, though, of
-course, his equipment was limited. The roof
-of the ell fell in, and for a few minutes flames
-shot through the opening thus left, but their
-inroads upon the main camp were quickly
-checked, the heavy logs of the walls, the snow,
-and the lack of wind all contributing to the
-result. In half an hour the fire was under
-control, and in another Mr. Kane officially
-declared it out.</p>
-
-<p>Two or three men were told off to build a
-new partition, temporarily filling the gap
-caused by the fire, and the rest of the crew and
-the boys gathered about the big stove in the
-main camp. Garments drenched in the bucket
-brigade service were hung up to dry; the
-cook, now quite recovered, brewed a great can
-of steaming tea. Then there was a sort of informal
-roll call. None of the boys appeared
-to be the worse for his adventures, and the
-lumberjacks seemed to find the break in the
-monotony of life rather enjoyable. But the<span class="pagenum">[286]</span>
-foreman, “counting noses,” as he put it, made
-a startling discovery.</p>
-
-<p>Peter Groche was missing!</p>
-
-<p>Nobody could recall seeing the man after
-the alarm was given. Anxious search of the
-ruins of the ell, conducted by the aid of lanterns,
-revealed no charred evidences that he
-had perished. It led, however, to the discovery
-of a half-burned cloth, smoked and
-discolored, and giving forth the unmistakable
-smell of kerosene.</p>
-
-<p>The cook rushed out of the camp, returning
-presently with a five-gallon can.</p>
-
-<p>“See this!” he cried excitedly. “And
-this!” He held the can upside down, but no
-stream poured from its open neck. “Nigh
-full ’twas yesterday, and now it’s dry as a
-bone! That’s why the fire went through my
-place in jumps. He must ’a’ sneaked in and
-soused everything with the stuff after I went
-to sleep.”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! He might ’a’ done it with a waterin’
-cart for all you’d knowed it, once you got
-to snorin’!” jeered one of the choppers.</p>
-
-<p>The cook hotly insisted that he had full
-right to sleep soundly after feeding a “gang<span class="pagenum">[287]</span>
-of two-legged wolves,” but the foreman stopped
-the controversy.</p>
-
-<p>“Steady there, all around!” he commanded.
-“This is a crazy job, but it’s a bad job and a
-state’s prison job. But sure’s my name’s
-Kane, I’ll land the scoundrel that done it!”
-He glanced at his watch. “It’ll be gettin’
-light in half an hour. Dayton and ‘Stub’
-Cyr, I want ye!”</p>
-
-<p>Two of the men—stout fellows both—stepped
-forward.</p>
-
-<p>“You take after Groche. You know the
-woods. He’ll have left a trail——”</p>
-
-<p>From the background somebody spoke.
-“My snow-shoes are gone. He’s stole ’em!”</p>
-
-<p>“Like enough! And that’ll mean Groche
-won’t stick to the tote road. He’ll strike out
-’cross country—Canady way, mebbe.”</p>
-
-<p>Lon pushed to the front. “See here!” said
-he. “Let me in on this, will you? Guess
-I’ll toddle along with your two.”</p>
-
-<p>“Eh?” said Mr. Kane in surprise.</p>
-
-<p>Lon’s expression was determined. “Sure’s
-I’m risin’ two-year old, this is my party, as
-you might be sayin’. I got a sorter runnin’
-account with that critter. And I can tell you<span class="pagenum">[288]</span>
-this: he wa’n’t aimin’ to singe your hair, Mr.
-Kane, so much as he was layin’ for me and
-some other folks. I oughter tackled him last
-night, but I didn’t; and now I’ve got all the
-more reason for tacklin’ him good and plenty.
-And I’m makin’ no brags, but if I lay paws
-on him, I’ll bring him in, and don’t you forget
-it! So, if you’ll jest fit me out with snow-shoes
-and one or two other trinkets, I’ll be a
-heap obleeged to you.”</p>
-
-<p>The foreman inclined his head. “All right—jest
-as ye say, Gates. ’Nother pair o’ long
-legs like yourn won’t do no harm to the hunt.
-We’ll outfit ye.”</p>
-
-<p>Lon crossed to Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“You see how ’tis,” he said, lowering his
-voice. “I jest plain got a call for this job.
-Your father’d say ’twas all right if he was
-here. But if I take my eye off you for a
-while, Sam, you’ve got to give me your
-word you’ll keep out o’ mischief and keep
-the rest out of it. I guess you can do it—you’ve
-been toein’ the mark like a major
-lately.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s eyes twinkled. “Like Major Bates,
-for instance?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[289]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Yep—seein’ as how he’s the only real,
-blown-in-the-bottle major I know. And that
-reminds me: this trip I’ll be a genooine Shylock
-Holmes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sherlock Holmes,” Sam corrected.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” Lon insisted; “Shylock’s better.
-Chap, wa’n’t he, that stood out for his pound
-o’ flesh? Well, that’s me—only I’m goin’ to
-bring in nigher two hundred. And I’m goin’
-to bring it in on the hoof—Peter Groche’s
-hoof, at that!”</p>
-
-<p>So matters were arranged. As soon as the
-light strengthened sufficiently, Lon and Stub
-Cyr and Dayton set out. Meanwhile, the
-cook had contrived breakfast. The bill of fare
-was that of supper, but Sam observed that the
-tin plates were not heaped so lavishly. And,
-observing, he was stricken by doubts.</p>
-
-<p>At the first opportunity he drew Mr. Kane
-aside.</p>
-
-<p>“I wish you’d tell me something,” he said.
-“The fire has left you short of supplies, hasn’t
-it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Wal, kinder,” the boss admitted. “Most
-of the grub, ye see, was stored in the ell. But
-ye needn’t worry; we won’t starve. I’ve<span class="pagenum">[290]</span>
-started a team for Coreytown for supplies. It
-ought to be back by night.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam meditated for a moment. “Look
-here, Mr. Kane! We’re half a dozen extra
-mouths to feed, and we can’t help being more
-or less in your way. And there isn’t any reason
-why we should stay. All of us brought
-our snow-shoes, and it’ll be just as much sport—yes,
-more—to be marching out on them as
-to be tramping about the camp. Father’ll understand.
-With the early start we’ll make,
-we can reach Coreytown long before dark. It
-isn’t over a dozen miles——”</p>
-
-<p>“Call it fifteen.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, fifteen, then. It’ll be bully fun for
-us.”</p>
-
-<p>It was the foreman’s turn to deliberate.
-“Wal, I dunno. Hate like time to be seemin’
-to throw ye out! Only we can’t make ye
-extry comfortable, mussed up the way we be.
-And goin’ out would be safe enough. Track’s
-plain, and the road’s broke. I dunno, I
-dunno.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think we’d better not stay, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wal, suit yerself, of course. There’s
-kinder a feel o’ more weather in the air, but<span class="pagenum">[291]</span>
-likely’s not it’ll hold off a spell. And the
-road’s in good shape. Then, too, there’s the
-short cut. If ye knew the lay of the land
-it’d save you a lot o’ distance. The road’s the
-long way ’round, ye know—makes jest about
-a right-angle.”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark and Step, who had come up,
-overheard this.</p>
-
-<p>“You mean, then,” queried the former,
-“that we could lessen effort by taking the
-hypothenuse?”</p>
-
-<p>The foreman smiled. “Or words to that
-effect, sonny.”</p>
-
-<p>“I comprehend the proposition perfectly,”
-the Shark solemnly assured him. “It may be
-regarded as elementary.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m for the march,” Step declared. “Say,
-it’ll beat old Xenophon’s Anabasis to a frazzle!”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m for anything that’ll do that!” cried
-Poke, who had joined the group. “<i lang="el">Enteuthen
-exelaunei</i> on snow-shoes, by Jiminy!”</p>
-
-<p>“Umph! Never did get the hang o’ French
-myself,” quoth the boss. “But you fellers’d
-better talk over things in plain English.
-Then let me know what ye decide on.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[292]</span></p>
-
-<p>Herman Boyd, called to the conference,
-added his vote to those of his friends. Tramping
-out on snow-shoes would be the greatest
-kind of a lark. The Trojan was of the same
-opinion.</p>
-
-<p>Tom Orkney and Mr. Kane were in consultation
-in a corner. When the foreman
-moved off, Sam joined Orkney.</p>
-
-<p>“The boys are unanimously for tramping
-down to the settlements,” said he.</p>
-
-<p>“I know. The boss told me how you felt,”
-Tom answered.</p>
-
-<p>“Seems wisest. Grub’s short here, and the
-trip will be easy. Lon can come out when
-he’s ready. Most likely my father will pick
-him up.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a pause, not free from embarrassment.</p>
-
-<p>“I—I hope you’ve been thinking things
-over,” Sam ventured. “You said you would,
-you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have thought them over,” said Orkney
-stolidly.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ll come with us?”</p>
-
-<p>Orkney hesitated. “I—I—well, I’ve laid<span class="pagenum">[293]</span>
-the facts before Mr. Kane. And he—he’s a
-mighty square man, Parker!”</p>
-
-<p>“He’ll release you? And you’ll come?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Orkney very soberly; “yes,
-I’ll come.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[294]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXV">CHAPTER XXV
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">THE BLIZZARD</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The youthful adventurers were on the
-march, and were tramping along on their
-snow-shoes in high spirits. Long-legged Step
-led, followed in order by Poke, Herman
-Boyd, the Trojan and the Shark. Then came
-Orkney, lagging a little, with Sam at his heels.
-All were warmly clothed, but their luggage
-was of the lightest, being limited, indeed, to a
-small axe, carried in a holster, attached to
-Herman’s belt.</p>
-
-<p>For a half mile the tote road led through a
-growth of pine and spruce; but then, at the
-crest of a little hill, they came to a more open
-tract. The road bent to the left; but straight
-before them was an inviting slope.</p>
-
-<p>Sam saw the leaders halt and put their
-heads together. When he came up to them
-Step was speaking eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>“Why not, fellows? Gee, but we might as
-well have all the fun that’s going! Who<span class="pagenum">[295]</span>
-wants to go poking along an old sleigh track
-when he might be cutting across country?
-And think of what we’d save! Mr. Kane
-said the road made a right angle—you figure
-it out, Shark.”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! No given quantities,” snapped the
-Shark.</p>
-
-<p>“Why not? Call it fifteen miles to Coreytown.
-Say the angle is half-way. What’s the
-answer, Old Skeesicks?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nine-decimal-point-two-plus,” answered
-the Shark promptly.</p>
-
-<p>Step was exultant. “What did I tell you!
-Six miles to the good!”</p>
-
-<p>“But what’s the direction?” demanded
-Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, straight ahead,” said Step, and
-pointed down the slope.</p>
-
-<p>“How do you know?”</p>
-
-<p>“Must be.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t see why.”</p>
-
-<p>Poke took a hand. “Look here, Shark!
-Can’t you figure out the course?”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark frowned. “You never heard of
-the word ‘exact,’ did you? You want me to
-treat a wiggling road like two straight lines<span class="pagenum">[296]</span>
-meeting at a right angle. But if you’ve got
-to assume everything, you might as well pile
-it on. So, if you assume that there is a right
-angled, isosceles triangle—two sides equal,
-understand?—then each of the acute angles
-will be of forty-five degrees. And so, to travel
-to the hypothenuse, you’d steer forty-five
-degrees from the line of the road.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, sure!” said Step hastily. “Sure you
-would! But I haven’t a compass, or dividers,
-or—or whatever it is you use.”</p>
-
-<p>“Got a watch, haven’t you?” snorted the
-Shark. “Well, use that! Fifteen minutes
-on the dial equals ninety degrees. Forty-five
-degrees is the same as seven minutes, thirty
-seconds. There’s your angle for you. Hang
-it! don’t you fellows know anything?”</p>
-
-<p>Step pulled out his timepiece. “Fine!
-Just as I said—straight ahead. And say!
-See that big hill—way off—pointed top! It’s
-a bit misty, but it’s right on our line, and it
-makes a cracking landmark. Come on, you
-chaps!”</p>
-
-<p>“Suits me,” said Poke.</p>
-
-<p>“Ditto,” declared the Trojan.</p>
-
-<p>“Here also,” chimed in Herman Boyd.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[297]</span></p>
-
-<p>The Shark, scornfully indifferent, said nothing.
-Tom Orkney also was silent. It was a
-trifle, but significant: he was with the club,
-but not of it.</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s expression was dubious. The
-“weather,” forecasted by the camp boss,
-seemed to be threatening to break. The low
-lying clouds had grown denser in the last
-quarter hour, and the wind was rising. In the
-shelter of the pines its strength had not been
-manifest, but once beyond the edge of the
-woods, nobody could fail to heed the force of the
-chilling blasts. Still, it would be as keen along
-the tote road as anywhere else. Sam was not
-losing sight of his motto of “Safety First”; but
-at the moment it did not occur to him that
-harm was likely to befall half a dozen active,
-able-bodied youngsters. Yet he hesitated.
-The plan had been to follow the road, and it
-had been approved by Mr. Kane.</p>
-
-<p>Step, confident in the support of a majority
-of the club, started down the hill. After him
-trailed the Trojan, Poke, Herman Boyd, and
-the Shark. There was nothing for Sam to do
-but to follow, in company with Tom Orkney.</p>
-
-<p>At first progress was easy. The snow was<span class="pagenum">[298]</span>
-smooth, and though the wind increased it was
-at their backs. Presently there was a brisk
-snow squall, the tiny flakes driving in a blinding
-cloud. Step quickened his pace, and led
-the party to the shelter of a clump of trees.</p>
-
-<p>The squall passed, but left a narrowed
-horizon. The peak of the big hill, which was
-to have served as a guide-post, had vanished.
-There was even a good-natured dispute as to
-the general direction in which it lay. Step,
-insisting that he was certain of its bearings,
-set off again, leading in a détour about the
-grove. Then came a hill, not lofty but so
-steep that he circled its base. Down upon the
-squad swept another squall, fiercer than the
-first. The boys struggled through it, enjoyed
-a moment’s respite, and again found themselves
-in the midst of swirling, stinging clouds
-of icy particles.</p>
-
-<p>Orkney was having trouble with the snow-shoes
-he had borrowed from Mr. Kane; the
-Trojan took a header over a fallen tree; Poke
-slipped down a bank. None of the mishaps
-was serious, but together they served to bring
-the party to a halt.</p>
-
-<p>When the savage gusts subsided for a little<span class="pagenum">[299]</span>
-the boys moved on. Step, as guide, did his
-best to hold a straight line, but failed signally.
-The country was broken, irregularly wooded,
-full of hummocks and tiny valleys as confusing
-as a maze. Moreover, the snowfall was
-becoming heavier, being so dense at times
-that it shut off the view as completely as if it
-were a fog.</p>
-
-<p>An over-tight thong made Herman Boyd
-fall out of line to readjust the fastenings of
-one of his snow-shoes; and he was so long in
-rejoining the party that Sam passed a word or
-two of caution. “Don’t straggle” was his
-advice. Its effect was seen in a closing of the
-gaps. By this time there was no shouting or
-joking. Nobody was frightened, but it had
-dawned upon the most heedless of the club
-that they had their work cut out for them.
-Halts became more frequent; in them there
-was a tendency to huddle.</p>
-
-<p>According to Sam’s reckoning the trail
-leading from the branch railroad to the camps
-crossed the district in which they were, but
-they had not stumbled upon it. Still, it
-could be missed easily; for it was little
-traveled, and such drifts as were forming<span class="pagenum">[300]</span>
-would quickly hide its traces. Orkney
-thought that Peter Groche might have taken
-the short-cut on his last trip from Plainville,
-but did not believe that it had been used by
-anybody else in a week. Presumably the
-tote road was to their left, but its distance
-was indefinite. As for turning back—well,
-Sam considered the idea but briefly. It would
-involve not only a hard tramp in the teeth
-of the storm but also confession of failure.
-Besides, to find the camp would be no easy
-matter; for in many places the party’s own
-tracks undoubtedly had been blotted out.</p>
-
-<p>In a general way Step, as well as Sam, had
-counted upon keeping the wind at their
-backs; but in one of the pauses for rest the
-Shark called attention to the fact that his
-spectacles were dimmed by a thin layer of
-snow on the lenses.</p>
-
-<p>“Been driving straight in my face for the
-last three minutes,” he declared. “We’re
-utterly twisted, or the gale’s shifting every
-which way.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’m doing my best,” Step insisted.
-“Say, though! If you’re so clever in turning
-a watch into all sorts of things, make it a<span class="pagenum">[301]</span>
-compass, won’t you? Seems to me I’ve heard
-it can be done.”</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly it can,” said the Shark. “Very
-simple method. Only you’ve got to be able
-to see the sun. No chance of that now.”</p>
-
-<p>There was dismal murmur of assent. Overhead
-there was no break in the dark clouds.</p>
-
-<p>When the next halt was made, debate on
-the direction of the wind was resumed. It
-led to agreement that, as the Shark’s phrase
-was, it was shifting every which way. There
-was agreement, too, that its force was waxing.
-And, having reached these not very cheering
-conclusions, they could do nothing but trudge
-on.</p>
-
-<p>Half an hour later they had impressive
-evidence of the danger of their plight.
-Herman Boyd, falling out again to retie his
-snow-shoes, had such difficulty with the stubborn
-rawhide that he lost sight of his companions,
-and, when he tried to overtake them,
-discovered that their tracks, made but a few
-minutes before, had been obliterated by the
-driving snow. Meanwhile the others, alarmed
-by his absence, had turned back, in open
-order, at Sam’s suggestion; but, even with this<span class="pagenum">[302]</span>
-precaution, covering as much ground as possible,
-they nearly missed Herman. Luckily
-the Trojan, on the extreme left of the line,
-finally heard a faint shout, and answering
-lustily, had the relief, presently, of seeing the
-wanderer flounder out of the heart of a blinding
-cloud of flakes.</p>
-
-<p>Then came a council of war. There must
-be no more straggling. Whatever happened,
-all must keep in touch.</p>
-
-<p>Poke was the next to be found in trouble.
-Down he slumped in the snow, and feebly resisted
-when Sam and Orkney tried to raise
-him. The web of one of his snow-shoes had
-pulled away from the frame, and, incidentally,
-had wrenched his ankle. All this involved a
-halt, while the Trojan and Step repaired the
-damaged shoe with a spare strip of rawhide—it
-was a slow and painful job for numbed fingers—and
-Sam argued zealously with Poke on
-the exceeding folly of dropping into a doze.</p>
-
-<p>When they went on, a change had been
-made in the procession. Step now kept close
-to the crippled Poke, giving over the leadership
-to Sam, who, on his part, brought the
-Shark to the second place in the line. The<span class="pagenum">[303]</span>
-Shark, as has been said, was physically the
-weakest of the club, but so far had fared better
-than some of his stouter friends. As before
-Orkney acted as rear guard.</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s plan was simple, but perhaps as
-wise a plan as he could have made in the
-conditions. It was to find the valley of some
-stream and follow it out of the hill country.
-In the lowlands there would be the chance of
-reaching some farm, if not a village. Shelter
-was coming to be the first great need. The
-storm was getting worse and worse. The
-snow was falling as heavily as ever, the wind
-blew with almost hurricane fury, and the cold
-was intense. It penetrated the heaviest coats
-and mufflers. The boys shivered even as
-they toiled on, pluckily if weariedly following
-their guide.</p>
-
-<p>For a little, Fortune seemed to be kinder.
-They came to what may once have been a
-woods road, which for half a mile gave them
-a clear, if winding, path. Then the road
-ended in a tangled, upland swamp, through
-which there was no passage.</p>
-
-<p>While they slowly circled the obstacle
-Sam’s brain was busy. It was his business,<span class="pagenum">[304]</span>
-evidently, to search for the brook draining
-the swamp; but so great was the extent of the
-marshy tract that at last he gave up the task,
-and turned into a ravine leading between low
-hummocks. After him trailed a slow procession,
-its pace regulated by the limping Poke.</p>
-
-<p>Sam turned to the Shark.</p>
-
-<p>“How far have we come—if you had to
-guess?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t know.”</p>
-
-<p>“Guess, anyway.”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark took thought for a moment or
-two. Then he glanced at his watch.</p>
-
-<p>“We’ve been out six hours and——”</p>
-
-<p>Sam groaned. “Six? I feel as if it was
-nearer twenty-four!”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s six. We traveled fast at the start, but
-we’ve been crawling lately. Call it twelve
-miles, all told.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, more than that!”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! Guess yourself, then!”</p>
-
-<p>“But even twelve ought to bring us somewhere.
-And the farms stretch some distance
-this side of Coreytown.”</p>
-
-<p>“Umph!” was the Shark’s non-committal
-comment.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[305]</span></p>
-
-<p>Sam glanced ahead. They were nearing
-the mouth of the ravine, beyond which the
-ground appeared to fall sharply. Again he
-turned to the Shark.</p>
-
-<p>“Never saw a fiercer storm,” said he.</p>
-
-<p>“Blizzard!”</p>
-
-<p>“May last a couple of days.”</p>
-
-<p>“They do,” said the Shark grimly, and
-burrowed deeper in the upturned collar of his
-coat.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, we can’t stand much more like this.
-We’ll have to stop and try to do something—rig
-a windbreak, maybe.”</p>
-
-<p>“And freeze?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s eye rested for an instant on the laboring
-Poke.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps we can get a fire going. Anyway,
-we’ve got——”</p>
-
-<p>There he broke off, amazed by the eagerness
-with which the Shark was rubbing his glasses
-with gloved fingers.</p>
-
-<p>“What is it?” Sam asked in haste.</p>
-
-<p>Out shot the Shark’s arm. “Look yourself!
-There’s something yonder! Oh, if
-only——”</p>
-
-<p>But his speech was drowned by a jubilant<span class="pagenum">[306]</span>
-shout. In spite of the driving snow, and in
-spite, too, of a veil of intervening branches,
-Sam had made out a chimney and the shoulder
-of a steep roof.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[307]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVI">CHAPTER XXVI
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">OLD FRIENDS MEET</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Down the slope rushed the boys like charging
-troops bursting into an enemy’s stronghold.
-Cold and weariness were forgotten.
-They dashed through drifts; they broke
-through thickets; they swung themselves over
-the ruins of an ancient rail-fence. Then they
-were in a clearing, and hurling themselves at
-the door of a little house, against which the
-snow lay banked to the window sills.</p>
-
-<p>Sagging hinges and rusted bolt gave before
-the attack. The door yielded, and in poured
-the club like an irresistible tide. Once within
-the shelter, however, the boys pulled up abruptly,
-glancing about them with expressions
-portraying wonder and disappointment.</p>
-
-<p>At a glance it was plain that the house had
-not been tenanted for a long time. The room
-in which they found themselves was fairly
-large, but bare of furnishings, unless a broken<span class="pagenum">[308]</span>
-chair, an empty box and a strip of ragged carpet
-in one corner could be so described. A
-great fireplace at one end yawned cold and
-empty. Dust and cobwebs were everywhere,
-and such light as sifted into the place came
-through breaks in the windows rather than
-through the grimy panes remaining intact.
-Overhead was a ceiling of rough boards,
-through whose cracks much snow had sifted,
-testifying to the condition of the roof; while
-beneath each window a considerable bank of
-snow had formed. The walls gave protection,
-in a measure, from the blasts, but the air had
-a damp chill more paralyzing than the cutting
-wind.</p>
-
-<p>Sam was the first to rise to the situation.</p>
-
-<p>“Here, fellows, we’ve got to have a fire!”
-he sang out. “Herman, take that axe of
-yours and go for the old rails in the fence.
-Step and Trojan, go with him, and mind you
-lug in the driest stuff you can find—if there
-is anything dry. Shark, help Poke out of his
-snow-shoes. Now, Orkney”—he turned to the
-silent Tom—“you and I’ll tackle the fine
-work. Got any matches?”</p>
-
-<p>Orkney drew a handful from his pocket.<span class="pagenum">[309]</span>
-“Lucky I was cookee at No. 1,” said he.
-“Had to look after the fires, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam had torn a board from the old box,
-and with his knife was ripping off long, curling
-shavings. He had built them in a neat
-pyramid on the hearth, when Step and the
-Trojan staggered in, their arms full of billets.
-They stood, watching Sam closely, while he
-made careful choice of their offerings. As he
-had feared, none of the wood could be called
-dry, though some of it was not quite so wet
-as the rest.</p>
-
-<p>Poke and the Shark were beating their arms
-against their bodies.</p>
-
-<p>“Guess I’ve got a few frosted fingers, all
-right!” Poke announced ruefully.</p>
-
-<p>“Then don’t get too close to the fire at the
-start,” Sam counseled. “Now a light, Orkney!
-Touch her off!”</p>
-
-<p>Tom’s chilled hands threatened to bungle
-the task, but Sam, for reasons of his own, did
-not offer to assist. He wished Orkney to feel
-that he was to be counted a full companion in
-the adventure.</p>
-
-<p>Orkney, sheltering a flickering match in his
-palm, knelt by the fireplace. Most cautiously<span class="pagenum">[310]</span>
-he thrust the match into a crevice in the pile
-of shavings. A tiny flame shot up. It spread
-swiftly, the yellow tongues licking the heavier
-wood stacked above the kindling. Sam sprang
-to the box, and ripped off pieces of the sides.
-These he deftly placed on the blazing shavings.
-Steam and smoke began to rise, and,
-caught in a down-draft from the long unused
-chimney, belched into the room in a choking
-cloud.</p>
-
-<p>Sam again raided the broken box, and Orkney
-followed his example. One on each side
-of the hearth, they fed the fire with strips of
-board, till at last the heavier wood was fairly
-ignited. The chimney by this time was warming
-to its work, and drawing fiercely.</p>
-
-<p>The Shark, rubbing his nose in curiously
-experimental fashion, was surveying Poke intently.
-Suddenly he bent; picked up a handful
-of snow from a drift under a window;
-crossed to Master Green, and without warning
-fell to scrubbing that young man’s nose.
-Poke with a howl shrank back.</p>
-
-<p>“What the dickens do you think you’re
-trying to do?” he demanded indignantly.</p>
-
-<p>The Shark shook his head reprovingly.<span class="pagenum">[311]</span>
-“That’s it—spoil everything! They say
-that’s the way to treat a frosted nose, but
-how am I going to find out if you won’t
-stand still?”</p>
-
-<p>Poke tenderly caressed the feature under
-discussion. “What do you want to know
-for?” he inquired.</p>
-
-<p>“Because I guess my nose is nipped, too,”
-said the Shark calmly. “So I thought I’d see
-how the treatment worked.”</p>
-
-<p>Herman Boyd entered, fuel bearing. He
-brought a report, too, that between the old
-fence and a fallen tree near by there need be no
-lack of fire-wood.</p>
-
-<p>Sam cut pieces from the old carpet, and
-stuffed them into the holes in the windows.
-Orkney, taking a hint, replaced the door in
-position.</p>
-
-<p>“Say, you two!” Step called out. “You act
-as if you thought we were going to make a
-regular visit.”</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe we are,” Sam told him. “We’d
-be crazy to go on while the blizzard lasts.”</p>
-
-<p>“Right you are!” Step agreed, but drew a
-long face.</p>
-
-<p>For a moment the boys listened to the howl<span class="pagenum">[312]</span>
-of the gale. Then Poke settled himself on the
-floor near the fire.</p>
-
-<p>“Might as well make yourselves comfortable,
-fellows,” he remarked. “I’d rather be
-here than outside, I tell you!”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark followed his example, and so did
-the Trojan and Step. Orkney and Sam took
-opposite ends of the semicircle. Poke was
-smiling a sickly smile.</p>
-
-<p>“I believe in making the best of things,” he
-announced. “I’m not exactly happy—my
-ankle hurts and my nose’ll never be the same
-to me that it was—but I’m not kicking. I’m
-glad to be here, as I’ve explained. But how
-long do you expect to linger in this bower,
-Sam?”</p>
-
-<p>“I think we’ll have to stay all night, anyway.”</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! Any idea where we are?”</p>
-
-<p>“Not an idea.”</p>
-
-<p>“I scouted around a bit,” said Herman.
-“No sign of a road or other houses.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam nodded. “My notion,” he said, “is
-that we’ve tumbled on some way-out, back-of-nowhere
-abandoned farm. It’s been abandoned
-so many years that the brush has sprung<span class="pagenum">[313]</span>
-up all about it. Somehow I don’t believe it’s
-near any village. And now that we’re here—well,
-Safety First, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s right!” chimed in the Trojan.</p>
-
-<p>“We’ll be safe enough,” Sam went on.
-“We’ll lay in plenty of wood, and keep the
-fire going—and that’s about all we can do.”</p>
-
-<p>Poke laid a hand on his stomach. “That’s
-well enough,” said he. “Only do I hear anybody
-suggest dinner or supper? If it’s just the
-same, I’d like to have ’em both right now.”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark pulled out a big camp doughnut.
-“The cook gave me this, bless him!”
-he remarked.</p>
-
-<p>“I ate mine, worse luck!” sighed Herman.</p>
-
-<p>“And I also,” groaned Poke. “It went
-ages ago.”</p>
-
-<p>“Same here!” declared the Trojan.</p>
-
-<p>Both Sam and Orkney, it proved, had been
-provident. Each produced a doughnut.</p>
-
-<p>“Share and share alike,” Sam ruled. There
-was some demur from Poke, but the division
-was made. In a few moments the last crumb
-had vanished.</p>
-
-<p>“My! but that’s just an appetizer!” sighed
-Poke.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[314]</span></p>
-
-<p>It occurred to Sam that diversion was needed.
-“You firemen, rustle in more wood—a lot of
-it!” he directed. “Orkney, it looks as if
-there were a back room. Let’s explore!”</p>
-
-<p>The “back room” proved to be a shed-like
-extension, in worse condition than the house
-itself. It yielded, however, a number of mildewed
-sacks, a wooden bucket, and a battered
-iron pot, in which, hung from a crane in the
-fireplace, snow could be melted.</p>
-
-<p>Herman, Step and the Trojan brought in
-huge armloads of wood. They declared that
-it would be needed; that the temperature was
-falling, and that the night would be Arctic.</p>
-
-<p>“Whoof! but it’s awful outside!” Herman
-avowed. “Bet it’ll hit thirty below!”</p>
-
-<p>This, as the boys knew, was by no means
-improbable. In Plainville thermometers now
-and then showed such readings in cold snaps,
-while even lower marks had been recorded in
-the hills.</p>
-
-<p>Sam built up the fire with generous hand.
-Its light as well as warmth was welcome, for
-the early dusk was closing in. The boys
-ranged themselves before the hearth. Coats
-were stripped off; shoes were removed, and<span class="pagenum">[315]</span>
-toes were toasted comfortably. After all, the
-adventurers could count themselves lucky.
-If they had doubts on the point, they had but
-to listen to the shriek of the wind and the
-crackling sound of the snow driving against
-the windows.</p>
-
-<p>There was little talk. Now and then one or
-two of the party uneasily shifted position, but
-the others seemed to be content to sit quietly,
-gazing thoughtfully at the fire. The Shark
-especially was absorbed in reflections.</p>
-
-<p>Step, his right hand neighbor and one of
-the more nervous of the brotherhood, wriggled
-his long legs, stretched his arms, turned,
-and peered at the impassive Shark.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I say!” he broke out impatiently.
-“What’s the use of being a graven image?
-Come to life, Shark!”</p>
-
-<p>Very deliberately the youth addressed gave
-his attention to Step.</p>
-
-<p>“Huh! I’m very much alive,” he remarked
-calmly. “I’m doing something with
-such brains as I happen to have.”</p>
-
-<p>“How? What?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m thinking.”</p>
-
-<p>“How we’ll get out of this fix?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[316]</span></p>
-
-<p>The Shark frowned. “That would be
-wasted effort. There’s nothing we can do till
-the storm ends. Meanwhile, I entertain myself
-sensibly.”</p>
-
-<p>“But how?” Step insisted curiously.</p>
-
-<p>An instant the Shark hesitated. “I—I
-don’t know that you’d be interested.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hang it! I’d be interested in anything.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well, then,” said the Shark. “Visualize
-a cube!”</p>
-
-<p>Up went Step’s hands. “Don’t shoot! I’ll
-come down. Also I’ll bite.”</p>
-
-<p>“What do you mean?”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a catch, isn’t it? Go ahead! Spring
-your joke!”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark looked disgusted. “Joke nothing!
-See here, Step! You know what a cube
-is, don’t you? Well, visualizing one means
-just picturing it in your mind. Remember the
-formula, don’t you, for A + B, cubed? It’s A
-cubed + 3A squared, B + 3AB squared + B
-cubed. Now, take numbers instead of letters—take
-easy numbers. Call A + B fifteen.”</p>
-
-<p>“Er—er—all right. It’s fifteen. I don’t object.”</p>
-
-<p>“Likewise, we’ll call A ten and B five.<span class="pagenum">[317]</span>
-Therefore the block representing the cube of
-A + B will be made up of a cube of A—say,
-we’ll call the units inches——”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m willing.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then the cube of A,” the Shark went on,
-“will be a rectangular block, ten inches in
-each direction. On three of its faces we place
-what I may term flat blocks, each ten inches
-square and five inches thick—they’re the A
-squared B fellows. Then come what we’ll
-describe as the long blocks, five inches two
-ways and ten inches the other. Finally,
-there’s the cube of B, a block five inches high,
-five inches wide, five inches thick. Putting
-these together, and picturing each clearly in
-mind——”</p>
-
-<p>Step’s long arm shot out. His hand fell on
-the Shark’s shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>“You villain! You traitor! Doing stunts
-like that—in vacation! You ought to
-be——”</p>
-
-<p>But the Shark didn’t wait to hear the punishment
-he deserved. He shook off Step’s
-hand. He glared at the critic.</p>
-
-<p>“Course I’m not fooling with any kindergarten
-fifteen!” he cried hotly. “Just mentioned<span class="pagenum">[318]</span>
-that to try to get down to your understanding.
-But I have been working ninety-seven,
-and I tell you——”</p>
-
-<p>But what the Shark had to tell was to remain
-his secret. From without the house
-came sounds, clearly to be distinguished from
-the tumult of the gale.</p>
-
-<p>Blows were falling upon the door. The
-boys sprang to their feet, but before they
-could respond to the summons the door was
-thrust back, and into the room reeled a man,
-covered with snow from head to foot. After
-him hobbled a second man, like the first
-plainly in sore straits from his battle with the
-blizzard, but holding fast to the end of a rope,
-which was passed about the leader’s body and
-knotted securely below his shoulder blades.</p>
-
-<p>From the club rose a shout, which mingled
-wonder and welcome. For the man who held
-the rope was Lon Gates, and the man he drove
-before him was Peter Groche.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[319]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVII">CHAPTER XXVII
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">PETER’S GRUDGE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Groche, stumbling forward, pitched in a
-heap on the floor. Lon, staggering to the
-wall, clung to it for support.</p>
-
-<p>“You—you fellows—here—all of you!” he
-gasped.</p>
-
-<p>“All of us—safe and sound,” cried Sam,
-and tried to lead him toward the fire. Lon
-resisted.</p>
-
-<p>“No, no! Take—take it easy. I—I’m
-better off here for a while. But—but what
-you doin’—doin’——” his voice trailed
-weakly.</p>
-
-<p>In a dozen sentences Sam told him. Lon’s
-eyes opened wide.</p>
-
-<p>“Wal, wal! And the storm catched you!
-And such a whopper of a howler of a storm,
-gee whillikens!”</p>
-
-<p>“We know about it. But where did you
-come from?”</p>
-
-<p>Lon pulled off his cap, and bending down,<span class="pagenum">[320]</span>
-scooped up a handful of snow from the drift
-under the window.</p>
-
-<p>“Wait a minute—fust aid treatment fust!”
-said he; and began to rub his face and ears.
-“No; lemme be! You—you can’t help me.
-I’m like—like an old cat—got to lick my own
-scratches.”</p>
-
-<p>Perforce Sam desisted. Lon, working deliberately
-and carefully, winced now and
-then.</p>
-
-<p>“Got through the hide in places,” he admitted.
-“This ain’t no night for a polar bear
-to be out. Wow! but that wind did sting and
-cut!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam laid finger on a clean gash in Lon’s
-coat. “Wind didn’t do that, did it?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Lon; but he limped to Groche
-and studied the prostrate figure for a moment
-before he went on:</p>
-
-<p>“No; knife done it—’twas his only good
-jab at me.”</p>
-
-<p>Lon drew a little nearer the fire, but kept a
-wary eye on Groche. His voice was gaining
-strength, though he still spoke huskily.</p>
-
-<p>“Wal, three of us started from the camp,
-you know. Stub picked up the trail. It led<span class="pagenum">[321]</span>
-north. That meant the critter was steerin’
-for the Canady line. But the storm turned
-him back—that’s how I got him.”</p>
-
-<p>“You alone?” asked Sam eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m comin’ to that. One time it seemed
-’sif the blow was goin’ to spoil our chances, for
-it drifted the trail over; but it headed Groche
-off, too. He knew he couldn’t buck a blizzard.
-So, finally, he give up and made a ’bout
-face. We three’d separated—spread out, you
-know—lookin’ for his tracks. So there wa’n’t
-nobody with me when, all of a sudden, I clumb
-over a little rise, and there was Mr. Peter leggin’
-it before the wind for all he was wuth.
-And I was right atop of him, ’most. And
-then I got this.” And Lon touched the cut in
-his coat.</p>
-
-<p>“But you had a pistol, hadn’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>Lon’s smile was grim. “Kane had seen
-that I was heeled proper, but I’d sot my heart
-on roundin’ up my man without makin’ a
-sieve of him. Why, I’d even took a rope
-along to hog-tie him. So I didn’t shoot. I
-jest clubbed the revolver and patted him over
-the head with it till the butt broke off. By
-that time, though, he was ready to quit.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[322]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Great Scott, but what a fight it must have
-been!”</p>
-
-<p>“Wal, ’twas quite some. What with him
-tryin’ to carve me up, and me doin’ a bass
-drum solo on his head—oh, wal, you can figger
-out as well as I can what happened. I
-was too busy to be takin’ picters. But I’ll say
-this for him: he fit like a wildcat.”</p>
-
-<p>“How about your end of it?”</p>
-
-<p>Lon shook his head. “Sam, I’m a man o’
-peace. And I got enough of the other thing
-to-day to last me till I’m ninety-eight and
-come into my second wind. But that’s all I
-know about the scrap.”</p>
-
-<p>For a space nobody spoke. Every one of
-the boys was picturing for himself that desperate
-grapple of two strong men, struggling
-for mastery in the midst of the raging storm.</p>
-
-<p>“But afterward—after you’d downed him—what
-happened?” queried Sam at last.</p>
-
-<p>“Mighty little—for a while. I was hopin’
-the lumberjacks, missin’ me, would scout back
-and pick us up, but they didn’t come. Reckon
-they were havin’ troubles o’ their own. Finally,
-seein’ as how keepin’ still meant freezin’,
-I tried to work toward the camp. But bless<span class="pagenum">[323]</span>
-you, boys! it wa’n’t no use; I couldn’t find
-my own tracks. And I’d got all tangled on
-direction. So I reasoned with Groche for a
-spell—he knows them woods better’n he knows
-any book. I roped him the way he’s fixed
-now, and told him, ‘Giddap! Le’s go somewhere.’”</p>
-
-<p>“And then——?” Sam urged.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; tell us!” chimed in two or three of
-the others.</p>
-
-<p>Thus encouraged, Lon told his story, and a
-strange story it was of captive forced to guide
-captor; of slow and painful plodding through
-growing drifts; of halts in the lee of wood or
-hill, while the storm increased, and the wind
-blew more fiercely, and the cold deepened.
-After a time he felt sure that Groche, while
-avoiding the camp, had some other refuge in
-mind.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s brute enough,” Lon explained, “to
-have the brute’s instinct for makin’ for a burrow.
-So I give him his head, and let him
-go it.”</p>
-
-<p>How long they toiled on, or how many
-miles they covered, Lon had no notion. The
-feeble light of afternoon faded into the gloom<span class="pagenum">[324]</span>
-of night. Yet Groche seemed to be sure of his
-course. Lon even fancied that there was a
-slight increase in the pace. And then, of
-a sudden, he saw the flicker of the fire through
-a window of the old house.</p>
-
-<p>“Then you’ve no more idea than we where
-we are?” said Sam.</p>
-
-<p>“No more idea than——” Lon began, but
-broke off abruptly, as his glance, ranging the
-room, fell upon something which caught his
-attention. He stepped close to one of the
-walls, peered at it sharply, and gave an odd
-laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Wal, I’ll be jiggered! Who’d ’a’ thought
-it? Lookee here, boys! Stone work part
-way up, then wood! Say, but it beats cat
-fightin’!”</p>
-
-<p>“What do you mean?”</p>
-
-<p>Lon turned to the group by the fire. He
-was grinning in spite of his weariness.</p>
-
-<p>“I mean this is the house old Calleck
-built up in the woods, the house where old
-Wallowby fit the bear. So that’s proof of the
-story—see?”</p>
-
-<p>“Proof!” cried the Shark skeptically.</p>
-
-<p>“Why not? Said there was such a house,<span class="pagenum">[325]</span>
-didn’t I? Sure I did, and now I go and produce
-it. Rest follows as a matter of course.”</p>
-
-<p>“Rats!” snapped the Shark in disgust.</p>
-
-<p>“Rats nothing!” jeered Step. “All you’ve
-got to do, Shark, is to—to visualize it—yes,
-that’s the scheme. Take a dose of your own
-medicine for keeping the brain clear, can’t
-you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Bosh!” growled the Shark; and in high
-dudgeon turned his back on the company.
-It happened that, as a result of the movement,
-he faced Groche, upon whom unwittingly he
-trained his gaze, while he meditated darkly
-upon the extreme unreason of his clubmates.</p>
-
-<p>Groche had been lying like a log on the
-floor, but now he stirred restlessly. He raised
-himself on an elbow. For a moment he tried,
-as he had tried once before, to stare down the
-unblinking Shark; and failed as completely
-as he had failed on the former occasion. He
-struggled to a sitting position. He raised an
-arm, as if to ward off the hypnotic influence
-of the steady eyes behind the big glasses.
-And he broke into speech, incoherent, savage,
-and terror-stricken.</p>
-
-<p>Lon limped forward, but Sam was before<span class="pagenum">[326]</span>
-him, catching Groche’s arm. At this the
-ruffian turned upon him.</p>
-
-<p>“You—you, I’ll get ye, if I hang for it!”
-he shouted. “You’re at the bottom of it all!
-You lied about me, and you set that old bloodhound,
-Bates, on me!”</p>
-
-<p>“But you’re mistaken; I didn’t,” Sam said
-earnestly.</p>
-
-<p>“You done it, you done it!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam glanced at Lon. “I guess you reasoned
-out the truth of it,” said he.</p>
-
-<p>Groche swore viciously, tried to rise;
-groaned, and sank back to the floor.</p>
-
-<p>“You lied about me, and threw that job o’
-yourn on me!” he snarled. “I’ll get even
-with ye, I’ll get even with ye yet, if I die
-for’t!”</p>
-
-<p>Lon wagged his head sagaciously. “Jesso,
-Sam, jesso! Them’s the undoubted sentiments
-o’ Peter Groche, Esq. Once—twice,
-comin’ along, I tried to talk with him, but all
-I could make out was that he’d got it in for
-you for keeps. And as for the why of it—wal,
-I dunno’s you’re ready to have that
-talked over in open meetin’.” And Lon
-winked meaningly.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[327]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” Because Sam understood, his tone
-was startled. “Oh! That?”</p>
-
-<p>“Exactly! The beginnin’ o’ the trouble,”
-said Lon, and winked again.</p>
-
-<p>“The be—the beginning——” Sam repeated
-doubtfully.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps Lon felt himself justified in dwelling
-on his own shrewdness.</p>
-
-<p>“Fact is, Sam,” said he, “you’re kind o’
-bothered, because you’re still half calculatin’
-on what a reasonable bein’ would ’a’ done.
-But Groche, as I’ve told you, ain’t reasonable—not
-our kind o’ reasonable. Jest bear that
-in mind. Allow that he got it into his
-crooked brain that he hated you—hatin’s his
-long suit, I reckon. Now, you’re thinkin’—bein’
-what you are, you can’t help thinkin’ it—that
-when nothin’ much happened to Peter,
-and they let him go, he ought to have realized
-he’d been mistaken, somehow, in draggin’ you
-in. But that ain’t Peter Groche’s method.
-He’d got you in his bad books, and there you
-stayed. It’s all plain as print to me, son. It’s
-one idee at a time for Peter, and he ain’t the
-sort o’ feller to go seekin’ further light, or
-askin’ the questions a decent man would ask.<span class="pagenum">[328]</span>
-What if he was let out? He’s been put in,
-and that was all he thought about. So he
-’tended to all the sculduggery about our place—which
-was bad enough. But he hated a
-mite too hard, and went a mile too far, when
-he played firebug; and now we’ve got him for
-something that’ll spell state’s prison for him.
-And that’s why I was so dead sot on bringin’
-him in alive.”</p>
-
-<p>“I see,” said Sam gravely.</p>
-
-<p>Now, to this conversation there had been a
-group of eager, if puzzled, listeners. Save
-for Groche’s reference to Major Bates as a
-“bloodhound,” and the discussion of his brief
-confinement, no clue to the mystery had been
-given to the boys; and these matters carried a
-suggestion so unexpected and so surprising
-that none of them readily grasped it. When
-Sam said, “I see,” two or three of the others
-moved uneasily.</p>
-
-<p>“Jiminy! I don’t!” cried Poke explosively.
-“I don’t want to seem prying or inquisitive,
-but you’ve got me guessing. It’s worse than
-Greek; for that I can dig out, if I have to.
-But there’s no vocabulary to help here.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s glance went from one to another of<span class="pagenum">[329]</span>
-his friends. He read in the face of each
-something very like the thought Poke had
-put into words. He drew a long breath.</p>
-
-<p>“Fellows! I’ll tell you. I meant to keep
-it a secret, but I guess you’re entitled to
-know. What Lon referred to as the beginning
-of the trouble was—well, it was the—er—er—the
-accident to Major Bates. I shot at
-what I thought was a deer in Marlow woods,
-and I hit the Major!”</p>
-
-<p>“Whew!”</p>
-
-<p>“You did that, Sam!”</p>
-
-<p>“Shot the Major!”</p>
-
-<p>“Jupiter crickets, but I wouldn’t have been
-in your shoes for a farm!”</p>
-
-<p>So the club voiced its astonishment. Sam
-waited for the hubbub to subside. Then said
-he:</p>
-
-<p>“I intended to say nothing to anybody, but
-when Groche was arrested—why, there was
-only one square thing to do. The old Major
-was bully; so was my father. Groche was
-turned loose, and I supposed that was the end
-of the story. But then things began to happen—you
-know well enough what they were,
-and how we explained ’em.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[330]</span></p>
-
-<p>Two or three nodded; as many more stole
-repentant glances at Tom Orkney.</p>
-
-<p>“We made a bad mistake,” Sam went on.
-“I won’t dwell on all the mistake led to; but
-I will say that it seems to me a clear case of
-one blunder brought about by another. If I
-hadn’t shot the Major, there wouldn’t have
-been any raids on our barn—and we’re certain
-Groche was the raider: so far Lon’s theory is
-backed by facts. I blundered by believing
-somebody else did the tricks, and that led to
-the third blunder in jumping to the conclusion
-that the somebody smashed the club
-window that night. Wait a minute, though!”
-He turned to Orkney. “You’re following
-this, aren’t you? You get the combination
-all right?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Orkney simply.</p>
-
-<p>“There was a complication that night.
-Remember the cap of yours that Step threw
-over Mrs. Benton’s fence?”</p>
-
-<p>“I remember it—but I never saw it again.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, we found it outside the club. What
-we thought about it was another of the
-mistakes. Not till a good while later did we
-learn that Mrs. Benton had put it in her rubbish<span class="pagenum">[331]</span>
-can, and somebody prowling through the
-alley had carried it off.”</p>
-
-<p>“Groche—sure’s you’re a foot high!” commented
-Lon. “He’s always skulkin’ through
-the back-streets. Pinched it, didn’t you,
-Peter?”</p>
-
-<p>But Groche, though stirred by Lon’s toe to
-make answer, merely growled inarticulately.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I think we can safely assume Groche
-did take it,” Sam continued. “Even at first
-the Shark raised a doubt——”</p>
-
-<p>“Doubt!” broke in the Shark. “Huh!
-Don’t you fellows know an absolute demonstration
-when you see one? What I proved
-was that that stone was thrown by a grown
-man, and a strong man, to boot!”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, it’s all part of the chain,” said Sam.
-“One thing is linked with the next. If I
-hadn’t shot the Major, Groche wouldn’t have
-had a grudge against me, you fellows wouldn’t
-have been mixed up in the trouble, we
-wouldn’t have had reason to make a trip to
-the camp, we wouldn’t be here storm bound.
-And—and”—he glanced at Orkney—“and
-things that have happened wouldn’t have
-happened.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[332]</span></p>
-
-<p>A readier fellow, a more tactful fellow,
-might have found in Sam’s words something
-very like an overture for full reconciliation.
-More or less clearly everybody understood the
-situation. All eyes were upon Orkney, some
-openly, some covertly; but even in the flickering
-light of the fire Tom’s face bore a curiously
-set and stolid expression.</p>
-
-<p>Poke relieved the tension.</p>
-
-<p>“Ha, ha!” he laughed. “Jiminy! but I
-can’t get over it, Sam! Think of you going
-out and potting Major Bates, of all men! And
-then think of you keeping it a secret from the
-crowd! That’s funnier yet. But the funniest
-thing of all is that we didn’t dope it out.
-Why, there hasn’t been one of us that didn’t
-feel you were acting as if you had something
-on your mind. Yet with all the Shark’s calculations
-and with all my good common sense,
-we were as unsuspecting as babes in the
-woods!”</p>
-
-<p>“Common sense! Poke’s common sense!”
-roared Step. “Say, that’s the richest joke
-sprung in a hundred years!”</p>
-
-<p>Peter Groche, aroused by the shout which
-met this sally, lifted his head. He stared<span class="pagenum">[333]</span>
-evilly at Sam, and his features were contorted
-as grotesquely as a gargoyle’s.</p>
-
-<p>“He tried to plant the job on me, I tell
-ye!” he growled hoarsely. “Boy, I’ll get ye
-for that—I’ll get ye if I swing for’t!”</p>
-
-<p>“Wal, I guess you’ll have to wait and do a
-little time fust in a cell,” quoth Lon.</p>
-
-<p>Peter Groche made no reply. His head had
-sunk to the floor.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[334]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVIII">CHAPTER XXVIII
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">SAM MAKES CHOICE</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The long night had dragged to an end. A
-pale glimmer at the windows told of the coming
-of a clouded dawn, while outside the old
-house the storm raged in unabated violence.</p>
-
-<p>Sam, awakening from a doze, replenished
-the fire. The other boys were still sleeping,
-each in the posture which, to his notion, minimized
-the hardship of a bed of rough planks.
-The Shark was rolled up like a ball; Step lay
-flat on his back, his long arms and legs sprawling;
-the Trojan had pillowed his head on
-Herman Boyd’s shoulder; Poke, his forehead
-resting on his arm, was breathing very regularly
-and audibly; Tom Orkney, a little apart
-from the others, was stirring restlessly.</p>
-
-<p>Lon was sitting beside Peter Groche, for
-whom the remnants of the old carpet and the
-bags from the shed served as a mattress.
-Peter was either ill or shamming artfully.
-Lon and the boys had had a hard time with<span class="pagenum">[335]</span>
-him during the night; for though at intervals
-he lay in what seemed to be a stupor, these
-had been separated by quarter-hours and half-hours
-in which he writhed and struggled and
-cried out deliriously. They had done the little
-they could for him; and Lon had remained
-on duty as combined guard and nurse.</p>
-
-<p>Sam dropped beside his ally.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, how is he?” he whispered.</p>
-
-<p>“Dunno,” Lon answered dubiously. “If he
-was anybody else, I’d call him a mighty sick
-man. Bein’ Peter Groche, mebbe he’s soldierin’.
-He’d be powerful glad to get away—don’t
-lose sight o’ that.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam bent over the suspect. Groche’s face
-was flushed; his breathing was labored.</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly he’s feverish, Lon. And he
-couldn’t feign that, could he?”</p>
-
-<p>“Umph! I ain’t no doctor.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wish you were!”</p>
-
-<p>“So do I,” said Lon. “As ’tis, I dunno—the
-pair of us went through enough to send
-some folks to hospital, what with that rassle
-and then the tramp through the drifts. And
-I did hammer him up—had to, or he’d ’a’
-done for me. Clear case o’ survival of the fittest—feller<span class="pagenum">[336]</span>
-that fit hardest, you know. And
-I ain’t in what you’d call the pink o’ condition
-myself. Sam, I’m as stiff as a bunch o’
-ramrods, and I ain’t got a j’int that feels as if
-it had been greased in a coon’s age. That’s
-one trouble—I don’t dare take chances with
-him. If he got two jumps’ lead, I’d never
-catch him. And for all his takin’s on, and
-his wild yellin’, and them fever signs—wal,
-jest remember he’s as tough as an oak knot
-and as crafty as a fox. And he’s got the biggest
-kind o’ cause to bolt, if he can. Arson’s
-a state prison job, sonny.”</p>
-
-<p>“So I suppose. Only”—Sam hesitated—“only
-that wouldn’t be ground for failing to
-call a doctor or—or carrying him to one.”</p>
-
-<p>Lon listened for a moment to the shriek of
-the gale.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re right enough, Sam,” he admitted.
-“But he can’t be took out—not in a blizzard
-like this, ’specially as we don’t know where to
-take him. And as for tryin’ to go for a doctor—wal,
-it’d be risky, mighty risky. I ain’t in
-shape, but I wouldn’t dare leave that wildcat
-with you boys, anyhow. And as for sendin’
-any of you, that’d be a big risk, too. ’Tain’t<span class="pagenum">[337]</span>
-’sif we knew where we were, you know; and
-I’d hate to take chances o’ losin’ worth-while
-youngsters for the sake o’ that critter.”</p>
-
-<p>“But can’t anything be done?”</p>
-
-<p>“We can wait for the storm to blow itself
-out.”</p>
-
-<p>“But how long will that be?”</p>
-
-<p>“Dunno. The big blizzard of ’88 done
-business for three days.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam rose. He tiptoed to the door, and
-peered through a yawning crack beside it.
-Then he came back to Lon.</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t see much change, except that the
-clouds are not quite so low or so heavy. And
-it’s colder than ever.”</p>
-
-<p>“Like enough! Nor’easter shiftin’ to nor’wester.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam took thought, and while he deliberated,
-Step awoke, sat up, yawned loudly.
-Poke followed suit, and in a moment more
-Herman Boyd and the Trojan were rubbing
-their eyes. Then the Shark uncoiled himself.
-Last of all Orkney shook off his slumbers.</p>
-
-<p>Sam turned again to Lon.</p>
-
-<p>“Look here!” he said in a low tone. “We
-can’t stay here three days.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[338]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Probably we won’t have to.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s too uncertain. We’ll have to do
-something. We haven’t a crumb of food, and
-we’re half starved.”</p>
-
-<p>Lon nodded sympathetically. “I know, I
-know! If I had a hedgehog here, right now,
-I’d eat him raw, quills and all.”</p>
-
-<p>Again Sam studied the flushed face of Peter
-Groche.</p>
-
-<p>“Lon, there <em>is</em> something to do!” he said.
-“We’ve got to do it. We’ve got to send out
-an expedition for help.”</p>
-
-<p>“But, Sam, I tell you I ain’t fit, and——”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re to stay here, and watch Groche.”</p>
-
-<p>“But who’ll go?”</p>
-
-<p>“Two of the crowd.”</p>
-
-<p>“Countin’ yourself one of ’em?”</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly! And I’ll pick the other.”</p>
-
-<p>With an effort Lon got upon his feet. He
-limped across the room and back again.</p>
-
-<p>“No use, Sam!” he groaned. “I’d stall
-worse’n a balkin’ mule in the fust forty yards.
-No; you’ll have to give up the notion.”</p>
-
-<p>“But my notion is that you’re to stay here,
-and watch Groche.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right—but you’ll stay, too. I’d be<span class="pagenum">[339]</span>
-plumb crazy to let you go. ’Tain’t ’sif we
-had the lay o’ the <a id="Ref_339" href="#BRef_339">land</a>. If we had, ’twouldn’t
-be so much like startin’ from nowhere for
-nowhere, in a blizzard, and with the thermometer
-’way below zero.”</p>
-
-<p>“But we do know where we’ll start from—that
-is, we have a general idea.”</p>
-
-<p>“Eh?”</p>
-
-<p>“Wait a minute!” said Sam. “This is
-Calleck’s house, isn’t it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ain’t any doubt o’ that, but——”</p>
-
-<p>“But Calleck’s house stands near the South
-Fork. Don’t you remember what the lumberman
-said? Don’t you know he told us Calleck
-started to build with stone, but finished the
-house any way he could? And doesn’t that
-description fit this place?”</p>
-
-<p>“It sure does. This is Calleck’s cabin, fast
-enough. Still——”</p>
-
-<p>Again Sam interrupted: “You know—in
-a general way, as I say—how the South Fork
-runs?”</p>
-
-<p>“Y-e-s,” Lon admitted reluctantly. “Empties
-into Blake’s River right at Coreytown.”</p>
-
-<p>“Exactly! And the lumberjack said the
-house was about ten miles from the camp.<span class="pagenum">[340]</span>
-Now, I’ve been trying to figure out the map,
-as the Shark would figure it, and I don’t
-believe we’re three miles from the village.”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark had caught the mention of his
-name; also he had grasped the problem presented.</p>
-
-<p>“Three miles?” he repeated. “Huh!
-good enough—as a guess. Of course, I don’t
-call that figuring. If you’ll give me the true
-distances——”</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind, Shark!” said Sam promptly.
-“We’ll waive decimals and let it go at three
-miles, more or less. Then all we’ll have to
-do will be to find the South Fork, and follow
-the valley down-stream. And there’s a doctor
-at Coreytown, I’m sure; and the people won’t
-have to be asked twice to help us out.”</p>
-
-<p>Lon rubbed his chin. “Umph! There is
-a grain o’ sense in the scheme. Say, though,
-Sam! Where’s that Safety First idea you
-uster have on your mind?”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s there now—Safety First for the whole
-crowd!”</p>
-
-<p>Lon glanced at Groche. The light was
-strengthening, and the alarming appearance
-of the man’s face was undeniable. A very<span class="pagenum">[341]</span>
-sick man was Peter Groche, at least to the eye
-of a layman.</p>
-
-<p>“Jiminy, but something’s got to be tried!”
-Lon confessed. “And followin’ the South
-Fork would be different from stragglin’ aimless.
-I dunno, I dunno!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam pressed his advantage. “I do know,
-then. And Lon! The quicker I start, the
-better.”</p>
-
-<p>“I reckon that’s true,” said Lon slowly.
-“Yes; if you’re dead sot to go, there’s no
-good in lingerin’. And you’re as husky as
-any of the boys. But who’ll you be takin’
-with you?”</p>
-
-<p>As one the club stepped forward, and volunteered.</p>
-
-<p>“Choose me, Sam!”</p>
-
-<p>“No; I’m the one!”</p>
-
-<p>“Here, I’m your man!”</p>
-
-<p>“Say! I’ve got a right to go!”</p>
-
-<p>“Cut it out! He wants me, I tell you!”</p>
-
-<p>They rained their appeals upon him, the
-Shark last but not the least earnest:</p>
-
-<p>“Take me, and I’ll figure out anything you
-want. I don’t care if the thing’s all guesses
-and unknown quantities!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[342]</span></p>
-
-<p>But Sam met the eager glances of none of
-his friends. His eyes were on Orkney, standing
-aloof and gravely observant.</p>
-
-<p>There was a tense pause. Then said Sam,
-very quietly, yet with a ring in his voice:</p>
-
-<p>“Sorry I can’t say yes to everybody. But—but
-whenever you’re ready, Orkney, we’ll
-make the plunge.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[343]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIX">CHAPTER XXIX
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">SQUARING THE ACCOUNT</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Imagine a winding valley, sparsely wooded,
-deeply banked with snow; a valley through
-which the gale sweeps with unchecked fury,
-whipping the bare limbs of the trees, catching
-up the crest of one shifting drift and sending
-it, a swirling mass of white, to build up another
-snowy ridge, in its turn to be leveled by the
-caprice of the storm; a valley bare of habitations,
-as lonely and deserted, apparently, as if
-it were buried in the depths of a great forest.
-Such was the course along which Sam and
-Tom Orkney fought their way. The cold
-was intense. The wind cut like a knife. Its
-force was so great that, when the windings of
-the valley forced them to face it, they could
-make progress but at a snail’s pace.</p>
-
-<p>By Sam’s reckoning they had made about a
-mile of their journey. How long a time it
-had taken he did not know—an hour certainly,<span class="pagenum">[344]</span>
-perhaps much more. There had been frequent
-halts, both for consultation and rest;
-for here and there thickets were obstacles to
-the advance, while both boys felt the weakening
-effect of their fast. They were not acutely
-hungry, but each was aware of a dully persistent
-sense of a void beneath his belt.</p>
-
-<p>Studying the storm, however, Sam had
-caught a gleam of encouragement. Surely the
-clouds were riding higher, and were showing
-signs of breaking. The wind was not increasing.
-It was unlike the rising and falling
-squalls of the day before; for it was now a
-steady, hard blow. This change, along with
-the drop in temperature, convinced him that
-Lon had been right in assuming that the gale
-had hauled into the northwest, with a promise
-of clearing, if not warmer, weather. Though
-the air was full of flakes, caught up by the
-wind, the snowfall had almost ceased.</p>
-
-<p>Sam put his mouth close to Orkney’s ear.</p>
-
-<p>“Guess it’s blowing itself out!” he shouted.</p>
-
-<p>Orkney nodded. “My notion, too. But
-it won’t quit for a while yet.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sure! Nothing for us but to plug ahead.”</p>
-
-<p>And they “plugged.” The slang fitted the<span class="pagenum">[345]</span>
-case. Orkney’s foot caught on a hidden root,
-and he pitched forward on hands and knees.
-The snow yielded under his weight; an unsuspected
-bank revealed itself; and Tom, the
-center of a small avalanche, slid a dozen yards
-toward the frozen surface of the South Fork.</p>
-
-<p>Sam, hurrying after him, helped him to
-regain his feet. “Thanks!” said Orkney, and
-shook himself like a Newfoundland emerging
-from a swim.</p>
-
-<p>In five minutes he had his chance to reciprocate.
-Sam caught a bad fall over a boulder,
-barely hidden by a drift.</p>
-
-<p>“Glory! That shook me up!” Sam confessed.
-“’Twouldn’t be a good thing for a
-fellow to be out here alone and get hurt, eh?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Orkney.</p>
-
-<p>“But, pulling together, we’ll pull through!”
-cried Sam, and clapped him on the shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>They went on, but only to share a mishap.
-The snow had bridged a brook running down
-to the Fork; and the arch caved under them.
-Down they went to their armpits in the snow.
-They scrambled out of the hole uninjured
-but breathless.</p>
-
-<p>“We—we’ll look out for those places,” Sam<span class="pagenum">[346]</span>
-panted; but in spite of their watchfulness he
-soon was caught in a worse trap. Another
-gully—and deeper—lay beneath a smooth surface.
-Sam, being slightly in the lead, vanished
-almost at the feet of the astonished Orkney,
-who dropped to his knees, groped in what was
-like a white whirlpool, and was lucky enough
-to lay hold of Sam’s collar. Then, by dint of
-much tugging and hauling, aided from below
-by the victim of the accident, he at last succeeded
-in rescuing his companion from the
-depths.</p>
-
-<p>This time both boys were glad to lie on the
-drift for a time, while they were regaining
-wind and strength. Sam was the first to
-speak.</p>
-
-<p>“Good turn you did me then. Regular
-cavern down there. Rather think there was
-water at the bottom of it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Might be,” said Orkney. “Maybe rapids
-in the brook—they don’t freeze up often.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam gave his companion a friendly dig in
-the ribs.</p>
-
-<p>“Guess that came near evening up a little
-thing I did for you once—that pond business.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[347]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Nonsense!” said Orkney gruffly. “Come
-on! Let’s move!”</p>
-
-<p>He got upon his feet, and Sam followed the
-example.</p>
-
-<p>“Right! Mustn’t let ’em get tired waiting
-back at Calleck’s old house. Wonder what
-they’re doing now.”</p>
-
-<p>“Envying me the chance you gave me!”
-said Orkney sharply; and plowed ahead without
-waiting for a reply.</p>
-
-<p>Sam trudged after him. No doubt Orkney
-had spoken no more than the truth. The
-members of the club, tarrying with Lon and
-Peter Groche, would envy the adventurers.
-Some of them, Sam feared, might find it hard
-to forgive the preference he had shown Orkney;
-but he did not repent his choice. Physically,
-neither Poke nor the Shark was fit for
-such a forced march; Step was not a powerful
-fellow; Herman Boyd and the Trojan were
-sturdy chaps, with plenty of grit, but somewhat
-dependent upon good leadership. Orkney,
-on the other hand, not only had dogged
-resolution and persistence, but also worked
-well in “double harness,” as Sam phrased it.
-He was as far from yielding too much as from<span class="pagenum">[348]</span>
-claiming too much. Though he might lack
-certain agreeable qualities, he was showing
-sound mettle under strain.</p>
-
-<p>If Sam did not regret his selection of a companion,
-still less did he question the venture
-they were making. As he reasoned out the
-plight of the party, there was more than the
-condition of Peter Groche to warrant the expedition.
-As things were, two or three days
-might pass before anybody realized that the
-club had gone astray in the woods. Mr. Kane
-would suppose the boys had followed the tote
-road to Coreytown, and had reached the village;
-while the people there had had no
-warning that the party was on the way, and
-so would have no cause to send out searchers
-for the wanderers.</p>
-
-<p>“Clear case of having to help ourselves,”
-Sam reflected; and pressed on determinedly.</p>
-
-<p>But it was slow work, exhausting and taking
-toll of brain as well as muscle. Sam was
-no longer reckoning time or distance. Sometimes
-he led; sometimes Orkney. Often both
-halted, and, dropping in the snow, lay there
-till one or the other staggered to his feet, and
-gave a hand to his comrade.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[349]</span></p>
-
-<p>They still kept to the valley, but by degrees
-were drawing away from the stream and
-climbing the right bank on a long diagonal.
-This resulted not so much from intention as
-from various obstacles encountered along the
-lower slope. The higher ground seemed to
-be clearer, the drifts not so deep. Once they
-came to a long stretch, where the gale had almost
-swept away the snow. Here they made
-easier progress, though it was far from rapid.
-In spite of their exertions the cold had laid
-numbing hold upon them, and their limbs
-were heavy as lead.</p>
-
-<p>It had come to be a question of endurance,
-of tenacity as well as courage.</p>
-
-<p>Their danger was great. In their plight
-they had to fight a constant temptation to
-pause over-long in the partly sheltered hollows
-among the drifts. There was another temptation
-to close their eyes and burrow deeper in
-the snow; but always one or the other roused
-to the fatal peril of yielding. Now it was
-Sam, and again it was Orkney, who shook off
-the numbing spell of the storm, and dragged
-the other from his resting place in the snow.</p>
-
-<p>There could be no turning back. Each understood<span class="pagenum">[350]</span>
-that they must push on at all hazards.</p>
-
-<p>Both Orkney and Sam had heard tales of
-lives lost in the great blizzard of 1888, and
-other tales of men perishing in storms by no
-means so furious or prolonged as that famous
-tempest. Hardly a winter passed without
-claiming its victims even in the thickly settled
-region about Plainville; and though
-these unfortunates for the most part were
-thinly clad, poorly nourished tramps or human
-derelicts, there were not lacking instances
-of able-bodied men losing their way and succumbing
-to exposure. And here was a storm,
-not quite equaling the great blizzard, perhaps,
-yet accompanied by quite as bitter cold.</p>
-
-<p>So, at least, the boys were misled by no false
-estimate of their desperate straits. Dulled
-though their senses might be, they did not
-lose grasp of the truth that they must struggle
-on and on, so long as strength remained
-to put one foot before the other.</p>
-
-<p>Yet, though they but vaguely perceived it,
-a slight change for the better was taking place
-in the weather.</p>
-
-<p>Overhead there were rifts in the clouds. To<span class="pagenum">[351]</span>
-the northwest a patch of pale blue sky showed
-for a moment; was lost; reappeared, and grew
-in size. But the gale still blew strongly, if
-not with quite its earlier savage fury; and
-there was no rise in temperature.</p>
-
-<p>They toiled on doggedly. Still veering
-slightly to the right, they came closer and
-closer to the summit of the ridge. Finally
-they gained it. Beyond was a broader valley.</p>
-
-<p>Sam clutched Orkney’s arm.</p>
-
-<p>“Look!” he gasped. “Yonder—a house!
-See it? Not a mile away!”</p>
-
-<p>“There’s another—nearer—lower down!”
-cried Tom.</p>
-
-<p>Sam gazed hungrily in the direction in
-which the other pointed.</p>
-
-<p>“I see it! We can make it! Hur-hurrah!”</p>
-
-<p>“Hur-hurrah!” echoed Orkney; but he
-caught at Sam’s arm, as Sam had caught at
-his. For a moment they clung to each other,
-swaying with weakness, dazed a little, it may
-be, by the sudden brightening of their hopes.</p>
-
-<p>“Let—let’s rest a bit,” said Sam unsteadily.
-“Then—then we’ll go ahead. Noth-nothing
-can stop us now!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[352]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Not when we can see smoke whipping
-from that chimney!”</p>
-
-<p>“Sure! Smoke means fire—and people—and
-everything!”</p>
-
-<p>“And almost within arm’s reach!”</p>
-
-<p>In fact, the house with the smoking chimney
-was a weary distance from them; but unexpected
-help was nearer at hand. For, while
-they still stood gazing into the broad valley,
-a curious procession emerged from a clump of
-woods at the bottom of the hill. It was a long
-line of yoked oxen, pair following pair through
-the snow, while about them floundered shouting
-men, urging them on with whip and
-goad.</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s voice rose in an exultant cry. “See
-that! Whole neighborhood turned out to
-break roads! Come on, Tom; come on!”</p>
-
-<p>But Orkney, clutching his arm the tighter,
-held him back.</p>
-
-<p>“Wait a minute! I’ve got to tell you
-something. I want to tell it now—while
-we’re alone.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! another time——”</p>
-
-<p>“There’ll be no other time as good,” Tom
-insisted. “Look here, Parker! I’ve never hit<span class="pagenum">[353]</span>
-it off with you, with your crowd. We’ve
-jarred each other. You didn’t like me; I
-didn’t like you. But now I’ve seen your
-bunch in trouble, and I’ve seen how you stick
-together through thick and thin. And your
-fellows have been fair to me.... I’ve
-never had a crowd like that. I didn’t believe
-there could be such a crowd.... No;
-don’t try to pull away! You’ve got to hear
-me! I started back with you, because that
-seemed to be the sensible thing to do. I expected
-the fellows would roast me, snub me,
-rub it in that I’d been a fool to bolt. I meant
-to stand it and say nothing; but back in Plainville
-I’d get even, fast enough.... Well,
-if I kept quiet, I saw things. It just forced
-itself on me, after a while, that maybe I
-hadn’t got along with you because I didn’t
-know how to get along with anybody....
-I heard what you said about your mistakes
-and the crowd’s mistakes, and I understood.
-Bother all that, though! I know I’ve made
-enough mistakes of my own.... Hold
-on! There’s one thing more, and it’s the
-biggest thing of all—to me. Every one of
-your fellows wanted to come with you on this<span class="pagenum">[354]</span>
-trip, but you chose me. It was the biggest
-thing you could have done for me. It squared
-the account—and more.... And that’s
-all I’ve got to tell you, except that the slate’s
-clean, so far as I am concerned; and that I
-won’t worry you or your crowd. I’m going
-back to Plainville, and I’m going to take my
-medicine. And I reckon you won’t hear me
-whine.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam, genuinely embarrassed yet honestly
-pleased and relieved, tried to escape the restraining
-hand.</p>
-
-<p>“You—you bet I won’t, Tom!” he said
-awkwardly but kindly. “No danger of that!
-You’ve proved the stuff that’s in you—the
-gang knows it as well as I do. And—and
-after this day—I don’t believe you’ll find
-things in Plainville so hard, after all.”</p>
-
-<p>Then he freed himself, and started down the
-hill. The men in the road caught sight of
-the figures on the ridge, and raised a welcoming
-hail.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[355]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXX">CHAPTER XXX
-<br><span class="cheaderfont">IN FULL SETTLEMENT</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Plainville was on the last day of the nine
-traditionally allotted to discussion of affairs of
-high interest or importance.</p>
-
-<p>The town had been stirred by the story of
-the adventures of Sam and his friends, and
-the boys, a good deal to their surprise, had
-found themselves treated like heroes. Plainville
-had had a taste of the big storm—huge
-drifts still rose in many places—and was ready
-to give full credit for plucky endurance of the
-hardships, both of the club’s wanderings to the
-old Calleck house and of the forced march of
-Sam and Orkney to the settlements; while
-the dash of a rescue party to the stone house
-and its return with the other members of the
-club, and Lon and the stricken Peter Groche,
-formed another chapter which caught the
-public fancy.</p>
-
-<p>Groche was still in Coreytown, under treatment<span class="pagenum">[356]</span>
-by doctors and guard by officers. The
-event proved that he had not been shamming
-that night when Lon watched him with suspicious
-eye. A very sick man, indeed, was
-Peter for a few days; but now tidings had
-come that, thanks to a rugged frame and a
-vigorous constitution, he was beginning to
-rally, with every prospect that, presently, he
-would be well enough to stand trial on the
-very grave charge of arson. Some doubt was
-expressed, to be sure, of his mental condition;
-but the chances were strongly in favor of his
-retirement behind the walls either of prison
-or asylum. At all events, Plainville heartily
-endorsed the opinion of Major Bates, and
-counted itself well rid of its least desirable
-citizen.</p>
-
-<p>The Major, it is to be related, took keen delight
-in Sam’s version of the happenings in
-the woods, and learning, incidentally, that the
-secret of his wounds had become public property—at
-least, the property of the club—invited
-the boys to dinner, in order, as he explained,
-that he might present his side of the
-case. For the club it was an occasion of impressive
-state and ceremony, but the Major<span class="pagenum">[357]</span>
-was a delightful host, quickly put them at
-their ease, told lively tales of war and peace,
-and finally made a speech which brought out
-three rousing cheers for Sam Parker and three
-times three for the orator.</p>
-
-<p>Tom Orkney was at the dinner. The Major
-invited him, along with the rest and quite as
-a matter of course. And Tom, though his
-manner was reserved, didn’t fail to enter into
-the spirit of the occasion.</p>
-
-<p>To tell the truth, his reception, in general,
-had been beyond his expectations. Had he
-been older and more experienced, he might
-better have understood that little heed is given
-to an old story when a new story is being
-told. Tom Orkney, runaway, was an old
-story; Tom Orkney, joint adventurer with the
-club, was a new story. Moreover, Little Perrine
-had been singing his praises, and Sam
-and his friends were losing no opportunity to
-proclaim his pluck and grit. So, when school
-opened after the holidays, Orkney, to his bewilderment,
-found himself enjoying a degree
-of favor in curious contrast to the chill reception
-for which he had nerved himself.</p>
-
-<p>Lon Gates still limped slightly, but otherwise<span class="pagenum">[358]</span>
-appeared to be none the worse for his battle
-with Peter Groche. Lon was not boastful.
-He pretended to make a joke of his capture of
-the desperado; and, in private, confided to
-Sam that he felt a bit like a fellow who had
-been able to bring in a stolen horse, but hadn’t
-known enough to lock the stable door before
-the horse was stolen.</p>
-
-<p>“So I reckon I ain’t quite so much of a
-genooine Shylock Holmes as I let on to be,”
-he added. “Course, as the old lady said when
-she broke her false teeth on a hick’rynut but
-didn’t swallow ’em, things might be wuss, but
-then again they might be better. I ought to ’a’
-had that Groche locked up for stealin’ the
-wrench, when I had him dead to rights; but
-I didn’t know enough. If I’d foreseen what
-was comin’—— Oh, wal, if I’d been able to
-do that, folks’d been dragging me off to be
-President of the United States, instead o’ lettin’
-me stay here to help your father try to
-keep you in order.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker, weather bound in No. 3 camp
-by the blizzard, had had his first intimation
-of the club’s peril and escape when he reached
-Coreytown on his way out. He came home<span class="pagenum">[359]</span>
-to find Sam comfortably settled. The father
-listened attentively to the son’s narrative, but
-made no comment. Sam was puzzled a little
-by this, and not a little disappointed. He
-would have given much to know precisely his
-father’s opinion of his conduct throughout the
-episode.</p>
-
-<p>But Mr. Parker reserving judgment, Sam
-went about his own affairs, and was very busy.
-There was school, with study and recitations;
-coasting, sleighing and snow-shoeing filled the
-afternoons; then there was a club question,
-which brought him into frequent conference
-with the other members. And at last this
-question was decided; and it was the evening
-of the ninth day; and he was hurrying through
-his supper because, decision having been
-reached, the club was to meet that night in
-full session.</p>
-
-<p>Sam had made his excuses, and was rising
-from the table, when his father detained him.</p>
-
-<p>“I wish you’d give me a few minutes,
-Sam,” he said. “It’s something which may
-interest you. Step into the library, and I’ll
-join you presently.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam, at once curious and impatient, had<span class="pagenum">[360]</span>
-not long to wait. Mr. Parker seated himself
-at his desk, glanced at a memorandum, turned
-to the boy.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Sam,” he said slowly, “about time
-we took account of stock and balanced the
-books, isn’t it?”</p>
-
-<p>“I—I suppose so, sir,” his son answered uncertainly.</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s see! Some weeks ago we reached
-an understanding. There had been an untoward
-incident, due to your—er—er—well,
-call it your precipitancy. At the time it
-seemed wise to put you on probation. Well,
-how have you behaved?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why—why”—Sam stammered—“why, I—I’ve——”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker’s glance was searching, but his
-lips were smiling.</p>
-
-<p>“To the best of my information, you’ve
-behaved remarkably well!” said he emphatically.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” It was all Sam could say.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” his father went on. “I’ve been at
-some pains to inquire into your conduct. I’ve
-examined and cross-examined Lon and the
-boys who were with you at the camp and<span class="pagenum">[361]</span>
-afterward. By the way, two of them were
-unusually excellent witnesses.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir?” said Sam questioningly.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Parker’s smile broadened. “One was
-Willy Reynolds, who——”</p>
-
-<p>“What! The Shark?... That’s a
-nickname we have for him, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! The Shark?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir—he’s a bug on mathematics.”</p>
-
-<p>“A bug, therefore a Shark—I don’t quite
-master the sequence of ideas, but never mind
-that! Master Reynolds struck me as a quaint
-person, but instructive. He seems to seek
-precision of statement, and begrudge unnecessary
-words. Then there was young Orkney—very
-intelligent fellow, and a very good
-friend of yours, isn’t he?”</p>
-
-<p>“I hope so!” said Sam with sincerity.</p>
-
-<p>“They were the star witnesses, but all testified
-to the same effect—that you acquitted
-yourself creditably. Now, I don’t say that you
-displayed the wisdom of age—I’ve told you
-that I do not look for the head of sixty on the
-shoulders of sixteen—but you do seem to have
-combined a degree of prudence with resolution
-and resourcefulness in emergencies. All the<span class="pagenum">[362]</span>
-boys say you were practically in command of
-the party. If that is true, even if you didn’t
-keep your friends from trouble, you brought
-them out of it. And that brings me from
-past to future. Once I told you I hesitated
-to let you go to St. Mark’s because I feared
-you couldn’t take care of yourself. Now
-what shall I say when I find you caring for
-others as well as yourself?”</p>
-
-<p>Sam drew in his breath sharply. “Oh!
-St. Mark’s! Why—why, sir, I—I haven’t
-thought of it lately.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said his father quietly, “you are at
-liberty to think of it now.”</p>
-
-<p>Sam tried to utter his thanks—and failed.
-There was a lump in his throat which forbade
-speech.</p>
-
-<p>“It happens,” said Mr. Parker, “that I have
-had some talk recently with Mr. Jones and
-Mr. Green. Both seem to be willing to have
-their boys go to the school if you go, too;
-though Mr. Jones favors the change next
-September rather than at the close of this
-term.”</p>
-
-<p>Then Sam found tongue. “Hurrah! Step
-and Poke going, too! And September’ll suit<span class="pagenum">[363]</span>
-me just as well. I’ll be glad to finish out the
-year here. And—and it doesn’t have to be
-kept a secret, does it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Not unless you so desire.”</p>
-
-<p>“Whoop!” shouted the delighted Sam, and
-rushed out of the library. Thirty seconds
-later he was out of the house, and running
-toward the club.</p>
-
-<p>All the other members were present when
-he burst in upon them; but before he could
-recover breath to spread his news, the Shark
-interposed.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t you try to start anything, Sam, till
-we’ve ’tended to business. Look here!”
-He pulled out his watch. “Seven-twenty-eight—and
-the time set’s seven-thirty.”</p>
-
-<p>“Bother your watch, Shark!” cried Step.
-“Likely’s not it’s ’way off.”</p>
-
-<p>The Shark frowned upon the doubter.
-“This watch,” he said severely, “has an
-average gain of twenty-two seconds, plus, a
-month. It was set by a jeweler’s chronometer
-four days ago. If you will take the trouble
-to compute the error which has arisen since
-then, and subtract——”</p>
-
-<p>“Hold on! No rough work like that<span class="pagenum">[364]</span>
-goes!” jeered Poke. “Twenty-two plus nothing!
-What’s the fraction? If we’re going to
-be accurate, let’s be accurate!”</p>
-
-<p>For an instant the Shark stared at Poke.</p>
-
-<p>“You—you talking of accuracy! Holy
-smoke!” he growled in disgust. “You
-couldn’t tell a vernier from a vulgar fraction!”</p>
-
-<p>Sam thought he saw a chance to break in.</p>
-
-<p>“Listen, you fellows——” he began; but
-this time the Trojan stopped him.</p>
-
-<p>“Put it off till the show’s over, Sam. We
-want this thing done right, you know.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sure! And you’ve got to make the
-speech, Sam!” chimed in Herman Boyd.</p>
-
-<p>Sam’s jaw dropped. “Speech? Oh, thunder!
-but I can’t!” he protested.</p>
-
-<p>“All the same, you’ll have to. It’s got to
-be put straight—the way we feel about it—all
-that.”</p>
-
-<p>Poke wagged his head knowingly. “It’s
-the proper caper,” said he, in his philosophical
-fashion. “People always make speeches when
-they’ve got to break the ice and don’t know
-exactly how to go about it.”</p>
-
-<p>Here was American common practice, if not<span class="pagenum">[365]</span>
-the soundest of doctrine. The club was impressed.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s so,” said two or three together.</p>
-
-<p>“But——” Sam’s objection was cut short
-by a knock at the door.</p>
-
-<p>The Trojan pushed him forward. Plainly
-there was no escape from the rôle his friends
-were forcing upon him.</p>
-
-<p>Sam opened the door. Then, rising to the
-occasion, he caught the hand of a youth who
-stood on the step, and drew him into the
-room. Back of him the other boys formed a
-smiling semicircle.</p>
-
-<p>“Tom Orkney,” said Sam very earnestly,
-“you don’t know how pleased I am to see
-you here. But I want you to understand
-that your election was unanimous, and that
-every one of us is mighty glad to have you a
-member of the Safety First Club!”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="transnote">
-<h2 style="margin-top: 0em">Transcriber’s Notes:</h2>
-
-<p>Illustrations have been moved to paragraph breaks near where they are
-mentioned, except for the frontispiece.</p>
-
-<p>Punctuation has been made consistent.</p>
-
-<p>Variations in spelling and hyphenation were retained as they appear in
-the original publication, except that obvious typographical errors have
-been corrected.</p>
-
-<p>The following change was made:</p>
-
-<p id="BRef_339"><a href="#Ref_339">p. 339</a>: hand changed to land (the land. If)</p>
-</div></div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE SAFETY FIRST CLUB ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away&#8212;you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:1em; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/69935-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/69935-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 94a1cfc..0000000
--- a/old/69935-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69935-h/images/i001.jpg b/old/69935-h/images/i001.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d7c65c1..0000000
--- a/old/69935-h/images/i001.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69935-h/images/i003.jpg b/old/69935-h/images/i003.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b92fd79..0000000
--- a/old/69935-h/images/i003.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69935-h/images/i038.jpg b/old/69935-h/images/i038.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7d90664..0000000
--- a/old/69935-h/images/i038.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69935-h/images/i160.jpg b/old/69935-h/images/i160.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2d6644e..0000000
--- a/old/69935-h/images/i160.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69935-h/images/i222.jpg b/old/69935-h/images/i222.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7ed159b..0000000
--- a/old/69935-h/images/i222.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69935-h/images/i290.jpg b/old/69935-h/images/i290.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 906f74d..0000000
--- a/old/69935-h/images/i290.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ